Quotations.ch
  Directory : Wuthering Heights
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg eBook, Wuthering Heights, by Emily Bronte
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • Title: Wuthering Heights
  • Author: Emily Bronte
  • Release Date: April 19, 2007 [eBook #768]
  • [This file last updated on August 28, 2010]
  • Language: English
  • Character set encoding: ISO-646-US (US-ASCII)
  • ***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WUTHERING HEIGHTS***
  • Transcribed from the 1910 John Murray edition by David Price, email
  • ccx074@pglaf.org
  • WUTHERING HEIGHTS
  • CHAPTER I
  • 1801.--I have just returned from a visit to my landlord--the solitary
  • neighbour that I shall be troubled with. This is certainly a beautiful
  • country! In all England, I do not believe that I could have fixed on a
  • situation so completely removed from the stir of society. A perfect
  • misanthropist's heaven: and Mr. Heathcliff and I are such a suitable pair
  • to divide the desolation between us. A capital fellow! He little
  • imagined how my heart warmed towards him when I beheld his black eyes
  • withdraw so suspiciously under their brows, as I rode up, and when his
  • fingers sheltered themselves, with a jealous resolution, still further in
  • his waistcoat, as I announced my name.
  • 'Mr. Heathcliff?' I said.
  • A nod was the answer.
  • 'Mr. Lockwood, your new tenant, sir. I do myself the honour of calling
  • as soon as possible after my arrival, to express the hope that I have not
  • inconvenienced you by my perseverance in soliciting the occupation of
  • Thrushcross Grange: I heard yesterday you had had some thoughts--'
  • 'Thrushcross Grange is my own, sir,' he interrupted, wincing. 'I should
  • not allow any one to inconvenience me, if I could hinder it--walk in!'
  • The 'walk in' was uttered with closed teeth, and expressed the sentiment,
  • 'Go to the Deuce:' even the gate over which he leant manifested no
  • sympathising movement to the words; and I think that circumstance
  • determined me to accept the invitation: I felt interested in a man who
  • seemed more exaggeratedly reserved than myself.
  • When he saw my horse's breast fairly pushing the barrier, he did put out
  • his hand to unchain it, and then sullenly preceded me up the causeway,
  • calling, as we entered the court,--'Joseph, take Mr. Lockwood's horse;
  • and bring up some wine.'
  • 'Here we have the whole establishment of domestics, I suppose,' was the
  • reflection suggested by this compound order. 'No wonder the grass grows
  • up between the flags, and cattle are the only hedge-cutters.'
  • Joseph was an elderly, nay, an old man: very old, perhaps, though hale
  • and sinewy. 'The Lord help us!' he soliloquised in an undertone of
  • peevish displeasure, while relieving me of my horse: looking, meantime,
  • in my face so sourly that I charitably conjectured he must have need of
  • divine aid to digest his dinner, and his pious ejaculation had no
  • reference to my unexpected advent.
  • Wuthering Heights is the name of Mr. Heathcliff's dwelling. 'Wuthering'
  • being a significant provincial adjective, descriptive of the atmospheric
  • tumult to which its station is exposed in stormy weather. Pure, bracing
  • ventilation they must have up there at all times, indeed: one may guess
  • the power of the north wind blowing over the edge, by the excessive slant
  • of a few stunted firs at the end of the house; and by a range of gaunt
  • thorns all stretching their limbs one way, as if craving alms of the sun.
  • Happily, the architect had foresight to build it strong: the narrow
  • windows are deeply set in the wall, and the corners defended with large
  • jutting stones.
  • Before passing the threshold, I paused to admire a quantity of grotesque
  • carving lavished over the front, and especially about the principal door;
  • above which, among a wilderness of crumbling griffins and shameless
  • little boys, I detected the date '1500,' and the name 'Hareton Earnshaw.'
  • I would have made a few comments, and requested a short history of the
  • place from the surly owner; but his attitude at the door appeared to
  • demand my speedy entrance, or complete departure, and I had no desire to
  • aggravate his impatience previous to inspecting the penetralium.
  • One stop brought us into the family sitting-room, without any
  • introductory lobby or passage: they call it here 'the house'
  • pre-eminently. It includes kitchen and parlour, generally; but I believe
  • at Wuthering Heights the kitchen is forced to retreat altogether into
  • another quarter: at least I distinguished a chatter of tongues, and a
  • clatter of culinary utensils, deep within; and I observed no signs of
  • roasting, boiling, or baking, about the huge fireplace; nor any glitter
  • of copper saucepans and tin cullenders on the walls. One end, indeed,
  • reflected splendidly both light and heat from ranks of immense pewter
  • dishes, interspersed with silver jugs and tankards, towering row after
  • row, on a vast oak dresser, to the very roof. The latter had never been
  • under-drawn: its entire anatomy lay bare to an inquiring eye, except
  • where a frame of wood laden with oatcakes and clusters of legs of beef,
  • mutton, and ham, concealed it. Above the chimney were sundry villainous
  • old guns, and a couple of horse-pistols: and, by way of ornament, three
  • gaudily-painted canisters disposed along its ledge. The floor was of
  • smooth, white stone; the chairs, high-backed, primitive structures,
  • painted green: one or two heavy black ones lurking in the shade. In an
  • arch under the dresser reposed a huge, liver-coloured bitch pointer,
  • surrounded by a swarm of squealing puppies; and other dogs haunted other
  • recesses.
  • The apartment and furniture would have been nothing extraordinary as
  • belonging to a homely, northern farmer, with a stubborn countenance, and
  • stalwart limbs set out to advantage in knee-breeches and gaiters. Such
  • an individual seated in his arm-chair, his mug of ale frothing on the
  • round table before him, is to be seen in any circuit of five or six miles
  • among these hills, if you go at the right time after dinner. But Mr.
  • Heathcliff forms a singular contrast to his abode and style of living. He
  • is a dark-skinned gipsy in aspect, in dress and manners a gentleman: that
  • is, as much a gentleman as many a country squire: rather slovenly,
  • perhaps, yet not looking amiss with his negligence, because he has an
  • erect and handsome figure; and rather morose. Possibly, some people
  • might suspect him of a degree of under-bred pride; I have a sympathetic
  • chord within that tells me it is nothing of the sort: I know, by
  • instinct, his reserve springs from an aversion to showy displays of
  • feeling--to manifestations of mutual kindliness. He'll love and hate
  • equally under cover, and esteem it a species of impertinence to be loved
  • or hated again. No, I'm running on too fast: I bestow my own attributes
  • over-liberally on him. Mr. Heathcliff may have entirely dissimilar
  • reasons for keeping his hand out of the way when he meets a would-be
  • acquaintance, to those which actuate me. Let me hope my constitution is
  • almost peculiar: my dear mother used to say I should never have a
  • comfortable home; and only last summer I proved myself perfectly unworthy
  • of one.
  • While enjoying a month of fine weather at the sea-coast, I was thrown
  • into the company of a most fascinating creature: a real goddess in my
  • eyes, as long as she took no notice of me. I 'never told my love'
  • vocally; still, if looks have language, the merest idiot might have
  • guessed I was over head and ears: she understood me at last, and looked a
  • return--the sweetest of all imaginable looks. And what did I do? I
  • confess it with shame--shrunk icily into myself, like a snail; at every
  • glance retired colder and farther; till finally the poor innocent was led
  • to doubt her own senses, and, overwhelmed with confusion at her supposed
  • mistake, persuaded her mamma to decamp. By this curious turn of
  • disposition I have gained the reputation of deliberate heartlessness; how
  • undeserved, I alone can appreciate.
  • I took a seat at the end of the hearthstone opposite that towards which
  • my landlord advanced, and filled up an interval of silence by attempting
  • to caress the canine mother, who had left her nursery, and was sneaking
  • wolfishly to the back of my legs, her lip curled up, and her white teeth
  • watering for a snatch. My caress provoked a long, guttural gnarl.
  • 'You'd better let the dog alone,' growled Mr. Heathcliff in unison,
  • checking fiercer demonstrations with a punch of his foot. 'She's not
  • accustomed to be spoiled--not kept for a pet.' Then, striding to a side
  • door, he shouted again, 'Joseph!'
  • Joseph mumbled indistinctly in the depths of the cellar, but gave no
  • intimation of ascending; so his master dived down to him, leaving me
  • _vis-a-vis_ the ruffianly bitch and a pair of grim shaggy sheep-dogs,
  • who shared with her a jealous guardianship over all my movements. Not
  • anxious to come in contact with their fangs, I sat still; but, imagining
  • they would scarcely understand tacit insults, I unfortunately indulged
  • in winking and making faces at the trio, and some turn of my physiognomy
  • so irritated madam, that she suddenly broke into a fury and leapt on my
  • knees. I flung her back, and hastened to interpose the table between us.
  • This proceeding aroused the whole hive: half-a-dozen four-footed fiends,
  • of various sizes and ages, issued from hidden dens to the common centre.
  • I felt my heels and coat-laps peculiar subjects of assault; and parrying
  • off the larger combatants as effectually as I could with the poker, I
  • was constrained to demand, aloud, assistance from some of the household
  • in re-establishing peace.
  • Mr. Heathcliff and his man climbed the cellar steps with vexatious
  • phlegm: I don't think they moved one second faster than usual, though
  • the hearth was an absolute tempest of worrying and yelping. Happily, an
  • inhabitant of the kitchen made more despatch: a lusty dame, with
  • tucked-up gown, bare arms, and fire-flushed cheeks, rushed into the
  • midst of us flourishing a frying-pan: and used that weapon, and her
  • tongue, to such purpose, that the storm subsided magically, and she only
  • remained, heaving like a sea after a high wind, when her master entered
  • on the scene.
  • 'What the devil is the matter?' he asked, eyeing me in a manner that I
  • could ill endure, after this inhospitable treatment.
  • 'What the devil, indeed!' I muttered. 'The herd of possessed swine could
  • have had no worse spirits in them than those animals of yours, sir. You
  • might as well leave a stranger with a brood of tigers!'
  • 'They won't meddle with persons who touch nothing,' he remarked, putting
  • the bottle before me, and restoring the displaced table. 'The dogs do
  • right to be vigilant. Take a glass of wine?'
  • 'No, thank you.'
  • 'Not bitten, are you?'
  • 'If I had been, I would have set my signet on the biter.' Heathcliff's
  • countenance relaxed into a grin.
  • 'Come, come,' he said, 'you are flurried, Mr. Lockwood. Here, take a
  • little wine. Guests are so exceedingly rare in this house that I and my
  • dogs, I am willing to own, hardly know how to receive them. Your health,
  • sir?'
  • I bowed and returned the pledge; beginning to perceive that it would be
  • foolish to sit sulking for the misbehaviour of a pack of curs; besides, I
  • felt loth to yield the fellow further amusement at my expense; since his
  • humour took that turn. He--probably swayed by prudential consideration
  • of the folly of offending a good tenant--relaxed a little in the laconic
  • style of chipping off his pronouns and auxiliary verbs, and introduced
  • what he supposed would be a subject of interest to me,--a discourse on
  • the advantages and disadvantages of my present place of retirement. I
  • found him very intelligent on the topics we touched; and before I went
  • home, I was encouraged so far as to volunteer another visit to-morrow. He
  • evidently wished no repetition of my intrusion. I shall go,
  • notwithstanding. It is astonishing how sociable I feel myself compared
  • with him.
  • CHAPTER II
  • Yesterday afternoon set in misty and cold. I had half a mind to spend it
  • by my study fire, instead of wading through heath and mud to Wuthering
  • Heights. On coming up from dinner, however, (N.B.--I dine between twelve
  • and one o'clock; the housekeeper, a matronly lady, taken as a fixture
  • along with the house, could not, or would not, comprehend my request that
  • I might be served at five)--on mounting the stairs with this lazy
  • intention, and stepping into the room, I saw a servant-girl on her knees
  • surrounded by brushes and coal-scuttles, and raising an infernal dust as
  • she extinguished the flames with heaps of cinders. This spectacle drove
  • me back immediately; I took my hat, and, after a four-miles' walk,
  • arrived at Heathcliff's garden-gate just in time to escape the first
  • feathery flakes of a snow-shower.
  • On that bleak hill-top the earth was hard with a black frost, and the air
  • made me shiver through every limb. Being unable to remove the chain, I
  • jumped over, and, running up the flagged causeway bordered with
  • straggling gooseberry-bushes, knocked vainly for admittance, till my
  • knuckles tingled and the dogs howled.
  • 'Wretched inmates!' I ejaculated, mentally, 'you deserve perpetual
  • isolation from your species for your churlish inhospitality. At least, I
  • would not keep my doors barred in the day-time. I don't care--I will get
  • in!' So resolved, I grasped the latch and shook it vehemently.
  • Vinegar-faced Joseph projected his head from a round window of the barn.
  • 'What are ye for?' he shouted. 'T' maister's down i' t' fowld. Go round
  • by th' end o' t' laith, if ye went to spake to him.'
  • 'Is there nobody inside to open the door?' I hallooed, responsively.
  • 'There's nobbut t' missis; and shoo'll not oppen 't an ye mak' yer
  • flaysome dins till neeght.'
  • 'Why? Cannot you tell her whom I am, eh, Joseph?'
  • 'Nor-ne me! I'll hae no hend wi't,' muttered the head, vanishing.
  • The snow began to drive thickly. I seized the handle to essay another
  • trial; when a young man without coat, and shouldering a pitchfork,
  • appeared in the yard behind. He hailed me to follow him, and, after
  • marching through a wash-house, and a paved area containing a coal-shed,
  • pump, and pigeon-cot, we at length arrived in the huge, warm, cheerful
  • apartment where I was formerly received. It glowed delightfully in the
  • radiance of an immense fire, compounded of coal, peat, and wood; and near
  • the table, laid for a plentiful evening meal, I was pleased to observe
  • the 'missis,' an individual whose existence I had never previously
  • suspected. I bowed and waited, thinking she would bid me take a seat.
  • She looked at me, leaning back in her chair, and remained motionless and
  • mute.
  • 'Rough weather!' I remarked. 'I'm afraid, Mrs. Heathcliff, the door must
  • bear the consequence of your servants' leisure attendance: I had hard
  • work to make them hear me.'
  • She never opened her mouth. I stared--she stared also: at any rate, she
  • kept her eyes on me in a cool, regardless manner, exceedingly
  • embarrassing and disagreeable.
  • 'Sit down,' said the young man, gruffly. 'He'll be in soon.'
  • I obeyed; and hemmed, and called the villain Juno, who deigned, at this
  • second interview, to move the extreme tip of her tail, in token of owning
  • my acquaintance.
  • 'A beautiful animal!' I commenced again. 'Do you intend parting with the
  • little ones, madam?'
  • 'They are not mine,' said the amiable hostess, more repellingly than
  • Heathcliff himself could have replied.
  • 'Ah, your favourites are among these?' I continued, turning to an obscure
  • cushion full of something like cats.
  • 'A strange choice of favourites!' she observed scornfully.
  • Unluckily, it was a heap of dead rabbits. I hemmed once more, and drew
  • closer to the hearth, repeating my comment on the wildness of the
  • evening.
  • 'You should not have come out,' she said, rising and reaching from the
  • chimney-piece two of the painted canisters.
  • Her position before was sheltered from the light; now, I had a distinct
  • view of her whole figure and countenance. She was slender, and
  • apparently scarcely past girlhood: an admirable form, and the most
  • exquisite little face that I have ever had the pleasure of beholding;
  • small features, very fair; flaxen ringlets, or rather golden, hanging
  • loose on her delicate neck; and eyes, had they been agreeable in
  • expression, that would have been irresistible: fortunately for my
  • susceptible heart, the only sentiment they evinced hovered between scorn
  • and a kind of desperation, singularly unnatural to be detected there. The
  • canisters were almost out of her reach; I made a motion to aid her; she
  • turned upon me as a miser might turn if any one attempted to assist him
  • in counting his gold.
  • 'I don't want your help,' she snapped; 'I can get them for myself.'
  • 'I beg your pardon!' I hastened to reply.
  • 'Were you asked to tea?' she demanded, tying an apron over her neat black
  • frock, and standing with a spoonful of the leaf poised over the pot.
  • 'I shall be glad to have a cup,' I answered.
  • 'Were you asked?' she repeated.
  • 'No,' I said, half smiling. 'You are the proper person to ask me.'
  • She flung the tea back, spoon and all, and resumed her chair in a pet;
  • her forehead corrugated, and her red under-lip pushed out, like a child's
  • ready to cry.
  • Meanwhile, the young man had slung on to his person a decidedly shabby
  • upper garment, and, erecting himself before the blaze, looked down on me
  • from the corner of his eyes, for all the world as if there were some
  • mortal feud unavenged between us. I began to doubt whether he were a
  • servant or not: his dress and speech were both rude, entirely devoid of
  • the superiority observable in Mr. and Mrs. Heathcliff; his thick brown
  • curls were rough and uncultivated, his whiskers encroached bearishly over
  • his cheeks, and his hands were embrowned like those of a common labourer:
  • still his bearing was free, almost haughty, and he showed none of a
  • domestic's assiduity in attending on the lady of the house. In the
  • absence of clear proofs of his condition, I deemed it best to abstain
  • from noticing his curious conduct; and, five minutes afterwards, the
  • entrance of Heathcliff relieved me, in some measure, from my
  • uncomfortable state.
  • 'You see, sir, I am come, according to promise!' I exclaimed, assuming
  • the cheerful; 'and I fear I shall be weather-bound for half an hour, if
  • you can afford me shelter during that space.'
  • 'Half an hour?' he said, shaking the white flakes from his clothes; 'I
  • wonder you should select the thick of a snow-storm to ramble about in. Do
  • you know that you run a risk of being lost in the marshes? People
  • familiar with these moors often miss their road on such evenings; and I
  • can tell you there is no chance of a change at present.'
  • 'Perhaps I can get a guide among your lads, and he might stay at the
  • Grange till morning--could you spare me one?'
  • 'No, I could not.'
  • 'Oh, indeed! Well, then, I must trust to my own sagacity.'
  • 'Umph!'
  • 'Are you going to mak' the tea?' demanded he of the shabby coat, shifting
  • his ferocious gaze from me to the young lady.
  • 'Is _he_ to have any?' she asked, appealing to Heathcliff.
  • 'Get it ready, will you?' was the answer, uttered so savagely that I
  • started. The tone in which the words were said revealed a genuine bad
  • nature. I no longer felt inclined to call Heathcliff a capital fellow.
  • When the preparations were finished, he invited me with--'Now, sir, bring
  • forward your chair.' And we all, including the rustic youth, drew round
  • the table: an austere silence prevailing while we discussed our meal.
  • I thought, if I had caused the cloud, it was my duty to make an effort to
  • dispel it. They could not every day sit so grim and taciturn; and it was
  • impossible, however ill-tempered they might be, that the universal scowl
  • they wore was their every-day countenance.
  • 'It is strange,' I began, in the interval of swallowing one cup of tea
  • and receiving another--'it is strange how custom can mould our tastes and
  • ideas: many could not imagine the existence of happiness in a life of
  • such complete exile from the world as you spend, Mr. Heathcliff; yet,
  • I'll venture to say, that, surrounded by your family, and with your
  • amiable lady as the presiding genius over your home and heart--'
  • 'My amiable lady!' he interrupted, with an almost diabolical sneer on his
  • face. 'Where is she--my amiable lady?'
  • 'Mrs. Heathcliff, your wife, I mean.'
  • 'Well, yes--oh, you would intimate that her spirit has taken the post of
  • ministering angel, and guards the fortunes of Wuthering Heights, even
  • when her body is gone. Is that it?'
  • Perceiving myself in a blunder, I attempted to correct it. I might have
  • seen there was too great a disparity between the ages of the parties to
  • make it likely that they were man and wife. One was about forty: a
  • period of mental vigour at which men seldom cherish the delusion of being
  • married for love by girls: that dream is reserved for the solace of our
  • declining years. The other did not look seventeen.
  • Then it flashed upon me--'The clown at my elbow, who is drinking his tea
  • out of a basin and eating his bread with unwashed hands, may be her
  • husband: Heathcliff junior, of course. Here is the consequence of being
  • buried alive: she has thrown herself away upon that boor from sheer
  • ignorance that better individuals existed! A sad pity--I must beware how
  • I cause her to regret her choice.' The last reflection may seem
  • conceited; it was not. My neighbour struck me as bordering on repulsive;
  • I knew, through experience, that I was tolerably attractive.
  • 'Mrs. Heathcliff is my daughter-in-law,' said Heathcliff, corroborating
  • my surmise. He turned, as he spoke, a peculiar look in her direction: a
  • look of hatred; unless he has a most perverse set of facial muscles that
  • will not, like those of other people, interpret the language of his soul.
  • 'Ah, certainly--I see now: you are the favoured possessor of the
  • beneficent fairy,' I remarked, turning to my neighbour.
  • This was worse than before: the youth grew crimson, and clenched his
  • fist, with every appearance of a meditated assault. But he seemed to
  • recollect himself presently, and smothered the storm in a brutal curse,
  • muttered on my behalf: which, however, I took care not to notice.
  • 'Unhappy in your conjectures, sir,' observed my host; 'we neither of us
  • have the privilege of owning your good fairy; her mate is dead. I said
  • she was my daughter-in-law: therefore, she must have married my son.'
  • 'And this young man is--'
  • 'Not my son, assuredly.'
  • Heathcliff smiled again, as if it were rather too bold a jest to
  • attribute the paternity of that bear to him.
  • 'My name is Hareton Earnshaw,' growled the other; 'and I'd counsel you to
  • respect it!'
  • 'I've shown no disrespect,' was my reply, laughing internally at the
  • dignity with which he announced himself.
  • He fixed his eye on me longer than I cared to return the stare, for fear
  • I might be tempted either to box his ears or render my hilarity audible.
  • I began to feel unmistakably out of place in that pleasant family circle.
  • The dismal spiritual atmosphere overcame, and more than neutralised, the
  • glowing physical comforts round me; and I resolved to be cautious how I
  • ventured under those rafters a third time.
  • The business of eating being concluded, and no one uttering a word of
  • sociable conversation, I approached a window to examine the weather. A
  • sorrowful sight I saw: dark night coming down prematurely, and sky and
  • hills mingled in one bitter whirl of wind and suffocating snow.
  • 'I don't think it possible for me to get home now without a guide,' I
  • could not help exclaiming. 'The roads will be buried already; and, if
  • they were bare, I could scarcely distinguish a foot in advance.'
  • 'Hareton, drive those dozen sheep into the barn porch. They'll be
  • covered if left in the fold all night: and put a plank before them,' said
  • Heathcliff.
  • 'How must I do?' I continued, with rising irritation.
  • There was no reply to my question; and on looking round I saw only Joseph
  • bringing in a pail of porridge for the dogs, and Mrs. Heathcliff leaning
  • over the fire, diverting herself with burning a bundle of matches which
  • had fallen from the chimney-piece as she restored the tea-canister to its
  • place. The former, when he had deposited his burden, took a critical
  • survey of the room, and in cracked tones grated out--'Aw wonder how yah
  • can faishion to stand thear i' idleness un war, when all on 'ems goan
  • out! Bud yah're a nowt, and it's no use talking--yah'll niver mend o'yer
  • ill ways, but goa raight to t' divil, like yer mother afore ye!'
  • I imagined, for a moment, that this piece of eloquence was addressed to
  • me; and, sufficiently enraged, stepped towards the aged rascal with an
  • intention of kicking him out of the door. Mrs. Heathcliff, however,
  • checked me by her answer.
  • 'You scandalous old hypocrite!' she replied. 'Are you not afraid of
  • being carried away bodily, whenever you mention the devil's name? I warn
  • you to refrain from provoking me, or I'll ask your abduction as a special
  • favour! Stop! look here, Joseph,' she continued, taking a long, dark
  • book from a shelf; 'I'll show you how far I've progressed in the Black
  • Art: I shall soon be competent to make a clear house of it. The red cow
  • didn't die by chance; and your rheumatism can hardly be reckoned among
  • providential visitations!'
  • 'Oh, wicked, wicked!' gasped the elder; 'may the Lord deliver us from
  • evil!'
  • 'No, reprobate! you are a castaway--be off, or I'll hurt you seriously!
  • I'll have you all modelled in wax and clay! and the first who passes the
  • limits I fix shall--I'll not say what he shall be done to--but, you'll
  • see! Go, I'm looking at you!'
  • The little witch put a mock malignity into her beautiful eyes, and
  • Joseph, trembling with sincere horror, hurried out, praying, and
  • ejaculating 'wicked' as he went. I thought her conduct must be prompted
  • by a species of dreary fun; and, now that we were alone, I endeavoured to
  • interest her in my distress.
  • 'Mrs. Heathcliff,' I said earnestly, 'you must excuse me for troubling
  • you. I presume, because, with that face, I'm sure you cannot help being
  • good-hearted. Do point out some landmarks by which I may know my way
  • home: I have no more idea how to get there than you would have how to get
  • to London!'
  • 'Take the road you came,' she answered, ensconcing herself in a chair,
  • with a candle, and the long book open before her. 'It is brief advice,
  • but as sound as I can give.'
  • 'Then, if you hear of me being discovered dead in a bog or a pit full of
  • snow, your conscience won't whisper that it is partly your fault?'
  • 'How so? I cannot escort you. They wouldn't let me go to the end of the
  • garden wall.'
  • '_You_! I should be sorry to ask you to cross the threshold, for my
  • convenience, on such a night,' I cried. 'I want you to tell me my way,
  • not to _show_ it: or else to persuade Mr. Heathcliff to give me a guide.'
  • 'Who? There is himself, Earnshaw, Zillah, Joseph and I. Which would you
  • have?'
  • 'Are there no boys at the farm?'
  • 'No; those are all.'
  • 'Then, it follows that I am compelled to stay.'
  • 'That you may settle with your host. I have nothing to do with it.'
  • 'I hope it will be a lesson to you to make no more rash journeys on these
  • hills,' cried Heathcliff's stern voice from the kitchen entrance. 'As to
  • staying here, I don't keep accommodations for visitors: you must share a
  • bed with Hareton or Joseph, if you do.'
  • 'I can sleep on a chair in this room,' I replied.
  • 'No, no! A stranger is a stranger, be he rich or poor: it will not suit
  • me to permit any one the range of the place while I am off guard!' said
  • the unmannerly wretch.
  • With this insult my patience was at an end. I uttered an expression of
  • disgust, and pushed past him into the yard, running against Earnshaw in
  • my haste. It was so dark that I could not see the means of exit; and, as
  • I wandered round, I heard another specimen of their civil behaviour
  • amongst each other. At first the young man appeared about to befriend
  • me.
  • 'I'll go with him as far as the park,' he said.
  • 'You'll go with him to hell!' exclaimed his master, or whatever relation
  • he bore. 'And who is to look after the horses, eh?'
  • 'A man's life is of more consequence than one evening's neglect of the
  • horses: somebody must go,' murmured Mrs. Heathcliff, more kindly than I
  • expected.
  • 'Not at your command!' retorted Hareton. 'If you set store on him, you'd
  • better be quiet.'
  • 'Then I hope his ghost will haunt you; and I hope Mr. Heathcliff will
  • never get another tenant till the Grange is a ruin,' she answered,
  • sharply.
  • 'Hearken, hearken, shoo's cursing on 'em!' muttered Joseph, towards whom
  • I had been steering.
  • He sat within earshot, milking the cows by the light of a lantern, which
  • I seized unceremoniously, and, calling out that I would send it back on
  • the morrow, rushed to the nearest postern.
  • 'Maister, maister, he's staling t' lanthern!' shouted the ancient,
  • pursuing my retreat. 'Hey, Gnasher! Hey, dog! Hey Wolf, holld him,
  • holld him!'
  • On opening the little door, two hairy monsters flew at my throat, bearing
  • me down, and extinguishing the light; while a mingled guffaw from
  • Heathcliff and Hareton put the copestone on my rage and humiliation.
  • Fortunately, the beasts seemed more bent on stretching their paws, and
  • yawning, and flourishing their tails, than devouring me alive; but they
  • would suffer no resurrection, and I was forced to lie till their
  • malignant masters pleased to deliver me: then, hatless and trembling with
  • wrath, I ordered the miscreants to let me out--on their peril to keep me
  • one minute longer--with several incoherent threats of retaliation that,
  • in their indefinite depth of virulency, smacked of King Lear.
  • The vehemence of my agitation brought on a copious bleeding at the nose,
  • and still Heathcliff laughed, and still I scolded. I don't know what
  • would have concluded the scene, had there not been one person at hand
  • rather more rational than myself, and more benevolent than my
  • entertainer. This was Zillah, the stout housewife; who at length issued
  • forth to inquire into the nature of the uproar. She thought that some of
  • them had been laying violent hands on me; and, not daring to attack her
  • master, she turned her vocal artillery against the younger scoundrel.
  • 'Well, Mr. Earnshaw,' she cried, 'I wonder what you'll have agait next?
  • Are we going to murder folk on our very door-stones? I see this house
  • will never do for me--look at t' poor lad, he's fair choking! Wisht,
  • wisht; you mun'n't go on so. Come in, and I'll cure that: there now,
  • hold ye still.'
  • With these words she suddenly splashed a pint of icy water down my neck,
  • and pulled me into the kitchen. Mr. Heathcliff followed, his accidental
  • merriment expiring quickly in his habitual moroseness.
  • I was sick exceedingly, and dizzy, and faint; and thus compelled perforce
  • to accept lodgings under his roof. He told Zillah to give me a glass of
  • brandy, and then passed on to the inner room; while she condoled with me
  • on my sorry predicament, and having obeyed his orders, whereby I was
  • somewhat revived, ushered me to bed.
  • CHAPTER III
  • While leading the way upstairs, she recommended that I should hide the
  • candle, and not make a noise; for her master had an odd notion about the
  • chamber she would put me in, and never let anybody lodge there willingly.
  • I asked the reason. She did not know, she answered: she had only lived
  • there a year or two; and they had so many queer goings on, she could not
  • begin to be curious.
  • Too stupefied to be curious myself, I fastened my door and glanced round
  • for the bed. The whole furniture consisted of a chair, a clothes-press,
  • and a large oak case, with squares cut out near the top resembling coach
  • windows. Having approached this structure, I looked inside, and
  • perceived it to be a singular sort of old-fashioned couch, very
  • conveniently designed to obviate the necessity for every member of the
  • family having a room to himself. In fact, it formed a little closet, and
  • the ledge of a window, which it enclosed, served as a table. I slid back
  • the panelled sides, got in with my light, pulled them together again, and
  • felt secure against the vigilance of Heathcliff, and every one else.
  • The ledge, where I placed my candle, had a few mildewed books piled up in
  • one corner; and it was covered with writing scratched on the paint. This
  • writing, however, was nothing but a name repeated in all kinds of
  • characters, large and small--_Catherine Earnshaw_, here and there varied
  • to _Catherine Heathcliff_, and then again to _Catherine Linton_.
  • In vapid listlessness I leant my head against the window, and continued
  • spelling over Catherine Earnshaw--Heathcliff--Linton, till my eyes
  • closed; but they had not rested five minutes when a glare of white
  • letters started from the dark, as vivid as spectres--the air swarmed with
  • Catherines; and rousing myself to dispel the obtrusive name, I discovered
  • my candle-wick reclining on one of the antique volumes, and perfuming the
  • place with an odour of roasted calf-skin. I snuffed it off, and, very
  • ill at ease under the influence of cold and lingering nausea, sat up and
  • spread open the injured tome on my knee. It was a Testament, in lean
  • type, and smelling dreadfully musty: a fly-leaf bore the
  • inscription--'Catherine Earnshaw, her book,' and a date some quarter of a
  • century back. I shut it, and took up another and another, till I had
  • examined all. Catherine's library was select, and its state of
  • dilapidation proved it to have been well used, though not altogether for
  • a legitimate purpose: scarcely one chapter had escaped, a pen-and-ink
  • commentary--at least the appearance of one--covering every morsel of
  • blank that the printer had left. Some were detached sentences; other
  • parts took the form of a regular diary, scrawled in an unformed, childish
  • hand. At the top of an extra page (quite a treasure, probably, when
  • first lighted on) I was greatly amused to behold an excellent caricature
  • of my friend Joseph,--rudely, yet powerfully sketched. An immediate
  • interest kindled within me for the unknown Catherine, and I began
  • forthwith to decipher her faded hieroglyphics.
  • 'An awful Sunday,' commenced the paragraph beneath. 'I wish my father
  • were back again. Hindley is a detestable substitute--his conduct to
  • Heathcliff is atrocious--H. and I are going to rebel--we took our
  • initiatory step this evening.
  • 'All day had been flooding with rain; we could not go to church, so
  • Joseph must needs get up a congregation in the garret; and, while Hindley
  • and his wife basked downstairs before a comfortable fire--doing anything
  • but reading their Bibles, I'll answer for it--Heathcliff, myself, and the
  • unhappy ploughboy were commanded to take our prayer-books, and mount: we
  • were ranged in a row, on a sack of corn, groaning and shivering, and
  • hoping that Joseph would shiver too, so that he might give us a short
  • homily for his own sake. A vain idea! The service lasted precisely
  • three hours; and yet my brother had the face to exclaim, when he saw us
  • descending, "What, done already?" On Sunday evenings we used to be
  • permitted to play, if we did not make much noise; now a mere titter is
  • sufficient to send us into corners.
  • '"You forget you have a master here," says the tyrant. "I'll demolish
  • the first who puts me out of temper! I insist on perfect sobriety and
  • silence. Oh, boy! was that you? Frances darling, pull his hair as you
  • go by: I heard him snap his fingers." Frances pulled his hair heartily,
  • and then went and seated herself on her husband's knee, and there they
  • were, like two babies, kissing and talking nonsense by the hour--foolish
  • palaver that we should be ashamed of. We made ourselves as snug as our
  • means allowed in the arch of the dresser. I had just fastened our
  • pinafores together, and hung them up for a curtain, when in comes Joseph,
  • on an errand from the stables. He tears down my handiwork, boxes my
  • ears, and croaks:
  • '"T' maister nobbut just buried, and Sabbath not o'ered, und t' sound o'
  • t' gospel still i' yer lugs, and ye darr be laiking! Shame on ye! sit ye
  • down, ill childer! there's good books eneugh if ye'll read 'em: sit ye
  • down, and think o' yer sowls!"
  • 'Saying this, he compelled us so to square our positions that we might
  • receive from the far-off fire a dull ray to show us the text of the
  • lumber he thrust upon us. I could not bear the employment. I took my
  • dingy volume by the scroop, and hurled it into the dog-kennel, vowing I
  • hated a good book. Heathcliff kicked his to the same place. Then there
  • was a hubbub!
  • '"Maister Hindley!" shouted our chaplain. "Maister, coom hither! Miss
  • Cathy's riven th' back off 'Th' Helmet o' Salvation,' un' Heathcliff's
  • pawsed his fit into t' first part o' 'T' Brooad Way to Destruction!' It's
  • fair flaysome that ye let 'em go on this gait. Ech! th' owd man wad ha'
  • laced 'em properly--but he's goan!"
  • 'Hindley hurried up from his paradise on the hearth, and seizing one of
  • us by the collar, and the other by the arm, hurled both into the
  • back-kitchen; where, Joseph asseverated, "owd Nick" would fetch us as
  • sure as we were living: and, so comforted, we each sought a separate
  • nook to await his advent. I reached this book, and a pot of ink from a
  • shelf, and pushed the house-door ajar to give me light, and I have got
  • the time on with writing for twenty minutes; but my companion is
  • impatient, and proposes that we should appropriate the dairywoman's
  • cloak, and have a scamper on the moors, under its shelter. A pleasant
  • suggestion--and then, if the surly old man come in, he may believe his
  • prophecy verified--we cannot be damper, or colder, in the rain than we
  • are here.'
  • * * * * * *
  • I suppose Catherine fulfilled her project, for the next sentence took up
  • another subject: she waxed lachrymose.
  • 'How little did I dream that Hindley would ever make me cry so!' she
  • wrote. 'My head aches, till I cannot keep it on the pillow; and still I
  • can't give over. Poor Heathcliff! Hindley calls him a vagabond, and
  • won't let him sit with us, nor eat with us any more; and, he says, he and
  • I must not play together, and threatens to turn him out of the house if
  • we break his orders. He has been blaming our father (how dared he?) for
  • treating H. too liberally; and swears he will reduce him to his right
  • place--'
  • * * * * * *
  • I began to nod drowsily over the dim page: my eye wandered from
  • manuscript to print. I saw a red ornamented title--'Seventy Times Seven,
  • and the First of the Seventy-First. A Pious Discourse delivered by the
  • Reverend Jabez Branderham, in the Chapel of Gimmerden Sough.' And while
  • I was, half-consciously, worrying my brain to guess what Jabez Branderham
  • would make of his subject, I sank back in bed, and fell asleep. Alas,
  • for the effects of bad tea and bad temper! What else could it be that
  • made me pass such a terrible night? I don't remember another that I can
  • at all compare with it since I was capable of suffering.
  • I began to dream, almost before I ceased to be sensible of my locality. I
  • thought it was morning; and I had set out on my way home, with Joseph for
  • a guide. The snow lay yards deep in our road; and, as we floundered on,
  • my companion wearied me with constant reproaches that I had not brought a
  • pilgrim's staff: telling me that I could never get into the house without
  • one, and boastfully flourishing a heavy-headed cudgel, which I understood
  • to be so denominated. For a moment I considered it absurd that I should
  • need such a weapon to gain admittance into my own residence. Then a new
  • idea flashed across me. I was not going there: we were journeying to
  • hear the famous Jabez Branderham preach, from the text--'Seventy Times
  • Seven;' and either Joseph, the preacher, or I had committed the 'First of
  • the Seventy-First,' and were to be publicly exposed and excommunicated.
  • We came to the chapel. I have passed it really in my walks, twice or
  • thrice; it lies in a hollow, between two hills: an elevated hollow, near
  • a swamp, whose peaty moisture is said to answer all the purposes of
  • embalming on the few corpses deposited there. The roof has been kept
  • whole hitherto; but as the clergyman's stipend is only twenty pounds per
  • annum, and a house with two rooms, threatening speedily to determine into
  • one, no clergyman will undertake the duties of pastor: especially as it
  • is currently reported that his flock would rather let him starve than
  • increase the living by one penny from their own pockets. However, in my
  • dream, Jabez had a full and attentive congregation; and he preached--good
  • God! what a sermon; divided into _four hundred and ninety_ parts, each
  • fully equal to an ordinary address from the pulpit, and each discussing a
  • separate sin! Where he searched for them, I cannot tell. He had his
  • private manner of interpreting the phrase, and it seemed necessary the
  • brother should sin different sins on every occasion. They were of the
  • most curious character: odd transgressions that I never imagined
  • previously.
  • Oh, how weary I grow. How I writhed, and yawned, and nodded, and
  • revived! How I pinched and pricked myself, and rubbed my eyes, and stood
  • up, and sat down again, and nudged Joseph to inform me if he would _ever_
  • have done. I was condemned to hear all out: finally, he reached the
  • '_First of the Seventy-First_.' At that crisis, a sudden inspiration
  • descended on me; I was moved to rise and denounce Jabez Branderham as the
  • sinner of the sin that no Christian need pardon.
  • 'Sir,' I exclaimed, 'sitting here within these four walls, at one
  • stretch, I have endured and forgiven the four hundred and ninety heads of
  • your discourse. Seventy times seven times have I plucked up my hat and
  • been about to depart--Seventy times seven times have you preposterously
  • forced me to resume my seat. The four hundred and ninety-first is too
  • much. Fellow-martyrs, have at him! Drag him down, and crush him to
  • atoms, that the place which knows him may know him no more!'
  • '_Thou art the Man_!' cried Jabez, after a solemn pause, leaning over his
  • cushion. 'Seventy times seven times didst thou gapingly contort thy
  • visage--seventy times seven did I take counsel with my soul--Lo, this is
  • human weakness: this also may be absolved! The First of the
  • Seventy-First is come. Brethren, execute upon him the judgment written.
  • Such honour have all His saints!'
  • With that concluding word, the whole assembly, exalting their pilgrim's
  • staves, rushed round me in a body; and I, having no weapon to raise in
  • self-defence, commenced grappling with Joseph, my nearest and most
  • ferocious assailant, for his. In the confluence of the multitude,
  • several clubs crossed; blows, aimed at me, fell on other sconces.
  • Presently the whole chapel resounded with rappings and counter rappings:
  • every man's hand was against his neighbour; and Branderham, unwilling to
  • remain idle, poured forth his zeal in a shower of loud taps on the boards
  • of the pulpit, which responded so smartly that, at last, to my
  • unspeakable relief, they woke me. And what was it that had suggested the
  • tremendous tumult? What had played Jabez's part in the row? Merely the
  • branch of a fir-tree that touched my lattice as the blast wailed by, and
  • rattled its dry cones against the panes! I listened doubtingly an
  • instant; detected the disturber, then turned and dozed, and dreamt again:
  • if possible, still more disagreeably than before.
  • This time, I remembered I was lying in the oak closet, and I heard
  • distinctly the gusty wind, and the driving of the snow; I heard, also,
  • the fir bough repeat its teasing sound, and ascribed it to the right
  • cause: but it annoyed me so much, that I resolved to silence it, if
  • possible; and, I thought, I rose and endeavoured to unhasp the casement.
  • The hook was soldered into the staple: a circumstance observed by me when
  • awake, but forgotten. 'I must stop it, nevertheless!' I muttered,
  • knocking my knuckles through the glass, and stretching an arm out to
  • seize the importunate branch; instead of which, my fingers closed on the
  • fingers of a little, ice-cold hand! The intense horror of nightmare came
  • over me: I tried to draw back my arm, but the hand clung to it, and a
  • most melancholy voice sobbed, 'Let me in--let me in!' 'Who are you?' I
  • asked, struggling, meanwhile, to disengage myself. 'Catherine Linton,'
  • it replied, shiveringly (why did I think of _Linton_? I had read
  • _Earnshaw_ twenty times for Linton)--'I'm come home: I'd lost my way on
  • the moor!' As it spoke, I discerned, obscurely, a child's face looking
  • through the window. Terror made me cruel; and, finding it useless to
  • attempt shaking the creature off, I pulled its wrist on to the broken
  • pane, and rubbed it to and fro till the blood ran down and soaked the
  • bedclothes: still it wailed, 'Let me in!' and maintained its tenacious
  • grip, almost maddening me with fear. 'How can I!' I said at length.
  • 'Let _me_ go, if you want me to let you in!' The fingers relaxed, I
  • snatched mine through the hole, hurriedly piled the books up in a pyramid
  • against it, and stopped my ears to exclude the lamentable prayer. I
  • seemed to keep them closed above a quarter of an hour; yet, the instant I
  • listened again, there was the doleful cry moaning on! 'Begone!' I
  • shouted. 'I'll never let you in, not if you beg for twenty years.' 'It
  • is twenty years,' mourned the voice: 'twenty years. I've been a waif for
  • twenty years!' Thereat began a feeble scratching outside, and the pile
  • of books moved as if thrust forward. I tried to jump up; but could not
  • stir a limb; and so yelled aloud, in a frenzy of fright. To my
  • confusion, I discovered the yell was not ideal: hasty footsteps
  • approached my chamber door; somebody pushed it open, with a vigorous
  • hand, and a light glimmered through the squares at the top of the bed. I
  • sat shuddering yet, and wiping the perspiration from my forehead: the
  • intruder appeared to hesitate, and muttered to himself. At last, he
  • said, in a half-whisper, plainly not expecting an answer, 'Is any one
  • here?' I considered it best to confess my presence; for I knew
  • Heathcliff's accents, and feared he might search further, if I kept
  • quiet. With this intention, I turned and opened the panels. I shall not
  • soon forget the effect my action produced.
  • Heathcliff stood near the entrance, in his shirt and trousers; with a
  • candle dripping over his fingers, and his face as white as the wall
  • behind him. The first creak of the oak startled him like an electric
  • shock: the light leaped from his hold to a distance of some feet, and his
  • agitation was so extreme, that he could hardly pick it up.
  • 'It is only your guest, sir,' I called out, desirous to spare him the
  • humiliation of exposing his cowardice further. 'I had the misfortune to
  • scream in my sleep, owing to a frightful nightmare. I'm sorry I
  • disturbed you.'
  • 'Oh, God confound you, Mr. Lockwood! I wish you were at the--' commenced
  • my host, setting the candle on a chair, because he found it impossible to
  • hold it steady. 'And who showed you up into this room?' he continued,
  • crushing his nails into his palms, and grinding his teeth to subdue the
  • maxillary convulsions. 'Who was it? I've a good mind to turn them out
  • of the house this moment?'
  • 'It was your servant Zillah,' I replied, flinging myself on to the floor,
  • and rapidly resuming my garments. 'I should not care if you did, Mr.
  • Heathcliff; she richly deserves it. I suppose that she wanted to get
  • another proof that the place was haunted, at my expense. Well, it
  • is--swarming with ghosts and goblins! You have reason in shutting it up,
  • I assure you. No one will thank you for a doze in such a den!'
  • 'What do you mean?' asked Heathcliff, 'and what are you doing? Lie down
  • and finish out the night, since you _are_ here; but, for heaven's sake!
  • don't repeat that horrid noise: nothing could excuse it, unless you were
  • having your throat cut!'
  • 'If the little fiend had got in at the window, she probably would have
  • strangled me!' I returned. 'I'm not going to endure the persecutions of
  • your hospitable ancestors again. Was not the Reverend Jabez Branderham
  • akin to you on the mother's side? And that minx, Catherine Linton, or
  • Earnshaw, or however she was called--she must have been a
  • changeling--wicked little soul! She told me she had been walking the
  • earth these twenty years: a just punishment for her mortal
  • transgressions, I've no doubt!'
  • Scarcely were these words uttered when I recollected the association of
  • Heathcliff's with Catherine's name in the book, which had completely
  • slipped from my memory, till thus awakened. I blushed at my
  • inconsideration: but, without showing further consciousness of the
  • offence, I hastened to add--'The truth is, sir, I passed the first part
  • of the night in--' Here I stopped afresh--I was about to say 'perusing
  • those old volumes,' then it would have revealed my knowledge of their
  • written, as well as their printed, contents; so, correcting myself, I
  • went on--'in spelling over the name scratched on that window-ledge. A
  • monotonous occupation, calculated to set me asleep, like counting, or--'
  • 'What _can_ you mean by talking in this way to _me_!' thundered
  • Heathcliff with savage vehemence. 'How--how _dare_ you, under my
  • roof?--God! he's mad to speak so!' And he struck his forehead with rage.
  • I did not know whether to resent this language or pursue my explanation;
  • but he seemed so powerfully affected that I took pity and proceeded with
  • my dreams; affirming I had never heard the appellation of 'Catherine
  • Linton' before, but reading it often over produced an impression which
  • personified itself when I had no longer my imagination under control.
  • Heathcliff gradually fell back into the shelter of the bed, as I spoke;
  • finally sitting down almost concealed behind it. I guessed, however, by
  • his irregular and intercepted breathing, that he struggled to vanquish an
  • excess of violent emotion. Not liking to show him that I had heard the
  • conflict, I continued my toilette rather noisily, looked at my watch, and
  • soliloquised on the length of the night: 'Not three o'clock yet! I could
  • have taken oath it had been six. Time stagnates here: we must surely
  • have retired to rest at eight!'
  • 'Always at nine in winter, and rise at four,' said my host, suppressing a
  • groan: and, as I fancied, by the motion of his arm's shadow, dashing a
  • tear from his eyes. 'Mr. Lockwood,' he added, 'you may go into my room:
  • you'll only be in the way, coming down-stairs so early: and your childish
  • outcry has sent sleep to the devil for me.'
  • 'And for me, too,' I replied. 'I'll walk in the yard till daylight, and
  • then I'll be off; and you need not dread a repetition of my intrusion.
  • I'm now quite cured of seeking pleasure in society, be it country or
  • town. A sensible man ought to find sufficient company in himself.'
  • 'Delightful company!' muttered Heathcliff. 'Take the candle, and go
  • where you please. I shall join you directly. Keep out of the yard,
  • though, the dogs are unchained; and the house--Juno mounts sentinel
  • there, and--nay, you can only ramble about the steps and passages. But,
  • away with you! I'll come in two minutes!'
  • I obeyed, so far as to quit the chamber; when, ignorant where the narrow
  • lobbies led, I stood still, and was witness, involuntarily, to a piece of
  • superstition on the part of my landlord which belied, oddly, his apparent
  • sense. He got on to the bed, and wrenched open the lattice, bursting, as
  • he pulled at it, into an uncontrollable passion of tears. 'Come in! come
  • in!' he sobbed. 'Cathy, do come. Oh, do--_once_ more! Oh! my heart's
  • darling! hear me _this_ time, Catherine, at last!' The spectre showed a
  • spectre's ordinary caprice: it gave no sign of being; but the snow and
  • wind whirled wildly through, even reaching my station, and blowing out
  • the light.
  • There was such anguish in the gush of grief that accompanied this raving,
  • that my compassion made me overlook its folly, and I drew off, half angry
  • to have listened at all, and vexed at having related my ridiculous
  • nightmare, since it produced that agony; though _why_ was beyond my
  • comprehension. I descended cautiously to the lower regions, and landed
  • in the back-kitchen, where a gleam of fire, raked compactly together,
  • enabled me to rekindle my candle. Nothing was stirring except a
  • brindled, grey cat, which crept from the ashes, and saluted me with a
  • querulous mew.
  • Two benches, shaped in sections of a circle, nearly enclosed the hearth;
  • on one of these I stretched myself, and Grimalkin mounted the other. We
  • were both of us nodding ere any one invaded our retreat, and then it was
  • Joseph, shuffling down a wooden ladder that vanished in the roof, through
  • a trap: the ascent to his garret, I suppose. He cast a sinister look at
  • the little flame which I had enticed to play between the ribs, swept the
  • cat from its elevation, and bestowing himself in the vacancy, commenced
  • the operation of stuffing a three-inch pipe with tobacco. My presence in
  • his sanctum was evidently esteemed a piece of impudence too shameful for
  • remark: he silently applied the tube to his lips, folded his arms, and
  • puffed away. I let him enjoy the luxury unannoyed; and after sucking out
  • his last wreath, and heaving a profound sigh, he got up, and departed as
  • solemnly as he came.
  • A more elastic footstep entered next; and now I opened my mouth for a
  • 'good-morning,' but closed it again, the salutation unachieved; for
  • Hareton Earnshaw was performing his orison _sotto voce_, in a series of
  • curses directed against every object he touched, while he rummaged a
  • corner for a spade or shovel to dig through the drifts. He glanced over
  • the back of the bench, dilating his nostrils, and thought as little of
  • exchanging civilities with me as with my companion the cat. I guessed,
  • by his preparations, that egress was allowed, and, leaving my hard couch,
  • made a movement to follow him. He noticed this, and thrust at an inner
  • door with the end of his spade, intimating by an inarticulate sound that
  • there was the place where I must go, if I changed my locality.
  • It opened into the house, where the females were already astir; Zillah
  • urging flakes of flame up the chimney with a colossal bellows; and Mrs.
  • Heathcliff, kneeling on the hearth, reading a book by the aid of the
  • blaze. She held her hand interposed between the furnace-heat and her
  • eyes, and seemed absorbed in her occupation; desisting from it only to
  • chide the servant for covering her with sparks, or to push away a dog,
  • now and then, that snoozled its nose overforwardly into her face. I was
  • surprised to see Heathcliff there also. He stood by the fire, his back
  • towards me, just finishing a stormy scene with poor Zillah; who ever and
  • anon interrupted her labour to pluck up the corner of her apron, and
  • heave an indignant groan.
  • 'And you, you worthless--' he broke out as I entered, turning to his
  • daughter-in-law, and employing an epithet as harmless as duck, or sheep,
  • but generally represented by a dash--. 'There you are, at your idle
  • tricks again! The rest of them do earn their bread--you live on my
  • charity! Put your trash away, and find something to do. You shall pay
  • me for the plague of having you eternally in my sight--do you hear,
  • damnable jade?'
  • 'I'll put my trash away, because you can make me if I refuse,' answered
  • the young lady, closing her book, and throwing it on a chair. 'But I'll
  • not do anything, though you should swear your tongue out, except what I
  • please!'
  • Heathcliff lifted his hand, and the speaker sprang to a safer distance,
  • obviously acquainted with its weight. Having no desire to be entertained
  • by a cat-and-dog combat, I stepped forward briskly, as if eager to
  • partake the warmth of the hearth, and innocent of any knowledge of the
  • interrupted dispute. Each had enough decorum to suspend further
  • hostilities: Heathcliff placed his fists, out of temptation, in his
  • pockets; Mrs. Heathcliff curled her lip, and walked to a seat far off,
  • where she kept her word by playing the part of a statue during the
  • remainder of my stay. That was not long. I declined joining their
  • breakfast, and, at the first gleam of dawn, took an opportunity of
  • escaping into the free air, now clear, and still, and cold as impalpable
  • ice.
  • My landlord halloed for me to stop ere I reached the bottom of the
  • garden, and offered to accompany me across the moor. It was well he did,
  • for the whole hill-back was one billowy, white ocean; the swells and
  • falls not indicating corresponding rises and depressions in the ground:
  • many pits, at least, were filled to a level; and entire ranges of mounds,
  • the refuse of the quarries, blotted from the chart which my yesterday's
  • walk left pictured in my mind. I had remarked on one side of the road,
  • at intervals of six or seven yards, a line of upright stones, continued
  • through the whole length of the barren: these were erected and daubed
  • with lime on purpose to serve as guides in the dark, and also when a
  • fall, like the present, confounded the deep swamps on either hand with
  • the firmer path: but, excepting a dirty dot pointing up here and there,
  • all traces of their existence had vanished: and my companion found it
  • necessary to warn me frequently to steer to the right or left, when I
  • imagined I was following, correctly, the windings of the road.
  • We exchanged little conversation, and he halted at the entrance of
  • Thrushcross Park, saying, I could make no error there. Our adieux were
  • limited to a hasty bow, and then I pushed forward, trusting to my own
  • resources; for the porter's lodge is untenanted as yet. The distance
  • from the gate to the grange is two miles; I believe I managed to make it
  • four, what with losing myself among the trees, and sinking up to the neck
  • in snow: a predicament which only those who have experienced it can
  • appreciate. At any rate, whatever were my wanderings, the clock chimed
  • twelve as I entered the house; and that gave exactly an hour for every
  • mile of the usual way from Wuthering Heights.
  • My human fixture and her satellites rushed to welcome me; exclaiming,
  • tumultuously, they had completely given me up: everybody conjectured that
  • I perished last night; and they were wondering how they must set about
  • the search for my remains. I bid them be quiet, now that they saw me
  • returned, and, benumbed to my very heart, I dragged up-stairs; whence,
  • after putting on dry clothes, and pacing to and fro thirty or forty
  • minutes, to restore the animal heat, I adjourned to my study, feeble as a
  • kitten: almost too much so to enjoy the cheerful fire and smoking coffee
  • which the servant had prepared for my refreshment.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • What vain weathercocks we are! I, who had determined to hold myself
  • independent of all social intercourse, and thanked my stars that, at
  • length, I had lighted on a spot where it was next to impracticable--I,
  • weak wretch, after maintaining till dusk a struggle with low spirits and
  • solitude, was finally compelled to strike my colours; and under pretence
  • of gaining information concerning the necessities of my establishment, I
  • desired Mrs. Dean, when she brought in supper, to sit down while I ate
  • it; hoping sincerely she would prove a regular gossip, and either rouse
  • me to animation or lull me to sleep by her talk.
  • 'You have lived here a considerable time,' I commenced; 'did you not say
  • sixteen years?'
  • 'Eighteen, sir: I came when the mistress was married, to wait on her;
  • after she died, the master retained me for his housekeeper.'
  • 'Indeed.'
  • There ensued a pause. She was not a gossip, I feared; unless about her
  • own affairs, and those could hardly interest me. However, having studied
  • for an interval, with a fist on either knee, and a cloud of meditation
  • over her ruddy countenance, she ejaculated--'Ah, times are greatly
  • changed since then!'
  • 'Yes,' I remarked, 'you've seen a good many alterations, I suppose?'
  • 'I have: and troubles too,' she said.
  • 'Oh, I'll turn the talk on my landlord's family!' I thought to myself. 'A
  • good subject to start! And that pretty girl-widow, I should like to know
  • her history: whether she be a native of the country, or, as is more
  • probable, an exotic that the surly _indigenae_ will not recognise for
  • kin.' With this intention I asked Mrs. Dean why Heathcliff let
  • Thrushcross Grange, and preferred living in a situation and residence so
  • much inferior. 'Is he not rich enough to keep the estate in good order?'
  • I inquired.
  • 'Rich, sir!' she returned. 'He has nobody knows what money, and every
  • year it increases. Yes, yes, he's rich enough to live in a finer house
  • than this: but he's very near--close-handed; and, if he had meant to flit
  • to Thrushcross Grange, as soon as he heard of a good tenant he could not
  • have borne to miss the chance of getting a few hundreds more. It is
  • strange people should be so greedy, when they are alone in the world!'
  • 'He had a son, it seems?'
  • 'Yes, he had one--he is dead.'
  • 'And that young lady, Mrs. Heathcliff, is his widow?'
  • 'Yes.'
  • 'Where did she come from originally?'
  • 'Why, sir, she is my late master's daughter: Catherine Linton was her
  • maiden name. I nursed her, poor thing! I did wish Mr. Heathcliff would
  • remove here, and then we might have been together again.'
  • 'What! Catherine Linton?' I exclaimed, astonished. But a minute's
  • reflection convinced me it was not my ghostly Catherine. 'Then,' I
  • continued, 'my predecessor's name was Linton?'
  • 'It was.'
  • 'And who is that Earnshaw: Hareton Earnshaw, who lives with Mr.
  • Heathcliff? Are they relations?'
  • 'No; he is the late Mrs. Linton's nephew.'
  • 'The young lady's cousin, then?'
  • 'Yes; and her husband was her cousin also: one on the mother's, the other
  • on the father's side: Heathcliff married Mr. Linton's sister.'
  • 'I see the house at Wuthering Heights has "Earnshaw" carved over the
  • front door. Are they an old family?'
  • 'Very old, sir; and Hareton is the last of them, as our Miss Cathy is of
  • us--I mean, of the Lintons. Have you been to Wuthering Heights? I beg
  • pardon for asking; but I should like to hear how she is!'
  • 'Mrs. Heathcliff? she looked very well, and very handsome; yet, I think,
  • not very happy.'
  • 'Oh dear, I don't wonder! And how did you like the master?'
  • 'A rough fellow, rather, Mrs. Dean. Is not that his character?
  • 'Rough as a saw-edge, and hard as whinstone! The less you meddle with
  • him the better.'
  • 'He must have had some ups and downs in life to make him such a churl. Do
  • you know anything of his history?'
  • 'It's a cuckoo's, sir--I know all about it: except where he was born, and
  • who were his parents, and how he got his money at first. And Hareton has
  • been cast out like an unfledged dunnock! The unfortunate lad is the only
  • one in all this parish that does not guess how he has been cheated.'
  • 'Well, Mrs. Dean, it will be a charitable deed to tell me something of my
  • neighbours: I feel I shall not rest if I go to bed; so be good enough to
  • sit and chat an hour.'
  • 'Oh, certainly, sir! I'll just fetch a little sewing, and then I'll sit
  • as long as you please. But you've caught cold: I saw you shivering, and
  • you must have some gruel to drive it out.'
  • The worthy woman bustled off, and I crouched nearer the fire; my head
  • felt hot, and the rest of me chill: moreover, I was excited, almost to a
  • pitch of foolishness, through my nerves and brain. This caused me to
  • feel, not uncomfortable, but rather fearful (as I am still) of serious
  • effects from the incidents of to-day and yesterday. She returned
  • presently, bringing a smoking basin and a basket of work; and, having
  • placed the former on the hob, drew in her seat, evidently pleased to find
  • me so companionable.
  • Before I came to live here, she commenced--waiting no farther invitation
  • to her story--I was almost always at Wuthering Heights; because my mother
  • had nursed Mr. Hindley Earnshaw, that was Hareton's father, and I got
  • used to playing with the children: I ran errands too, and helped to make
  • hay, and hung about the farm ready for anything that anybody would set me
  • to. One fine summer morning--it was the beginning of harvest, I
  • remember--Mr. Earnshaw, the old master, came down-stairs, dressed for a
  • journey; and, after he had told Joseph what was to be done during the
  • day, he turned to Hindley, and Cathy, and me--for I sat eating my
  • porridge with them--and he said, speaking to his son, 'Now, my bonny man,
  • I'm going to Liverpool to-day, what shall I bring you? You may choose
  • what you like: only let it be little, for I shall walk there and back:
  • sixty miles each way, that is a long spell!' Hindley named a fiddle, and
  • then he asked Miss Cathy; she was hardly six years old, but she could
  • ride any horse in the stable, and she chose a whip. He did not forget
  • me; for he had a kind heart, though he was rather severe sometimes. He
  • promised to bring me a pocketful of apples and pears, and then he kissed
  • his children, said good-bye, and set off.
  • It seemed a long while to us all--the three days of his absence--and
  • often did little Cathy ask when he would be home. Mrs. Earnshaw expected
  • him by supper-time on the third evening, and she put the meal off hour
  • after hour; there were no signs of his coming, however, and at last the
  • children got tired of running down to the gate to look. Then it grew
  • dark; she would have had them to bed, but they begged sadly to be allowed
  • to stay up; and, just about eleven o'clock, the door-latch was raised
  • quietly, and in stepped the master. He threw himself into a chair,
  • laughing and groaning, and bid them all stand off, for he was nearly
  • killed--he would not have such another walk for the three kingdoms.
  • 'And at the end of it to be flighted to death!' he said, opening his
  • great-coat, which he held bundled up in his arms. 'See here, wife! I
  • was never so beaten with anything in my life: but you must e'en take it
  • as a gift of God; though it's as dark almost as if it came from the
  • devil.'
  • We crowded round, and over Miss Cathy's head I had a peep at a dirty,
  • ragged, black-haired child; big enough both to walk and talk: indeed, its
  • face looked older than Catherine's; yet when it was set on its feet, it
  • only stared round, and repeated over and over again some gibberish that
  • nobody could understand. I was frightened, and Mrs. Earnshaw was ready
  • to fling it out of doors: she did fly up, asking how he could fashion to
  • bring that gipsy brat into the house, when they had their own bairns to
  • feed and fend for? What he meant to do with it, and whether he were mad?
  • The master tried to explain the matter; but he was really half dead with
  • fatigue, and all that I could make out, amongst her scolding, was a tale
  • of his seeing it starving, and houseless, and as good as dumb, in the
  • streets of Liverpool, where he picked it up and inquired for its owner.
  • Not a soul knew to whom it belonged, he said; and his money and time
  • being both limited, he thought it better to take it home with him at
  • once, than run into vain expenses there: because he was determined he
  • would not leave it as he found it. Well, the conclusion was, that my
  • mistress grumbled herself calm; and Mr. Earnshaw told me to wash it, and
  • give it clean things, and let it sleep with the children.
  • Hindley and Cathy contented themselves with looking and listening till
  • peace was restored: then, both began searching their father's pockets
  • for the presents he had promised them. The former was a boy of fourteen,
  • but when he drew out what had been a fiddle, crushed to morsels in the
  • great-coat, he blubbered aloud; and Cathy, when she learned the master
  • had lost her whip in attending on the stranger, showed her humour by
  • grinning and spitting at the stupid little thing; earning for her pains
  • a sound blow from her father, to teach her cleaner manners. They
  • entirely refused to have it in bed with them, or even in their room; and
  • I had no more sense, so I put it on the landing of the stairs, hoping it
  • might be gone on the morrow. By chance, or else attracted by hearing his
  • voice, it crept to Mr. Earnshaw's door, and there he found it on
  • quitting his chamber. Inquiries were made as to how it got there; I was
  • obliged to confess, and in recompense for my cowardice and inhumanity
  • was sent out of the house.
  • This was Heathcliff's first introduction to the family. On coming back a
  • few days afterwards (for I did not consider my banishment perpetual), I
  • found they had christened him 'Heathcliff': it was the name of a son who
  • died in childhood, and it has served him ever since, both for Christian
  • and surname. Miss Cathy and he were now very thick; but Hindley hated
  • him: and to say the truth I did the same; and we plagued and went on with
  • him shamefully: for I wasn't reasonable enough to feel my injustice, and
  • the mistress never put in a word on his behalf when she saw him wronged.
  • He seemed a sullen, patient child; hardened, perhaps, to ill-treatment:
  • he would stand Hindley's blows without winking or shedding a tear, and my
  • pinches moved him only to draw in a breath and open his eyes, as if he
  • had hurt himself by accident, and nobody was to blame. This endurance
  • made old Earnshaw furious, when he discovered his son persecuting the
  • poor fatherless child, as he called him. He took to Heathcliff
  • strangely, believing all he said (for that matter, he said precious
  • little, and generally the truth), and petting him up far above Cathy, who
  • was too mischievous and wayward for a favourite.
  • So, from the very beginning, he bred bad feeling in the house; and at
  • Mrs. Earnshaw's death, which happened in less than two years after, the
  • young master had learned to regard his father as an oppressor rather than
  • a friend, and Heathcliff as a usurper of his parent's affections and his
  • privileges; and he grew bitter with brooding over these injuries. I
  • sympathised a while; but when the children fell ill of the measles, and I
  • had to tend them, and take on me the cares of a woman at once, I changed
  • my idea. Heathcliff was dangerously sick; and while he lay at the worst
  • he would have me constantly by his pillow: I suppose he felt I did a good
  • deal for him, and he hadn't wit to guess that I was compelled to do it.
  • However, I will say this, he was the quietest child that ever nurse
  • watched over. The difference between him and the others forced me to be
  • less partial. Cathy and her brother harassed me terribly: he was as
  • uncomplaining as a lamb; though hardness, not gentleness, made him give
  • little trouble.
  • He got through, and the doctor affirmed it was in a great measure owing
  • to me, and praised me for my care. I was vain of his commendations, and
  • softened towards the being by whose means I earned them, and thus Hindley
  • lost his last ally: still I couldn't dote on Heathcliff, and I wondered
  • often what my master saw to admire so much in the sullen boy; who never,
  • to my recollection, repaid his indulgence by any sign of gratitude. He
  • was not insolent to his benefactor, he was simply insensible; though
  • knowing perfectly the hold he had on his heart, and conscious he had only
  • to speak and all the house would be obliged to bend to his wishes. As an
  • instance, I remember Mr. Earnshaw once bought a couple of colts at the
  • parish fair, and gave the lads each one. Heathcliff took the handsomest,
  • but it soon fell lame, and when he discovered it, he said to Hindley--
  • 'You must exchange horses with me: I don't like mine; and if you won't I
  • shall tell your father of the three thrashings you've given me this week,
  • and show him my arm, which is black to the shoulder.' Hindley put out
  • his tongue, and cuffed him over the ears. 'You'd better do it at once,'
  • he persisted, escaping to the porch (they were in the stable): 'you will
  • have to: and if I speak of these blows, you'll get them again with
  • interest.' 'Off, dog!' cried Hindley, threatening him with an iron
  • weight used for weighing potatoes and hay. 'Throw it,' he replied,
  • standing still, 'and then I'll tell how you boasted that you would turn
  • me out of doors as soon as he died, and see whether he will not turn you
  • out directly.' Hindley threw it, hitting him on the breast, and down he
  • fell, but staggered up immediately, breathless and white; and, had not I
  • prevented it, he would have gone just so to the master, and got full
  • revenge by letting his condition plead for him, intimating who had caused
  • it. 'Take my colt, Gipsy, then!' said young Earnshaw. 'And I pray that
  • he may break your neck: take him, and be damned, you beggarly interloper!
  • and wheedle my father out of all he has: only afterwards show him what
  • you are, imp of Satan.--And take that, I hope he'll kick out your
  • brains!'
  • Heathcliff had gone to loose the beast, and shift it to his own stall; he
  • was passing behind it, when Hindley finished his speech by knocking him
  • under its feet, and without stopping to examine whether his hopes were
  • fulfilled, ran away as fast as he could. I was surprised to witness how
  • coolly the child gathered himself up, and went on with his intention;
  • exchanging saddles and all, and then sitting down on a bundle of hay to
  • overcome the qualm which the violent blow occasioned, before he entered
  • the house. I persuaded him easily to let me lay the blame of his bruises
  • on the horse: he minded little what tale was told since he had what he
  • wanted. He complained so seldom, indeed, of such stirs as these, that I
  • really thought him not vindictive: I was deceived completely, as you will
  • hear.
  • CHAPTER V
  • In the course of time Mr. Earnshaw began to fail. He had been active and
  • healthy, yet his strength left him suddenly; and when he was confined to
  • the chimney-corner he grew grievously irritable. A nothing vexed him;
  • and suspected slights of his authority nearly threw him into fits. This
  • was especially to be remarked if any one attempted to impose upon, or
  • domineer over, his favourite: he was painfully jealous lest a word
  • should be spoken amiss to him; seeming to have got into his head the
  • notion that, because he liked Heathcliff, all hated, and longed to do
  • him an ill-turn. It was a disadvantage to the lad; for the kinder among
  • us did not wish to fret the master, so we humoured his partiality; and
  • that humouring was rich nourishment to the child's pride and black
  • tempers. Still it became in a manner necessary; twice, or thrice,
  • Hindley's manifestation of scorn, while his father was near, roused the
  • old man to a fury: he seized his stick to strike him, and shook with
  • rage that he could not do it.
  • At last, our curate (we had a curate then who made the living answer by
  • teaching the little Lintons and Earnshaws, and farming his bit of land
  • himself) advised that the young man should be sent to college; and Mr.
  • Earnshaw agreed, though with a heavy spirit, for he said--'Hindley was
  • nought, and would never thrive as where he wandered.'
  • I hoped heartily we should have peace now. It hurt me to think the
  • master should be made uncomfortable by his own good deed. I fancied the
  • discontent of age and disease arose from his family disagreements; as he
  • would have it that it did: really, you know, sir, it was in his sinking
  • frame. We might have got on tolerably, notwithstanding, but for two
  • people--Miss Cathy, and Joseph, the servant: you saw him, I daresay, up
  • yonder. He was, and is yet most likely, the wearisomest self-righteous
  • Pharisee that ever ransacked a Bible to rake the promises to himself and
  • fling the curses to his neighbours. By his knack of sermonising and
  • pious discoursing, he contrived to make a great impression on Mr.
  • Earnshaw; and the more feeble the master became, the more influence he
  • gained. He was relentless in worrying him about his soul's concerns, and
  • about ruling his children rigidly. He encouraged him to regard Hindley
  • as a reprobate; and, night after night, he regularly grumbled out a long
  • string of tales against Heathcliff and Catherine: always minding to
  • flatter Earnshaw's weakness by heaping the heaviest blame on the latter.
  • Certainly she had ways with her such as I never saw a child take up
  • before; and she put all of us past our patience fifty times and oftener
  • in a day: from the hour she came down-stairs till the hour she went to
  • bed, we had not a minute's security that she wouldn't be in mischief. Her
  • spirits were always at high-water mark, her tongue always going--singing,
  • laughing, and plaguing everybody who would not do the same. A wild,
  • wicked slip she was--but she had the bonniest eye, the sweetest smile,
  • and lightest foot in the parish: and, after all, I believe she meant no
  • harm; for when once she made you cry in good earnest, it seldom happened
  • that she would not keep you company, and oblige you to be quiet that you
  • might comfort her. She was much too fond of Heathcliff. The greatest
  • punishment we could invent for her was to keep her separate from him: yet
  • she got chided more than any of us on his account. In play, she liked
  • exceedingly to act the little mistress; using her hands freely, and
  • commanding her companions: she did so to me, but I would not bear
  • slapping and ordering; and so I let her know.
  • Now, Mr. Earnshaw did not understand jokes from his children: he had
  • always been strict and grave with them; and Catherine, on her part, had
  • no idea why her father should be crosser and less patient in his ailing
  • condition than he was in his prime. His peevish reproofs wakened in her
  • a naughty delight to provoke him: she was never so happy as when we were
  • all scolding her at once, and she defying us with her bold, saucy look,
  • and her ready words; turning Joseph's religious curses into ridicule,
  • baiting me, and doing just what her father hated most--showing how her
  • pretended insolence, which he thought real, had more power over
  • Heathcliff than his kindness: how the boy would do _her_ bidding in
  • anything, and _his_ only when it suited his own inclination. After
  • behaving as badly as possible all day, she sometimes came fondling to
  • make it up at night. 'Nay, Cathy,' the old man would say, 'I cannot love
  • thee, thou'rt worse than thy brother. Go, say thy prayers, child, and
  • ask God's pardon. I doubt thy mother and I must rue that we ever reared
  • thee!' That made her cry, at first; and then being repulsed continually
  • hardened her, and she laughed if I told her to say she was sorry for her
  • faults, and beg to be forgiven.
  • But the hour came, at last, that ended Mr. Earnshaw's troubles on earth.
  • He died quietly in his chair one October evening, seated by the
  • fire-side. A high wind blustered round the house, and roared in the
  • chimney: it sounded wild and stormy, yet it was not cold, and we were all
  • together--I, a little removed from the hearth, busy at my knitting, and
  • Joseph reading his Bible near the table (for the servants generally sat
  • in the house then, after their work was done). Miss Cathy had been sick,
  • and that made her still; she leant against her father's knee, and
  • Heathcliff was lying on the floor with his head in her lap. I remember
  • the master, before he fell into a doze, stroking her bonny hair--it
  • pleased him rarely to see her gentle--and saying, 'Why canst thou not
  • always be a good lass, Cathy?' And she turned her face up to his, and
  • laughed, and answered, 'Why cannot you always be a good man, father?' But
  • as soon as she saw him vexed again, she kissed his hand, and said she
  • would sing him to sleep. She began singing very low, till his fingers
  • dropped from hers, and his head sank on his breast. Then I told her to
  • hush, and not stir, for fear she should wake him. We all kept as mute as
  • mice a full half-hour, and should have done so longer, only Joseph,
  • having finished his chapter, got up and said that he must rouse the
  • master for prayers and bed. He stepped forward, and called him by name,
  • and touched his shoulder; but he would not move: so he took the candle
  • and looked at him. I thought there was something wrong as he set down
  • the light; and seizing the children each by an arm, whispered them to
  • 'frame up-stairs, and make little din--they might pray alone that
  • evening--he had summut to do.'
  • 'I shall bid father good-night first,' said Catherine, putting her arms
  • round his neck, before we could hinder her. The poor thing discovered
  • her loss directly--she screamed out--'Oh, he's dead, Heathcliff! he's
  • dead!' And they both set up a heart-breaking cry.
  • I joined my wail to theirs, loud and bitter; but Joseph asked what we
  • could be thinking of to roar in that way over a saint in heaven. He told
  • me to put on my cloak and run to Gimmerton for the doctor and the parson.
  • I could not guess the use that either would be of, then. However, I
  • went, through wind and rain, and brought one, the doctor, back with me;
  • the other said he would come in the morning. Leaving Joseph to explain
  • matters, I ran to the children's room: their door was ajar, I saw they
  • had never lain down, though it was past midnight; but they were calmer,
  • and did not need me to console them. The little souls were comforting
  • each other with better thoughts than I could have hit on: no parson in
  • the world ever pictured heaven so beautifully as they did, in their
  • innocent talk; and, while I sobbed and listened, I could not help wishing
  • we were all there safe together.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • Mr. Hindley came home to the funeral; and--a thing that amazed us, and
  • set the neighbours gossiping right and left--he brought a wife with him.
  • What she was, and where she was born, he never informed us: probably, she
  • had neither money nor name to recommend her, or he would scarcely have
  • kept the union from his father.
  • She was not one that would have disturbed the house much on her own
  • account. Every object she saw, the moment she crossed the threshold,
  • appeared to delight her; and every circumstance that took place about
  • her: except the preparing for the burial, and the presence of the
  • mourners. I thought she was half silly, from her behaviour while that
  • went on: she ran into her chamber, and made me come with her, though I
  • should have been dressing the children: and there she sat shivering and
  • clasping her hands, and asking repeatedly--'Are they gone yet?' Then she
  • began describing with hysterical emotion the effect it produced on her to
  • see black; and started, and trembled, and, at last, fell a-weeping--and
  • when I asked what was the matter, answered, she didn't know; but she felt
  • so afraid of dying! I imagined her as little likely to die as myself.
  • She was rather thin, but young, and fresh-complexioned, and her eyes
  • sparkled as bright as diamonds. I did remark, to be sure, that mounting
  • the stairs made her breathe very quick; that the least sudden noise set
  • her all in a quiver, and that she coughed troublesomely sometimes: but I
  • knew nothing of what these symptoms portended, and had no impulse to
  • sympathise with her. We don't in general take to foreigners here, Mr.
  • Lockwood, unless they take to us first.
  • Young Earnshaw was altered considerably in the three years of his
  • absence. He had grown sparer, and lost his colour, and spoke and dressed
  • quite differently; and, on the very day of his return, he told Joseph
  • and me we must thenceforth quarter ourselves in the back-kitchen, and
  • leave the house for him. Indeed, he would have carpeted and papered a
  • small spare room for a parlour; but his wife expressed such pleasure at
  • the white floor and huge glowing fireplace, at the pewter dishes and
  • delf-case, and dog-kennel, and the wide space there was to move about in
  • where they usually sat, that he thought it unnecessary to her comfort,
  • and so dropped the intention.
  • She expressed pleasure, too, at finding a sister among her new
  • acquaintance; and she prattled to Catherine, and kissed her, and ran
  • about with her, and gave her quantities of presents, at the beginning.
  • Her affection tired very soon, however, and when she grew peevish,
  • Hindley became tyrannical. A few words from her, evincing a dislike to
  • Heathcliff, were enough to rouse in him all his old hatred of the boy. He
  • drove him from their company to the servants, deprived him of the
  • instructions of the curate, and insisted that he should labour out of
  • doors instead; compelling him to do so as hard as any other lad on the
  • farm.
  • Heathcliff bore his degradation pretty well at first, because Cathy
  • taught him what she learnt, and worked or played with him in the fields.
  • They both promised fair to grow up as rude as savages; the young master
  • being entirely negligent how they behaved, and what they did, so they
  • kept clear of him. He would not even have seen after their going to
  • church on Sundays, only Joseph and the curate reprimanded his
  • carelessness when they absented themselves; and that reminded him to
  • order Heathcliff a flogging, and Catherine a fast from dinner or supper.
  • But it was one of their chief amusements to run away to the moors in the
  • morning and remain there all day, and the after punishment grew a mere
  • thing to laugh at. The curate might set as many chapters as he pleased
  • for Catherine to get by heart, and Joseph might thrash Heathcliff till
  • his arm ached; they forgot everything the minute they were together
  • again: at least the minute they had contrived some naughty plan of
  • revenge; and many a time I've cried to myself to watch them growing more
  • reckless daily, and I not daring to speak a syllable, for fear of losing
  • the small power I still retained over the unfriended creatures. One
  • Sunday evening, it chanced that they were banished from the sitting-room,
  • for making a noise, or a light offence of the kind; and when I went to
  • call them to supper, I could discover them nowhere. We searched the
  • house, above and below, and the yard and stables; they were invisible:
  • and, at last, Hindley in a passion told us to bolt the doors, and swore
  • nobody should let them in that night. The household went to bed; and I,
  • too, anxious to lie down, opened my lattice and put my head out to
  • hearken, though it rained: determined to admit them in spite of the
  • prohibition, should they return. In a while, I distinguished steps
  • coming up the road, and the light of a lantern glimmered through the
  • gate. I threw a shawl over my head and ran to prevent them from waking
  • Mr. Earnshaw by knocking. There was Heathcliff, by himself: it gave me a
  • start to see him alone.
  • 'Where is Miss Catherine?' I cried hurriedly. 'No accident, I hope?' 'At
  • Thrushcross Grange,' he answered; 'and I would have been there too, but
  • they had not the manners to ask me to stay.' 'Well, you will catch it!'
  • I said: 'you'll never be content till you're sent about your business.
  • What in the world led you wandering to Thrushcross Grange?' 'Let me get
  • off my wet clothes, and I'll tell you all about it, Nelly,' he replied.
  • I bid him beware of rousing the master, and while he undressed and I
  • waited to put out the candle, he continued--'Cathy and I escaped from
  • the wash-house to have a ramble at liberty, and getting a glimpse of the
  • Grange lights, we thought we would just go and see whether the Lintons
  • passed their Sunday evenings standing shivering in corners, while their
  • father and mother sat eating and drinking, and singing and laughing, and
  • burning their eyes out before the fire. Do you think they do? Or reading
  • sermons, and being catechised by their manservant, and set to learn a
  • column of Scripture names, if they don't answer properly?' 'Probably
  • not,' I responded. 'They are good children, no doubt, and don't deserve
  • the treatment you receive, for your bad conduct.' 'Don't cant, Nelly,'
  • he said: 'nonsense! We ran from the top of the Heights to the park,
  • without stopping--Catherine completely beaten in the race, because she
  • was barefoot. You'll have to seek for her shoes in the bog to-morrow. We
  • crept through a broken hedge, groped our way up the path, and planted
  • ourselves on a flower-plot under the drawing-room window. The light came
  • from thence; they had not put up the shutters, and the curtains were
  • only half closed. Both of us were able to look in by standing on the
  • basement, and clinging to the ledge, and we saw--ah! it was beautiful--a
  • splendid place carpeted with crimson, and crimson-covered chairs and
  • tables, and a pure white ceiling bordered by gold, a shower of
  • glass-drops hanging in silver chains from the centre, and shimmering
  • with little soft tapers. Old Mr. and Mrs. Linton were not there; Edgar
  • and his sisters had it entirely to themselves. Shouldn't they have been
  • happy? We should have thought ourselves in heaven! And now, guess what
  • your good children were doing? Isabella--I believe she is eleven, a year
  • younger than Cathy--lay screaming at the farther end of the room,
  • shrieking as if witches were running red-hot needles into her. Edgar
  • stood on the hearth weeping silently, and in the middle of the table sat
  • a little dog, shaking its paw and yelping; which, from their mutual
  • accusations, we understood they had nearly pulled in two between them.
  • The idiots! That was their pleasure! to quarrel who should hold a heap
  • of warm hair, and each begin to cry because both, after struggling to
  • get it, refused to take it. We laughed outright at the petted things; we
  • did despise them! When would you catch me wishing to have what Catherine
  • wanted? or find us by ourselves, seeking entertainment in yelling, and
  • sobbing, and rolling on the ground, divided by the whole room? I'd not
  • exchange, for a thousand lives, my condition here, for Edgar Linton's at
  • Thrushcross Grange--not if I might have the privilege of flinging Joseph
  • off the highest gable, and painting the house-front with Hindley's
  • blood!'
  • 'Hush, hush!' I interrupted. 'Still you have not told me, Heathcliff,
  • how Catherine is left behind?'
  • 'I told you we laughed,' he answered. 'The Lintons heard us, and with
  • one accord they shot like arrows to the door; there was silence, and
  • then a cry, "Oh, mamma, mamma! Oh, papa! Oh, mamma, come here. Oh, papa,
  • oh!" They really did howl out something in that way. We made frightful
  • noises to terrify them still more, and then we dropped off the ledge,
  • because somebody was drawing the bars, and we felt we had better flee. I
  • had Cathy by the hand, and was urging her on, when all at once she fell
  • down. "Run, Heathcliff, run!" she whispered. "They have let the bull-dog
  • loose, and he holds me!" The devil had seized her ankle, Nelly: I heard
  • his abominable snorting. She did not yell out--no! she would have
  • scorned to do it, if she had been spitted on the horns of a mad cow. I
  • did, though: I vociferated curses enough to annihilate any fiend in
  • Christendom; and I got a stone and thrust it between his jaws, and tried
  • with all my might to cram it down his throat. A beast of a servant came
  • up with a lantern, at last, shouting--"Keep fast, Skulker, keep fast!"
  • He changed his note, however, when he saw Skulker's game. The dog was
  • throttled off; his huge, purple tongue hanging half a foot out of his
  • mouth, and his pendent lips streaming with bloody slaver. The man took
  • Cathy up; she was sick: not from fear, I'm certain, but from pain. He
  • carried her in; I followed, grumbling execrations and vengeance. "What
  • prey, Robert?" hallooed Linton from the entrance. "Skulker has caught a
  • little girl, sir," he replied; "and there's a lad here," he added,
  • making a clutch at me, "who looks an out-and-outer! Very like the
  • robbers were for putting them through the window to open the doors to
  • the gang after all were asleep, that they might murder us at their ease.
  • Hold your tongue, you foul-mouthed thief, you! you shall go to the
  • gallows for this. Mr. Linton, sir, don't lay by your gun." "No, no,
  • Robert," said the old fool. "The rascals knew that yesterday was my
  • rent-day: they thought to have me cleverly. Come in; I'll furnish them a
  • reception. There, John, fasten the chain. Give Skulker some water,
  • Jenny. To beard a magistrate in his stronghold, and on the Sabbath, too!
  • Where will their insolence stop? Oh, my dear Mary, look here! Don't be
  • afraid, it is but a boy--yet the villain scowls so plainly in his face;
  • would it not be a kindness to the country to hang him at once, before he
  • shows his nature in acts as well as features?" He pulled me under the
  • chandelier, and Mrs. Linton placed her spectacles on her nose and raised
  • her hands in horror. The cowardly children crept nearer also, Isabella
  • lisping--"Frightful thing! Put him in the cellar, papa. He's exactly
  • like the son of the fortune-teller that stole my tame pheasant. Isn't
  • he, Edgar?"
  • 'While they examined me, Cathy came round; she heard the last speech, and
  • laughed. Edgar Linton, after an inquisitive stare, collected sufficient
  • wit to recognise her. They see us at church, you know, though we seldom
  • meet them elsewhere. "That's Miss Earnshaw?" he whispered to his mother,
  • "and look how Skulker has bitten her--how her foot bleeds!"
  • '"Miss Earnshaw? Nonsense!" cried the dame; "Miss Earnshaw scouring the
  • country with a gipsy! And yet, my dear, the child is in mourning--surely
  • it is--and she may be lamed for life!"
  • '"What culpable carelessness in her brother!" exclaimed Mr. Linton,
  • turning from me to Catherine. "I've understood from Shielders"' (that
  • was the curate, sir) '"that he lets her grow up in absolute heathenism.
  • But who is this? Where did she pick up this companion? Oho! I declare
  • he is that strange acquisition my late neighbour made, in his journey to
  • Liverpool--a little Lascar, or an American or Spanish castaway."
  • '"A wicked boy, at all events," remarked the old lady, "and quite unfit
  • for a decent house! Did you notice his language, Linton? I'm shocked
  • that my children should have heard it."
  • 'I recommenced cursing--don't be angry, Nelly--and so Robert was ordered
  • to take me off. I refused to go without Cathy; he dragged me into the
  • garden, pushed the lantern into my hand, assured me that Mr. Earnshaw
  • should be informed of my behaviour, and, bidding me march directly,
  • secured the door again. The curtains were still looped up at one corner,
  • and I resumed my station as spy; because, if Catherine had wished to
  • return, I intended shattering their great glass panes to a million of
  • fragments, unless they let her out. She sat on the sofa quietly. Mrs.
  • Linton took off the grey cloak of the dairy-maid which we had borrowed
  • for our excursion, shaking her head and expostulating with her, I
  • suppose: she was a young lady, and they made a distinction between her
  • treatment and mine. Then the woman-servant brought a basin of warm
  • water, and washed her feet; and Mr. Linton mixed a tumbler of negus, and
  • Isabella emptied a plateful of cakes into her lap, and Edgar stood gaping
  • at a distance. Afterwards, they dried and combed her beautiful hair, and
  • gave her a pair of enormous slippers, and wheeled her to the fire; and I
  • left her, as merry as she could be, dividing her food between the little
  • dog and Skulker, whose nose she pinched as he ate; and kindling a spark
  • of spirit in the vacant blue eyes of the Lintons--a dim reflection from
  • her own enchanting face. I saw they were full of stupid admiration; she
  • is so immeasurably superior to them--to everybody on earth, is she not,
  • Nelly?'
  • 'There will more come of this business than you reckon on,' I answered,
  • covering him up and extinguishing the light. 'You are incurable,
  • Heathcliff; and Mr. Hindley will have to proceed to extremities, see if
  • he won't.' My words came truer than I desired. The luckless adventure
  • made Earnshaw furious. And then Mr. Linton, to mend matters, paid us a
  • visit himself on the morrow, and read the young master such a lecture on
  • the road he guided his family, that he was stirred to look about him, in
  • earnest. Heathcliff received no flogging, but he was told that the first
  • word he spoke to Miss Catherine should ensure a dismissal; and Mrs.
  • Earnshaw undertook to keep her sister-in-law in due restraint when she
  • returned home; employing art, not force: with force she would have found
  • it impossible.
  • CHAPTER VII
  • Cathy stayed at Thrushcross Grange five weeks: till Christmas. By that
  • time her ankle was thoroughly cured, and her manners much improved. The
  • mistress visited her often in the interval, and commenced her plan of
  • reform by trying to raise her self-respect with fine clothes and
  • flattery, which she took readily; so that, instead of a wild, hatless
  • little savage jumping into the house, and rushing to squeeze us all
  • breathless, there 'lighted from a handsome black pony a very dignified
  • person, with brown ringlets falling from the cover of a feathered beaver,
  • and a long cloth habit, which she was obliged to hold up with both hands
  • that she might sail in. Hindley lifted her from her horse, exclaiming
  • delightedly, 'Why, Cathy, you are quite a beauty! I should scarcely have
  • known you: you look like a lady now. Isabella Linton is not to be
  • compared with her, is she, Frances?' 'Isabella has not her natural
  • advantages,' replied his wife: 'but she must mind and not grow wild again
  • here. Ellen, help Miss Catherine off with her things--Stay, dear, you
  • will disarrange your curls--let me untie your hat.'
  • I removed the habit, and there shone forth beneath a grand plaid silk
  • frock, white trousers, and burnished shoes; and, while her eyes sparkled
  • joyfully when the dogs came bounding up to welcome her, she dared hardly
  • touch them lest they should fawn upon her splendid garments. She kissed
  • me gently: I was all flour making the Christmas cake, and it would not
  • have done to give me a hug; and then she looked round for Heathcliff. Mr.
  • and Mrs. Earnshaw watched anxiously their meeting; thinking it would
  • enable them to judge, in some measure, what grounds they had for hoping
  • to succeed in separating the two friends.
  • Heathcliff was hard to discover, at first. If he were careless, and
  • uncared for, before Catherine's absence, he had been ten times more so
  • since. Nobody but I even did him the kindness to call him a dirty boy,
  • and bid him wash himself, once a week; and children of his age seldom
  • have a natural pleasure in soap and water. Therefore, not to mention his
  • clothes, which had seen three months' service in mire and dust, and his
  • thick uncombed hair, the surface of his face and hands was dismally
  • beclouded. He might well skulk behind the settle, on beholding such a
  • bright, graceful damsel enter the house, instead of a rough-headed
  • counterpart of himself, as he expected. 'Is Heathcliff not here?' she
  • demanded, pulling off her gloves, and displaying fingers wonderfully
  • whitened with doing nothing and staying indoors.
  • 'Heathcliff, you may come forward,' cried Mr. Hindley, enjoying his
  • discomfiture, and gratified to see what a forbidding young blackguard he
  • would be compelled to present himself. 'You may come and wish Miss
  • Catherine welcome, like the other servants.'
  • Cathy, catching a glimpse of her friend in his concealment, flew to
  • embrace him; she bestowed seven or eight kisses on his cheek within the
  • second, and then stopped, and drawing back, burst into a laugh,
  • exclaiming, 'Why, how very black and cross you look! and how--how funny
  • and grim! But that's because I'm used to Edgar and Isabella Linton.
  • Well, Heathcliff, have you forgotten me?'
  • She had some reason to put the question, for shame and pride threw double
  • gloom over his countenance, and kept him immovable.
  • 'Shake hands, Heathcliff,' said Mr. Earnshaw, condescendingly; 'once in a
  • way that is permitted.'
  • 'I shall not,' replied the boy, finding his tongue at last; 'I shall not
  • stand to be laughed at. I shall not bear it!' And he would have broken
  • from the circle, but Miss Cathy seized him again.
  • 'I did not mean to laugh at you,' she said; 'I could not hinder myself:
  • Heathcliff, shake hands at least! What are you sulky for? It was only
  • that you looked odd. If you wash your face and brush your hair, it will
  • be all right: but you are so dirty!'
  • She gazed concernedly at the dusky fingers she held in her own, and also
  • at her dress; which she feared had gained no embellishment from its
  • contact with his.
  • 'You needn't have touched me!' he answered, following her eye and
  • snatching away his hand. 'I shall be as dirty as I please: and I like to
  • be dirty, and I will be dirty.'
  • With that he dashed headforemost out of the room, amid the merriment of
  • the master and mistress, and to the serious disturbance of Catherine; who
  • could not comprehend how her remarks should have produced such an
  • exhibition of bad temper.
  • After playing lady's-maid to the new-comer, and putting my cakes in the
  • oven, and making the house and kitchen cheerful with great fires,
  • befitting Christmas-eve, I prepared to sit down and amuse myself by
  • singing carols, all alone; regardless of Joseph's affirmations that he
  • considered the merry tunes I chose as next door to songs. He had retired
  • to private prayer in his chamber, and Mr. and Mrs. Earnshaw were engaging
  • Missy's attention by sundry gay trifles bought for her to present to the
  • little Lintons, as an acknowledgment of their kindness. They had invited
  • them to spend the morrow at Wuthering Heights, and the invitation had
  • been accepted, on one condition: Mrs. Linton begged that her darlings
  • might be kept carefully apart from that 'naughty swearing boy.'
  • Under these circumstances I remained solitary. I smelt the rich scent of
  • the heating spices; and admired the shining kitchen utensils, the
  • polished clock, decked in holly, the silver mugs ranged on a tray ready
  • to be filled with mulled ale for supper; and above all, the speckless
  • purity of my particular care--the scoured and well-swept floor. I gave
  • due inward applause to every object, and then I remembered how old
  • Earnshaw used to come in when all was tidied, and call me a cant lass,
  • and slip a shilling into my hand as a Christmas-box; and from that I went
  • on to think of his fondness for Heathcliff, and his dread lest he should
  • suffer neglect after death had removed him: and that naturally led me to
  • consider the poor lad's situation now, and from singing I changed my mind
  • to crying. It struck me soon, however, there would be more sense in
  • endeavouring to repair some of his wrongs than shedding tears over them:
  • I got up and walked into the court to seek him. He was not far; I found
  • him smoothing the glossy coat of the new pony in the stable, and feeding
  • the other beasts, according to custom.
  • 'Make haste, Heathcliff!' I said, 'the kitchen is so comfortable; and
  • Joseph is up-stairs: make haste, and let me dress you smart before Miss
  • Cathy comes out, and then you can sit together, with the whole hearth to
  • yourselves, and have a long chatter till bedtime.'
  • He proceeded with his task, and never turned his head towards me.
  • 'Come--are you coming?' I continued. 'There's a little cake for each of
  • you, nearly enough; and you'll need half-an-hour's donning.'
  • I waited five minutes, but getting no answer left him. Catherine supped
  • with her brother and sister-in-law: Joseph and I joined at an unsociable
  • meal, seasoned with reproofs on one side and sauciness on the other. His
  • cake and cheese remained on the table all night for the fairies. He
  • managed to continue work till nine o'clock, and then marched dumb and
  • dour to his chamber. Cathy sat up late, having a world of things to
  • order for the reception of her new friends: she came into the kitchen
  • once to speak to her old one; but he was gone, and she only stayed to ask
  • what was the matter with him, and then went back. In the morning he rose
  • early; and, as it was a holiday, carried his ill-humour on to the moors;
  • not re-appearing till the family were departed for church. Fasting and
  • reflection seemed to have brought him to a better spirit. He hung about
  • me for a while, and having screwed up his courage, exclaimed
  • abruptly--'Nelly, make me decent, I'm going to be good.'
  • 'High time, Heathcliff,' I said; 'you _have_ grieved Catherine: she's
  • sorry she ever came home, I daresay! It looks as if you envied her,
  • because she is more thought of than you.'
  • The notion of _envying_ Catherine was incomprehensible to him, but the
  • notion of grieving her he understood clearly enough.
  • 'Did she say she was grieved?' he inquired, looking very serious.
  • 'She cried when I told her you were off again this morning.'
  • 'Well, _I_ cried last night,' he returned, 'and I had more reason to cry
  • than she.'
  • 'Yes: you had the reason of going to bed with a proud heart and an empty
  • stomach,' said I. 'Proud people breed sad sorrows for themselves. But,
  • if you be ashamed of your touchiness, you must ask pardon, mind, when she
  • comes in. You must go up and offer to kiss her, and say--you know best
  • what to say; only do it heartily, and not as if you thought her converted
  • into a stranger by her grand dress. And now, though I have dinner to get
  • ready, I'll steal time to arrange you so that Edgar Linton shall look
  • quite a doll beside you: and that he does. You are younger, and yet,
  • I'll be bound, you are taller and twice as broad across the shoulders;
  • you could knock him down in a twinkling; don't you feel that you could?'
  • Heathcliff's face brightened a moment; then it was overcast afresh, and
  • he sighed.
  • 'But, Nelly, if I knocked him down twenty times, that wouldn't make him
  • less handsome or me more so. I wish I had light hair and a fair skin,
  • and was dressed and behaved as well, and had a chance of being as rich as
  • he will be!'
  • 'And cried for mamma at every turn,' I added, 'and trembled if a country
  • lad heaved his fist against you, and sat at home all day for a shower of
  • rain. Oh, Heathcliff, you are showing a poor spirit! Come to the glass,
  • and I'll let you see what you should wish. Do you mark those two lines
  • between your eyes; and those thick brows, that, instead of rising arched,
  • sink in the middle; and that couple of black fiends, so deeply buried,
  • who never open their windows boldly, but lurk glinting under them, like
  • devil's spies? Wish and learn to smooth away the surly wrinkles, to
  • raise your lids frankly, and change the fiends to confident, innocent
  • angels, suspecting and doubting nothing, and always seeing friends where
  • they are not sure of foes. Don't get the expression of a vicious cur
  • that appears to know the kicks it gets are its dessert, and yet hates all
  • the world, as well as the kicker, for what it suffers.'
  • 'In other words, I must wish for Edgar Linton's great blue eyes and even
  • forehead,' he replied. 'I do--and that won't help me to them.'
  • 'A good heart will help you to a bonny face, my lad,' I continued, 'if
  • you were a regular black; and a bad one will turn the bonniest into
  • something worse than ugly. And now that we've done washing, and combing,
  • and sulking--tell me whether you don't think yourself rather handsome?
  • I'll tell you, I do. You're fit for a prince in disguise. Who knows but
  • your father was Emperor of China, and your mother an Indian queen, each
  • of them able to buy up, with one week's income, Wuthering Heights and
  • Thrushcross Grange together? And you were kidnapped by wicked sailors
  • and brought to England. Were I in your place, I would frame high notions
  • of my birth; and the thoughts of what I was should give me courage and
  • dignity to support the oppressions of a little farmer!'
  • So I chattered on; and Heathcliff gradually lost his frown and began to
  • look quite pleasant, when all at once our conversation was interrupted by
  • a rumbling sound moving up the road and entering the court. He ran to
  • the window and I to the door, just in time to behold the two Lintons
  • descend from the family carriage, smothered in cloaks and furs, and the
  • Earnshaws dismount from their horses: they often rode to church in
  • winter. Catherine took a hand of each of the children, and brought them
  • into the house and set them before the fire, which quickly put colour
  • into their white faces.
  • I urged my companion to hasten now and show his amiable humour, and he
  • willingly obeyed; but ill luck would have it that, as he opened the door
  • leading from the kitchen on one side, Hindley opened it on the other.
  • They met, and the master, irritated at seeing him clean and cheerful, or,
  • perhaps, eager to keep his promise to Mrs. Linton, shoved him back with a
  • sudden thrust, and angrily bade Joseph 'keep the fellow out of the
  • room--send him into the garret till dinner is over. He'll be cramming
  • his fingers in the tarts and stealing the fruit, if left alone with them
  • a minute.'
  • 'Nay, sir,' I could not avoid answering, 'he'll touch nothing, not he:
  • and I suppose he must have his share of the dainties as well as we.'
  • 'He shall have his share of my hand, if I catch him downstairs till
  • dark,' cried Hindley. 'Begone, you vagabond! What! you are attempting
  • the coxcomb, are you? Wait till I get hold of those elegant locks--see
  • if I won't pull them a bit longer!'
  • 'They are long enough already,' observed Master Linton, peeping from the
  • doorway; 'I wonder they don't make his head ache. It's like a colt's
  • mane over his eyes!'
  • He ventured this remark without any intention to insult; but Heathcliff's
  • violent nature was not prepared to endure the appearance of impertinence
  • from one whom he seemed to hate, even then, as a rival. He seized a
  • tureen of hot apple sauce (the first thing that came under his grip) and
  • dashed it full against the speaker's face and neck; who instantly
  • commenced a lament that brought Isabella and Catherine hurrying to the
  • place. Mr. Earnshaw snatched up the culprit directly and conveyed him to
  • his chamber; where, doubtless, he administered a rough remedy to cool the
  • fit of passion, for he appeared red and breathless. I got the dishcloth,
  • and rather spitefully scrubbed Edgar's nose and mouth, affirming it
  • served him right for meddling. His sister began weeping to go home, and
  • Cathy stood by confounded, blushing for all.
  • 'You should not have spoken to him!' she expostulated with Master Linton.
  • 'He was in a bad temper, and now you've spoilt your visit; and he'll be
  • flogged: I hate him to be flogged! I can't eat my dinner. Why did you
  • speak to him, Edgar?'
  • 'I didn't,' sobbed the youth, escaping from my hands, and finishing the
  • remainder of the purification with his cambric pocket-handkerchief. 'I
  • promised mamma that I wouldn't say one word to him, and I didn't.'
  • 'Well, don't cry,' replied Catherine, contemptuously; 'you're not killed.
  • Don't make more mischief; my brother is coming: be quiet! Hush,
  • Isabella! Has anybody hurt you?'
  • 'There, there, children--to your seats!' cried Hindley, bustling in.
  • 'That brute of a lad has warmed me nicely. Next time, Master Edgar, take
  • the law into your own fists--it will give you an appetite!'
  • The little party recovered its equanimity at sight of the fragrant feast.
  • They were hungry after their ride, and easily consoled, since no real
  • harm had befallen them. Mr. Earnshaw carved bountiful platefuls, and the
  • mistress made them merry with lively talk. I waited behind her chair,
  • and was pained to behold Catherine, with dry eyes and an indifferent air,
  • commence cutting up the wing of a goose before her. 'An unfeeling
  • child,' I thought to myself; 'how lightly she dismisses her old
  • playmate's troubles. I could not have imagined her to be so selfish.'
  • She lifted a mouthful to her lips: then she set it down again: her cheeks
  • flushed, and the tears gushed over them. She slipped her fork to the
  • floor, and hastily dived under the cloth to conceal her emotion. I did
  • not call her unfeeling long; for I perceived she was in purgatory
  • throughout the day, and wearying to find an opportunity of getting by
  • herself, or paying a visit to Heathcliff, who had been locked up by the
  • master: as I discovered, on endeavouring to introduce to him a private
  • mess of victuals.
  • In the evening we had a dance. Cathy begged that he might be liberated
  • then, as Isabella Linton had no partner: her entreaties were vain, and I
  • was appointed to supply the deficiency. We got rid of all gloom in the
  • excitement of the exercise, and our pleasure was increased by the arrival
  • of the Gimmerton band, mustering fifteen strong: a trumpet, a trombone,
  • clarionets, bassoons, French horns, and a bass viol, besides singers.
  • They go the rounds of all the respectable houses, and receive
  • contributions every Christmas, and we esteemed it a first-rate treat to
  • hear them. After the usual carols had been sung, we set them to songs
  • and glees. Mrs. Earnshaw loved the music, and so they gave us plenty.
  • Catherine loved it too: but she said it sounded sweetest at the top of
  • the steps, and she went up in the dark: I followed. They shut the house
  • door below, never noting our absence, it was so full of people. She made
  • no stay at the stairs'-head, but mounted farther, to the garret where
  • Heathcliff was confined, and called him. He stubbornly declined
  • answering for a while: she persevered, and finally persuaded him to hold
  • communion with her through the boards. I let the poor things converse
  • unmolested, till I supposed the songs were going to cease, and the
  • singers to get some refreshment: then I clambered up the ladder to warn
  • her. Instead of finding her outside, I heard her voice within. The
  • little monkey had crept by the skylight of one garret, along the roof,
  • into the skylight of the other, and it was with the utmost difficulty I
  • could coax her out again. When she did come, Heathcliff came with her,
  • and she insisted that I should take him into the kitchen, as my
  • fellow-servant had gone to a neighbour's, to be removed from the sound
  • of our 'devil's psalmody,' as it pleased him to call it. I told them I
  • intended by no means to encourage their tricks: but as the prisoner had
  • never broken his fast since yesterday's dinner, I would wink at his
  • cheating Mr. Hindley that once. He went down: I set him a stool by the
  • fire, and offered him a quantity of good things: but he was sick and
  • could eat little, and my attempts to entertain him were thrown away. He
  • leant his two elbows on his knees, and his chin on his hands and
  • remained rapt in dumb meditation. On my inquiring the subject of his
  • thoughts, he answered gravely--'I'm trying to settle how I shall pay
  • Hindley back. I don't care how long I wait, if I can only do it at last.
  • I hope he will not die before I do!'
  • 'For shame, Heathcliff!' said I. 'It is for God to punish wicked people;
  • we should learn to forgive.'
  • 'No, God won't have the satisfaction that I shall,' he returned. 'I only
  • wish I knew the best way! Let me alone, and I'll plan it out: while I'm
  • thinking of that I don't feel pain.'
  • 'But, Mr. Lockwood, I forget these tales cannot divert you. I'm annoyed
  • how I should dream of chattering on at such a rate; and your gruel cold,
  • and you nodding for bed! I could have told Heathcliff's history, all
  • that you need hear, in half a dozen words.'
  • * * * * *
  • Thus interrupting herself, the housekeeper rose, and proceeded to lay
  • aside her sewing; but I felt incapable of moving from the hearth, and I
  • was very far from nodding. 'Sit still, Mrs. Dean,' I cried; 'do sit
  • still another half-hour. You've done just right to tell the story
  • leisurely. That is the method I like; and you must finish it in the same
  • style. I am interested in every character you have mentioned, more or
  • less.'
  • 'The clock is on the stroke of eleven, sir.'
  • 'No matter--I'm not accustomed to go to bed in the long hours. One or
  • two is early enough for a person who lies till ten.'
  • 'You shouldn't lie till ten. There's the very prime of the morning gone
  • long before that time. A person who has not done one-half his day's work
  • by ten o'clock, runs a chance of leaving the other half undone.'
  • 'Nevertheless, Mrs. Dean, resume your chair; because to-morrow I intend
  • lengthening the night till afternoon. I prognosticate for myself an
  • obstinate cold, at least.'
  • 'I hope not, sir. Well, you must allow me to leap over some three years;
  • during that space Mrs. Earnshaw--'
  • 'No, no, I'll allow nothing of the sort! Are you acquainted with the
  • mood of mind in which, if you were seated alone, and the cat licking its
  • kitten on the rug before you, you would watch the operation so intently
  • that puss's neglect of one ear would put you seriously out of temper?'
  • 'A terribly lazy mood, I should say.'
  • 'On the contrary, a tiresomely active one. It is mine, at present; and,
  • therefore, continue minutely. I perceive that people in these regions
  • acquire over people in towns the value that a spider in a dungeon does
  • over a spider in a cottage, to their various occupants; and yet the
  • deepened attraction is not entirely owing to the situation of the
  • looker-on. They _do_ live more in earnest, more in themselves, and less
  • in surface, change, and frivolous external things. I could fancy a love
  • for life here almost possible; and I was a fixed unbeliever in any love
  • of a year's standing. One state resembles setting a hungry man down to a
  • single dish, on which he may concentrate his entire appetite and do it
  • justice; the other, introducing him to a table laid out by French cooks:
  • he can perhaps extract as much enjoyment from the whole; but each part
  • is a mere atom in his regard and remembrance.'
  • 'Oh! here we are the same as anywhere else, when you get to know us,'
  • observed Mrs. Dean, somewhat puzzled at my speech.
  • 'Excuse me,' I responded; 'you, my good friend, are a striking evidence
  • against that assertion. Excepting a few provincialisms of slight
  • consequence, you have no marks of the manners which I am habituated to
  • consider as peculiar to your class. I am sure you have thought a great
  • deal more than the generality of servants think. You have been compelled
  • to cultivate your reflective faculties for want of occasions for
  • frittering your life away in silly trifles.'
  • Mrs. Dean laughed.
  • 'I certainly esteem myself a steady, reasonable kind of body,' she said;
  • 'not exactly from living among the hills and seeing one set of faces, and
  • one series of actions, from year's end to year's end; but I have
  • undergone sharp discipline, which has taught me wisdom; and then, I have
  • read more than you would fancy, Mr. Lockwood. You could not open a book
  • in this library that I have not looked into, and got something out of
  • also: unless it be that range of Greek and Latin, and that of French; and
  • those I know one from another: it is as much as you can expect of a poor
  • man's daughter. However, if I am to follow my story in true gossip's
  • fashion, I had better go on; and instead of leaping three years, I will
  • be content to pass to the next summer--the summer of 1778, that is nearly
  • twenty-three years ago.'
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • On the morning of a fine June day my first bonny little nursling, and the
  • last of the ancient Earnshaw stock, was born. We were busy with the hay
  • in a far-away field, when the girl that usually brought our breakfasts
  • came running an hour too soon across the meadow and up the lane, calling
  • me as she ran.
  • 'Oh, such a grand bairn!' she panted out. 'The finest lad that ever
  • breathed! But the doctor says missis must go: he says she's been in a
  • consumption these many months. I heard him tell Mr. Hindley: and now she
  • has nothing to keep her, and she'll be dead before winter. You must come
  • home directly. You're to nurse it, Nelly: to feed it with sugar and
  • milk, and take care of it day and night. I wish I were you, because it
  • will be all yours when there is no missis!'
  • 'But is she very ill?' I asked, flinging down my rake and tying my
  • bonnet.
  • 'I guess she is; yet she looks bravely,' replied the girl, 'and she talks
  • as if she thought of living to see it grow a man. She's out of her head
  • for joy, it's such a beauty! If I were her I'm certain I should not die:
  • I should get better at the bare sight of it, in spite of Kenneth. I was
  • fairly mad at him. Dame Archer brought the cherub down to master, in the
  • house, and his face just began to light up, when the old croaker steps
  • forward, and says he--"Earnshaw, it's a blessing your wife has been
  • spared to leave you this son. When she came, I felt convinced we
  • shouldn't keep her long; and now, I must tell you, the winter will
  • probably finish her. Don't take on, and fret about it too much: it can't
  • be helped. And besides, you should have known better than to choose such
  • a rush of a lass!"'
  • 'And what did the master answer?' I inquired.
  • 'I think he swore: but I didn't mind him, I was straining to see the
  • bairn,' and she began again to describe it rapturously. I, as zealous as
  • herself, hurried eagerly home to admire, on my part; though I was very
  • sad for Hindley's sake. He had room in his heart only for two idols--his
  • wife and himself: he doted on both, and adored one, and I couldn't
  • conceive how he would bear the loss.
  • When we got to Wuthering Heights, there he stood at the front door; and,
  • as I passed in, I asked, 'how was the baby?'
  • 'Nearly ready to run about, Nell!' he replied, putting on a cheerful
  • smile.
  • 'And the mistress?' I ventured to inquire; 'the doctor says she's--'
  • 'Damn the doctor!' he interrupted, reddening. 'Frances is quite right:
  • she'll be perfectly well by this time next week. Are you going
  • up-stairs? will you tell her that I'll come, if she'll promise not to
  • talk. I left her because she would not hold her tongue; and she
  • must--tell her Mr. Kenneth says she must be quiet.'
  • I delivered this message to Mrs. Earnshaw; she seemed in flighty spirits,
  • and replied merrily, 'I hardly spoke a word, Ellen, and there he has gone
  • out twice, crying. Well, say I promise I won't speak: but that does not
  • bind me not to laugh at him!'
  • Poor soul! Till within a week of her death that gay heart never failed
  • her; and her husband persisted doggedly, nay, furiously, in affirming her
  • health improved every day. When Kenneth warned him that his medicines
  • were useless at that stage of the malady, and he needn't put him to
  • further expense by attending her, he retorted, 'I know you need not--she's
  • well--she does not want any more attendance from you! She never was in a
  • consumption. It was a fever; and it is gone: her pulse is as slow as
  • mine now, and her cheek as cool.'
  • He told his wife the same story, and she seemed to believe him; but one
  • night, while leaning on his shoulder, in the act of saying she thought
  • she should be able to get up to-morrow, a fit of coughing took her--a
  • very slight one--he raised her in his arms; she put her two hands about
  • his neck, her face changed, and she was dead.
  • As the girl had anticipated, the child Hareton fell wholly into my hands.
  • Mr. Earnshaw, provided he saw him healthy and never heard him cry, was
  • contented, as far as regarded him. For himself, he grew desperate: his
  • sorrow was of that kind that will not lament. He neither wept nor
  • prayed; he cursed and defied: execrated God and man, and gave himself up
  • to reckless dissipation. The servants could not bear his tyrannical and
  • evil conduct long: Joseph and I were the only two that would stay. I had
  • not the heart to leave my charge; and besides, you know, I had been his
  • foster-sister, and excused his behaviour more readily than a stranger
  • would. Joseph remained to hector over tenants and labourers; and because
  • it was his vocation to be where he had plenty of wickedness to reprove.
  • The master's bad ways and bad companions formed a pretty example for
  • Catherine and Heathcliff. His treatment of the latter was enough to make
  • a fiend of a saint. And, truly, it appeared as if the lad _were_
  • possessed of something diabolical at that period. He delighted to
  • witness Hindley degrading himself past redemption; and became daily more
  • notable for savage sullenness and ferocity. I could not half tell what
  • an infernal house we had. The curate dropped calling, and nobody decent
  • came near us, at last; unless Edgar Linton's visits to Miss Cathy might
  • be an exception. At fifteen she was the queen of the country-side; she
  • had no peer; and she did turn out a haughty, headstrong creature! I own
  • I did not like her, after infancy was past; and I vexed her frequently by
  • trying to bring down her arrogance: she never took an aversion to me,
  • though. She had a wondrous constancy to old attachments: even Heathcliff
  • kept his hold on her affections unalterably; and young Linton, with all
  • his superiority, found it difficult to make an equally deep impression.
  • He was my late master: that is his portrait over the fireplace. It used
  • to hang on one side, and his wife's on the other; but hers has been
  • removed, or else you might see something of what she was. Can you make
  • that out?
  • Mrs. Dean raised the candle, and I discerned a soft-featured face,
  • exceedingly resembling the young lady at the Heights, but more pensive
  • and amiable in expression. It formed a sweet picture. The long light
  • hair curled slightly on the temples; the eyes were large and serious; the
  • figure almost too graceful. I did not marvel how Catherine Earnshaw
  • could forget her first friend for such an individual. I marvelled much
  • how he, with a mind to correspond with his person, could fancy my idea of
  • Catherine Earnshaw.
  • 'A very agreeable portrait,' I observed to the house-keeper. 'Is it
  • like?'
  • 'Yes,' she answered; 'but he looked better when he was animated; that is
  • his everyday countenance: he wanted spirit in general.'
  • Catherine had kept up her acquaintance with the Lintons since her
  • five-weeks' residence among them; and as she had no temptation to show
  • her rough side in their company, and had the sense to be ashamed of
  • being rude where she experienced such invariable courtesy, she imposed
  • unwittingly on the old lady and gentleman by her ingenious cordiality;
  • gained the admiration of Isabella, and the heart and soul of her
  • brother: acquisitions that flattered her from the first--for she was
  • full of ambition--and led her to adopt a double character without
  • exactly intending to deceive any one. In the place where she heard
  • Heathcliff termed a 'vulgar young ruffian,' and 'worse than a brute,'
  • she took care not to act like him; but at home she had small inclination
  • to practise politeness that would only be laughed at, and restrain an
  • unruly nature when it would bring her neither credit nor praise.
  • Mr. Edgar seldom mustered courage to visit Wuthering Heights openly. He
  • had a terror of Earnshaw's reputation, and shrunk from encountering him;
  • and yet he was always received with our best attempts at civility: the
  • master himself avoided offending him, knowing why he came; and if he
  • could not be gracious, kept out of the way. I rather think his
  • appearance there was distasteful to Catherine; she was not artful, never
  • played the coquette, and had evidently an objection to her two friends
  • meeting at all; for when Heathcliff expressed contempt of Linton in his
  • presence, she could not half coincide, as she did in his absence; and
  • when Linton evinced disgust and antipathy to Heathcliff, she dared not
  • treat his sentiments with indifference, as if depreciation of her
  • playmate were of scarcely any consequence to her. I've had many a laugh
  • at her perplexities and untold troubles, which she vainly strove to hide
  • from my mockery. That sounds ill-natured: but she was so proud it became
  • really impossible to pity her distresses, till she should be chastened
  • into more humility. She did bring herself, finally, to confess, and to
  • confide in me: there was not a soul else that she might fashion into an
  • adviser.
  • Mr. Hindley had gone from home one afternoon, and Heathcliff presumed to
  • give himself a holiday on the strength of it. He had reached the age of
  • sixteen then, I think, and without having bad features, or being
  • deficient in intellect, he contrived to convey an impression of inward
  • and outward repulsiveness that his present aspect retains no traces of.
  • In the first place, he had by that time lost the benefit of his early
  • education: continual hard work, begun soon and concluded late, had
  • extinguished any curiosity he once possessed in pursuit of knowledge, and
  • any love for books or learning. His childhood's sense of superiority,
  • instilled into him by the favours of old Mr. Earnshaw, was faded away. He
  • struggled long to keep up an equality with Catherine in her studies, and
  • yielded with poignant though silent regret: but he yielded completely;
  • and there was no prevailing on him to take a step in the way of moving
  • upward, when he found he must, necessarily, sink beneath his former
  • level. Then personal appearance sympathised with mental deterioration:
  • he acquired a slouching gait and ignoble look; his naturally reserved
  • disposition was exaggerated into an almost idiotic excess of unsociable
  • moroseness; and he took a grim pleasure, apparently, in exciting the
  • aversion rather than the esteem of his few acquaintances.
  • Catherine and he were constant companions still at his seasons of respite
  • from labour; but he had ceased to express his fondness for her in words,
  • and recoiled with angry suspicion from her girlish caresses, as if
  • conscious there could be no gratification in lavishing such marks of
  • affection on him. On the before-named occasion he came into the house to
  • announce his intention of doing nothing, while I was assisting Miss Cathy
  • to arrange her dress: she had not reckoned on his taking it into his head
  • to be idle; and imagining she would have the whole place to herself, she
  • managed, by some means, to inform Mr. Edgar of her brother's absence, and
  • was then preparing to receive him.
  • 'Cathy, are you busy this afternoon?' asked Heathcliff. 'Are you going
  • anywhere?'
  • 'No, it is raining,' she answered.
  • 'Why have you that silk frock on, then?' he said. 'Nobody coming here, I
  • hope?'
  • 'Not that I know of,' stammered Miss: 'but you should be in the field
  • now, Heathcliff. It is an hour past dinnertime: I thought you were
  • gone.'
  • 'Hindley does not often free us from his accursed presence,' observed the
  • boy. 'I'll not work any more to-day: I'll stay with you.'
  • 'Oh, but Joseph will tell,' she suggested; 'you'd better go!'
  • 'Joseph is loading lime on the further side of Penistone Crags; it will
  • take him till dark, and he'll never know.'
  • So, saying, he lounged to the fire, and sat down. Catherine reflected an
  • instant, with knitted brows--she found it needful to smooth the way for
  • an intrusion. 'Isabella and Edgar Linton talked of calling this
  • afternoon,' she said, at the conclusion of a minute's silence. 'As it
  • rains, I hardly expect them; but they may come, and if they do, you run
  • the risk of being scolded for no good.'
  • 'Order Ellen to say you are engaged, Cathy,' he persisted; 'don't turn me
  • out for those pitiful, silly friends of yours! I'm on the point,
  • sometimes, of complaining that they--but I'll not--'
  • 'That they what?' cried Catherine, gazing at him with a troubled
  • countenance. 'Oh, Nelly!' she added petulantly, jerking her head away
  • from my hands, 'you've combed my hair quite out of curl! That's enough;
  • let me alone. What are you on the point of complaining about,
  • Heathcliff?'
  • 'Nothing--only look at the almanack on that wall;' he pointed to a framed
  • sheet hanging near the window, and continued, 'The crosses are for the
  • evenings you have spent with the Lintons, the dots for those spent with
  • me. Do you see? I've marked every day.'
  • 'Yes--very foolish: as if I took notice!' replied Catherine, in a peevish
  • tone. 'And where is the sense of that?'
  • 'To show that I _do_ take notice,' said Heathcliff.
  • 'And should I always be sitting with you?' she demanded, growing more
  • irritated. 'What good do I get? What do you talk about? You might be
  • dumb, or a baby, for anything you say to amuse me, or for anything you
  • do, either!'
  • 'You never told me before that I talked too little, or that you disliked
  • my company, Cathy!' exclaimed Heathcliff, in much agitation.
  • 'It's no company at all, when people know nothing and say nothing,' she
  • muttered.
  • Her companion rose up, but he hadn't time to express his feelings
  • further, for a horse's feet were heard on the flags, and having knocked
  • gently, young Linton entered, his face brilliant with delight at the
  • unexpected summon she had received. Doubtless Catherine marked the
  • difference between her friends, as one came in and the other went out.
  • The contrast resembled what you see in exchanging a bleak, hilly, coal
  • country for a beautiful fertile valley; and his voice and greeting were
  • as opposite as his aspect. He had a sweet, low manner of speaking, and
  • pronounced his words as you do: that's less gruff than we talk here, and
  • softer.
  • 'I'm not come too soon, am I?' he said, casting a look at me: I had begun
  • to wipe the plate, and tidy some drawers at the far end in the dresser.
  • 'No,' answered Catherine. 'What are you doing there, Nelly?'
  • 'My work, Miss,' I replied. (Mr. Hindley had given me directions to make
  • a third party in any private visits Linton chose to pay.)
  • She stepped behind me and whispered crossly, 'Take yourself and your
  • dusters off; when company are in the house, servants don't commence
  • scouring and cleaning in the room where they are!'
  • 'It's a good opportunity, now that master is away,' I answered aloud: 'he
  • hates me to be fidgeting over these things in his presence. I'm sure Mr.
  • Edgar will excuse me.'
  • 'I hate you to be fidgeting in _my_ presence,' exclaimed the young lady
  • imperiously, not allowing her guest time to speak: she had failed to
  • recover her equanimity since the little dispute with Heathcliff.
  • 'I'm sorry for it, Miss Catherine,' was my response; and I proceeded
  • assiduously with my occupation.
  • She, supposing Edgar could not see her, snatched the cloth from my hand,
  • and pinched me, with a prolonged wrench, very spitefully on the arm. I've
  • said I did not love her, and rather relished mortifying her vanity now
  • and then: besides, she hurt me extremely; so I started up from my knees,
  • and screamed out, 'Oh, Miss, that's a nasty trick! You have no right to
  • nip me, and I'm not going to bear it.'
  • 'I didn't touch you, you lying creature!' cried she, her fingers tingling
  • to repeat the act, and her ears red with rage. She never had power to
  • conceal her passion, it always set her whole complexion in a blaze.
  • 'What's that, then?' I retorted, showing a decided purple witness to
  • refute her.
  • She stamped her foot, wavered a moment, and then, irresistibly impelled
  • by the naughty spirit within her, slapped me on the cheek: a stinging
  • blow that filled both eyes with water.
  • 'Catherine, love! Catherine!' interposed Linton, greatly shocked at the
  • double fault of falsehood and violence which his idol had committed.
  • 'Leave the room, Ellen!' she repeated, trembling all over.
  • Little Hareton, who followed me everywhere, and was sitting near me on
  • the floor, at seeing my tears commenced crying himself, and sobbed out
  • complaints against 'wicked aunt Cathy,' which drew her fury on to his
  • unlucky head: she seized his shoulders, and shook him till the poor child
  • waxed livid, and Edgar thoughtlessly laid hold of her hands to deliver
  • him. In an instant one was wrung free, and the astonished young man felt
  • it applied over his own ear in a way that could not be mistaken for jest.
  • He drew back in consternation. I lifted Hareton in my arms, and walked
  • off to the kitchen with him, leaving the door of communication open, for
  • I was curious to watch how they would settle their disagreement. The
  • insulted visitor moved to the spot where he had laid his hat, pale and
  • with a quivering lip.
  • 'That's right!' I said to myself. 'Take warning and begone! It's a
  • kindness to let you have a glimpse of her genuine disposition.'
  • 'Where are you going?' demanded Catherine, advancing to the door.
  • He swerved aside, and attempted to pass.
  • 'You must not go!' she exclaimed, energetically.
  • 'I must and shall!' he replied in a subdued voice.
  • 'No,' she persisted, grasping the handle; 'not yet, Edgar Linton: sit
  • down; you shall not leave me in that temper. I should be miserable all
  • night, and I won't be miserable for you!'
  • 'Can I stay after you have struck me?' asked Linton.
  • Catherine was mute.
  • 'You've made me afraid and ashamed of you,' he continued; 'I'll not come
  • here again!'
  • Her eyes began to glisten and her lids to twinkle.
  • 'And you told a deliberate untruth!' he said.
  • 'I didn't!' she cried, recovering her speech; 'I did nothing
  • deliberately. Well, go, if you please--get away! And now I'll cry--I'll
  • cry myself sick!'
  • She dropped down on her knees by a chair, and set to weeping in serious
  • earnest. Edgar persevered in his resolution as far as the court; there
  • he lingered. I resolved to encourage him.
  • 'Miss is dreadfully wayward, sir,' I called out. 'As bad as any marred
  • child: you'd better be riding home, or else she will be sick, only to
  • grieve us.'
  • The soft thing looked askance through the window: he possessed the power
  • to depart as much as a cat possesses the power to leave a mouse half
  • killed, or a bird half eaten. Ah, I thought, there will be no saving
  • him: he's doomed, and flies to his fate! And so it was: he turned
  • abruptly, hastened into the house again, shut the door behind him; and
  • when I went in a while after to inform them that Earnshaw had come home
  • rabid drunk, ready to pull the whole place about our ears (his ordinary
  • frame of mind in that condition), I saw the quarrel had merely effected a
  • closer intimacy--had broken the outworks of youthful timidity, and
  • enabled them to forsake the disguise of friendship, and confess
  • themselves lovers.
  • Intelligence of Mr. Hindley's arrival drove Linton speedily to his horse,
  • and Catherine to her chamber. I went to hide little Hareton, and to take
  • the shot out of the master's fowling-piece, which he was fond of playing
  • with in his insane excitement, to the hazard of the lives of any who
  • provoked, or even attracted his notice too much; and I had hit upon the
  • plan of removing it, that he might do less mischief if he did go the
  • length of firing the gun.
  • CHAPTER IX
  • He entered, vociferating oaths dreadful to hear; and caught me in the act
  • of stowing his son away in the kitchen cupboard. Hareton was impressed
  • with a wholesome terror of encountering either his wild beast's fondness
  • or his madman's rage; for in one he ran a chance of being squeezed and
  • kissed to death, and in the other of being flung into the fire, or dashed
  • against the wall; and the poor thing remained perfectly quiet wherever I
  • chose to put him.
  • 'There, I've found it out at last!' cried Hindley, pulling me back by the
  • skin of my neck, like a dog. 'By heaven and hell, you've sworn between
  • you to murder that child! I know how it is, now, that he is always out
  • of my way. But, with the help of Satan, I shall make you swallow the
  • carving-knife, Nelly! You needn't laugh; for I've just crammed Kenneth,
  • head-downmost, in the Black-horse marsh; and two is the same as one--and
  • I want to kill some of you: I shall have no rest till I do!'
  • 'But I don't like the carving-knife, Mr. Hindley,' I answered; 'it has
  • been cutting red herrings. I'd rather be shot, if you please.'
  • 'You'd rather be damned!' he said; 'and so you shall. No law in England
  • can hinder a man from keeping his house decent, and mine's abominable!
  • Open your mouth.' He held the knife in his hand, and pushed its point
  • between my teeth: but, for my part, I was never much afraid of his
  • vagaries. I spat out, and affirmed it tasted detestably--I would not
  • take it on any account.
  • 'Oh!' said he, releasing me, 'I see that hideous little villain is not
  • Hareton: I beg your pardon, Nell. If it be, he deserves flaying alive
  • for not running to welcome me, and for screaming as if I were a goblin.
  • Unnatural cub, come hither! I'll teach thee to impose on a good-hearted,
  • deluded father. Now, don't you think the lad would be handsomer cropped?
  • It makes a dog fiercer, and I love something fierce--get me a
  • scissors--something fierce and trim! Besides, it's infernal
  • affectation--devilish conceit it is, to cherish our ears--we're asses
  • enough without them. Hush, child, hush! Well then, it is my darling!
  • wisht, dry thy eyes--there's a joy; kiss me. What! it won't? Kiss me,
  • Hareton! Damn thee, kiss me! By God, as if I would rear such a monster!
  • As sure as I'm living, I'll break the brat's neck.'
  • Poor Hareton was squalling and kicking in his father's arms with all his
  • might, and redoubled his yells when he carried him up-stairs and lifted
  • him over the banister. I cried out that he would frighten the child into
  • fits, and ran to rescue him. As I reached them, Hindley leant forward on
  • the rails to listen to a noise below; almost forgetting what he had in
  • his hands. 'Who is that?' he asked, hearing some one approaching the
  • stairs'-foot. I leant forward also, for the purpose of signing to
  • Heathcliff, whose step I recognised, not to come further; and, at the
  • instant when my eye quitted Hareton, he gave a sudden spring, delivered
  • himself from the careless grasp that held him, and fell.
  • There was scarcely time to experience a thrill of horror before we saw
  • that the little wretch was safe. Heathcliff arrived underneath just at
  • the critical moment; by a natural impulse he arrested his descent, and
  • setting him on his feet, looked up to discover the author of the
  • accident. A miser who has parted with a lucky lottery ticket for five
  • shillings, and finds next day he has lost in the bargain five thousand
  • pounds, could not show a blanker countenance than he did on beholding the
  • figure of Mr. Earnshaw above. It expressed, plainer than words could do,
  • the intensest anguish at having made himself the instrument of thwarting
  • his own revenge. Had it been dark, I daresay he would have tried to
  • remedy the mistake by smashing Hareton's skull on the steps; but, we
  • witnessed his salvation; and I was presently below with my precious
  • charge pressed to my heart. Hindley descended more leisurely, sobered
  • and abashed.
  • 'It is your fault, Ellen,' he said; 'you should have kept him out of
  • sight: you should have taken him from me! Is he injured anywhere?'
  • 'Injured!' I cried angrily; 'if he is not killed, he'll be an idiot! Oh!
  • I wonder his mother does not rise from her grave to see how you use him.
  • You're worse than a heathen--treating your own flesh and blood in that
  • manner!' He attempted to touch the child, who, on finding himself with
  • me, sobbed off his terror directly. At the first finger his father laid
  • on him, however, he shrieked again louder than before, and struggled as
  • if he would go into convulsions.
  • 'You shall not meddle with him!' I continued. 'He hates you--they all
  • hate you--that's the truth! A happy family you have; and a pretty state
  • you're come to!'
  • 'I shall come to a prettier, yet, Nelly,' laughed the misguided man,
  • recovering his hardness. 'At present, convey yourself and him away. And
  • hark you, Heathcliff! clear you too quite from my reach and hearing. I
  • wouldn't murder you to-night; unless, perhaps, I set the house on fire:
  • but that's as my fancy goes.'
  • While saying this he took a pint bottle of brandy from the dresser, and
  • poured some into a tumbler.
  • 'Nay, don't!' I entreated. 'Mr. Hindley, do take warning. Have mercy on
  • this unfortunate boy, if you care nothing for yourself!'
  • 'Any one will do better for him than I shall,' he answered.
  • 'Have mercy on your own soul!' I said, endeavouring to snatch the glass
  • from his hand.
  • 'Not I! On the contrary, I shall have great pleasure in sending it to
  • perdition to punish its Maker,' exclaimed the blasphemer. 'Here's to its
  • hearty damnation!'
  • He drank the spirits and impatiently bade us go; terminating his command
  • with a sequel of horrid imprecations too bad to repeat or remember.
  • 'It's a pity he cannot kill himself with drink,' observed Heathcliff,
  • muttering an echo of curses back when the door was shut. 'He's doing his
  • very utmost; but his constitution defies him. Mr. Kenneth says he would
  • wager his mare that he'll outlive any man on this side Gimmerton, and go
  • to the grave a hoary sinner; unless some happy chance out of the common
  • course befall him.'
  • I went into the kitchen, and sat down to lull my little lamb to sleep.
  • Heathcliff, as I thought, walked through to the barn. It turned out
  • afterwards that he only got as far as the other side the settle, when he
  • flung himself on a bench by the wall, removed from the fire and remained
  • silent.
  • I was rocking Hareton on my knee, and humming a song that began,--
  • It was far in the night, and the bairnies grat,
  • The mither beneath the mools heard that,
  • when Miss Cathy, who had listened to the hubbub from her room, put her
  • head in, and whispered,--'Are you alone, Nelly?'
  • 'Yes, Miss,' I replied.
  • She entered and approached the hearth. I, supposing she was going to say
  • something, looked up. The expression of her face seemed disturbed and
  • anxious. Her lips were half asunder, as if she meant to speak, and she
  • drew a breath; but it escaped in a sigh instead of a sentence. I resumed
  • my song; not having forgotten her recent behaviour.
  • 'Where's Heathcliff?' she said, interrupting me.
  • 'About his work in the stable,' was my answer.
  • He did not contradict me; perhaps he had fallen into a doze. There
  • followed another long pause, during which I perceived a drop or two
  • trickle from Catherine's cheek to the flags. Is she sorry for her
  • shameful conduct?--I asked myself. That will be a novelty: but she may
  • come to the point--as she will--I sha'n't help her! No, she felt small
  • trouble regarding any subject, save her own concerns.
  • 'Oh, dear!' she cried at last. 'I'm very unhappy!'
  • 'A pity,' observed I. 'You're hard to please; so many friends and so few
  • cares, and can't make yourself content!'
  • 'Nelly, will you keep a secret for me?' she pursued, kneeling down by me,
  • and lifting her winsome eyes to my face with that sort of look which
  • turns off bad temper, even when one has all the right in the world to
  • indulge it.
  • 'Is it worth keeping?' I inquired, less sulkily.
  • 'Yes, and it worries me, and I must let it out! I want to know what I
  • should do. To-day, Edgar Linton has asked me to marry him, and I've
  • given him an answer. Now, before I tell you whether it was a consent or
  • denial, you tell me which it ought to have been.'
  • 'Really, Miss Catherine, how can I know?' I replied. 'To be sure,
  • considering the exhibition you performed in his presence this afternoon,
  • I might say it would be wise to refuse him: since he asked you after
  • that, he must either be hopelessly stupid or a venturesome fool.'
  • 'If you talk so, I won't tell you any more,' she returned, peevishly
  • rising to her feet. 'I accepted him, Nelly. Be quick, and say whether I
  • was wrong!'
  • 'You accepted him! Then what good is it discussing the matter? You have
  • pledged your word, and cannot retract.'
  • 'But say whether I should have done so--do!' she exclaimed in an
  • irritated tone; chafing her hands together, and frowning.
  • 'There are many things to be considered before that question can be
  • answered properly,' I said, sententiously. 'First and foremost, do you
  • love Mr. Edgar?'
  • 'Who can help it? Of course I do,' she answered.
  • Then I put her through the following catechism: for a girl of twenty-two
  • it was not injudicious.
  • 'Why do you love him, Miss Cathy?'
  • 'Nonsense, I do--that's sufficient.'
  • 'By no means; you must say why?'
  • 'Well, because he is handsome, and pleasant to be with.'
  • 'Bad!' was my commentary.
  • 'And because he is young and cheerful.'
  • 'Bad, still.'
  • 'And because he loves me.'
  • 'Indifferent, coming there.'
  • 'And he will be rich, and I shall like to be the greatest woman of the
  • neighbourhood, and I shall be proud of having such a husband.'
  • 'Worst of all. And now, say how you love him?'
  • 'As everybody loves--You're silly, Nelly.'
  • 'Not at all--Answer.'
  • 'I love the ground under his feet, and the air over his head, and
  • everything he touches, and every word he says. I love all his looks, and
  • all his actions, and him entirely and altogether. There now!'
  • 'And why?'
  • 'Nay; you are making a jest of it: it is exceedingly ill-natured! It's
  • no jest to me!' said the young lady, scowling, and turning her face to
  • the fire.
  • 'I'm very far from jesting, Miss Catherine,' I replied. 'You love Mr.
  • Edgar because he is handsome, and young, and cheerful, and rich, and
  • loves you. The last, however, goes for nothing: you would love him
  • without that, probably; and with it you wouldn't, unless he possessed the
  • four former attractions.'
  • 'No, to be sure not: I should only pity him--hate him, perhaps, if he
  • were ugly, and a clown.'
  • 'But there are several other handsome, rich young men in the world:
  • handsomer, possibly, and richer than he is. What should hinder you from
  • loving them?'
  • 'If there be any, they are out of my way: I've seen none like Edgar.'
  • 'You may see some; and he won't always be handsome, and young, and may
  • not always be rich.'
  • 'He is now; and I have only to do with the present. I wish you would
  • speak rationally.'
  • 'Well, that settles it: if you have only to do with the present, marry
  • Mr. Linton.'
  • 'I don't want your permission for that--I _shall_ marry him: and yet you
  • have not told me whether I'm right.'
  • 'Perfectly right; if people be right to marry only for the present. And
  • now, let us hear what you are unhappy about. Your brother will be
  • pleased; the old lady and gentleman will not object, I think; you will
  • escape from a disorderly, comfortless home into a wealthy, respectable
  • one; and you love Edgar, and Edgar loves you. All seems smooth and easy:
  • where is the obstacle?'
  • '_Here_! and _here_!' replied Catherine, striking one hand on her
  • forehead, and the other on her breast: 'in whichever place the soul
  • lives. In my soul and in my heart, I'm convinced I'm wrong!'
  • 'That's very strange! I cannot make it out.'
  • 'It's my secret. But if you will not mock at me, I'll explain it: I
  • can't do it distinctly; but I'll give you a feeling of how I feel.'
  • She seated herself by me again: her countenance grew sadder and graver,
  • and her clasped hands trembled.
  • 'Nelly, do you never dream queer dreams?' she said, suddenly, after some
  • minutes' reflection.
  • 'Yes, now and then,' I answered.
  • 'And so do I. I've dreamt in my life dreams that have stayed with me
  • ever after, and changed my ideas: they've gone through and through me,
  • like wine through water, and altered the colour of my mind. And this is
  • one: I'm going to tell it--but take care not to smile at any part of it.'
  • 'Oh! don't, Miss Catherine!' I cried. 'We're dismal enough without
  • conjuring up ghosts and visions to perplex us. Come, come, be merry and
  • like yourself! Look at little Hareton! _he's_ dreaming nothing dreary.
  • How sweetly he smiles in his sleep!'
  • 'Yes; and how sweetly his father curses in his solitude! You remember
  • him, I daresay, when he was just such another as that chubby thing:
  • nearly as young and innocent. However, Nelly, I shall oblige you to
  • listen: it's not long; and I've no power to be merry to-night.'
  • 'I won't hear it, I won't hear it!' I repeated, hastily.
  • I was superstitious about dreams then, and am still; and Catherine had an
  • unusual gloom in her aspect, that made me dread something from which I
  • might shape a prophecy, and foresee a fearful catastrophe. She was
  • vexed, but she did not proceed. Apparently taking up another subject,
  • she recommenced in a short time.
  • 'If I were in heaven, Nelly, I should be extremely miserable.'
  • 'Because you are not fit to go there,' I answered. 'All sinners would be
  • miserable in heaven.'
  • 'But it is not for that. I dreamt once that I was there.'
  • 'I tell you I won't hearken to your dreams, Miss Catherine! I'll go to
  • bed,' I interrupted again.
  • She laughed, and held me down; for I made a motion to leave my chair.
  • 'This is nothing,' cried she: 'I was only going to say that heaven did
  • not seem to be my home; and I broke my heart with weeping to come back to
  • earth; and the angels were so angry that they flung me out into the
  • middle of the heath on the top of Wuthering Heights; where I woke sobbing
  • for joy. That will do to explain my secret, as well as the other. I've
  • no more business to marry Edgar Linton than I have to be in heaven; and
  • if the wicked man in there had not brought Heathcliff so low, I shouldn't
  • have thought of it. It would degrade me to marry Heathcliff now; so he
  • shall never know how I love him: and that, not because he's handsome,
  • Nelly, but because he's more myself than I am. Whatever our souls are
  • made of, his and mine are the same; and Linton's is as different as a
  • moonbeam from lightning, or frost from fire.'
  • Ere this speech ended I became sensible of Heathcliff's presence. Having
  • noticed a slight movement, I turned my head, and saw him rise from the
  • bench, and steal out noiselessly. He had listened till he heard
  • Catherine say it would degrade her to marry him, and then he stayed to
  • hear no further. My companion, sitting on the ground, was prevented by
  • the back of the settle from remarking his presence or departure; but I
  • started, and bade her hush!
  • 'Why?' she asked, gazing nervously round.
  • 'Joseph is here,' I answered, catching opportunely the roll of his
  • cartwheels up the road; 'and Heathcliff will come in with him. I'm not
  • sure whether he were not at the door this moment.'
  • 'Oh, he couldn't overhear me at the door!' said she. 'Give me Hareton,
  • while you get the supper, and when it is ready ask me to sup with you. I
  • want to cheat my uncomfortable conscience, and be convinced that
  • Heathcliff has no notion of these things. He has not, has he? He does
  • not know what being in love is!'
  • 'I see no reason that he should not know, as well as you,' I returned;
  • 'and if you are his choice, he'll be the most unfortunate creature that
  • ever was born! As soon as you become Mrs. Linton, he loses friend, and
  • love, and all! Have you considered how you'll bear the separation, and
  • how he'll bear to be quite deserted in the world? Because, Miss
  • Catherine--'
  • 'He quite deserted! we separated!' she exclaimed, with an accent of
  • indignation. 'Who is to separate us, pray? They'll meet the fate of
  • Milo! Not as long as I live, Ellen: for no mortal creature. Every
  • Linton on the face of the earth might melt into nothing before I could
  • consent to forsake Heathcliff. Oh, that's not what I intend--that's not
  • what I mean! I shouldn't be Mrs. Linton were such a price demanded!
  • He'll be as much to me as he has been all his lifetime. Edgar must shake
  • off his antipathy, and tolerate him, at least. He will, when he learns
  • my true feelings towards him. Nelly, I see now you think me a selfish
  • wretch; but did it never strike you that if Heathcliff and I married, we
  • should be beggars? whereas, if I marry Linton I can aid Heathcliff to
  • rise, and place him out of my brother's power.'
  • 'With your husband's money, Miss Catherine?' I asked. 'You'll find him
  • not so pliable as you calculate upon: and, though I'm hardly a judge, I
  • think that's the worst motive you've given yet for being the wife of
  • young Linton.'
  • 'It is not,' retorted she; 'it is the best! The others were the
  • satisfaction of my whims: and for Edgar's sake, too, to satisfy him. This
  • is for the sake of one who comprehends in his person my feelings to Edgar
  • and myself. I cannot express it; but surely you and everybody have a
  • notion that there is or should be an existence of yours beyond you. What
  • were the use of my creation, if I were entirely contained here? My great
  • miseries in this world have been Heathcliff's miseries, and I watched and
  • felt each from the beginning: my great thought in living is himself. If
  • all else perished, and _he_ remained, _I_ should still continue to be;
  • and if all else remained, and he were annihilated, the universe would
  • turn to a mighty stranger: I should not seem a part of it.--My love for
  • Linton is like the foliage in the woods: time will change it, I'm well
  • aware, as winter changes the trees. My love for Heathcliff resembles the
  • eternal rocks beneath: a source of little visible delight, but necessary.
  • Nelly, I _am_ Heathcliff! He's always, always in my mind: not as a
  • pleasure, any more than I am always a pleasure to myself, but as my own
  • being. So don't talk of our separation again: it is impracticable; and--'
  • She paused, and hid her face in the folds of my gown; but I jerked it
  • forcibly away. I was out of patience with her folly!
  • 'If I can make any sense of your nonsense, Miss,' I said, 'it only goes
  • to convince me that you are ignorant of the duties you undertake in
  • marrying; or else that you are a wicked, unprincipled girl. But trouble
  • me with no more secrets: I'll not promise to keep them.'
  • 'You'll keep that?' she asked, eagerly.
  • 'No, I'll not promise,' I repeated.
  • She was about to insist, when the entrance of Joseph finished our
  • conversation; and Catherine removed her seat to a corner, and nursed
  • Hareton, while I made the supper. After it was cooked, my fellow-servant
  • and I began to quarrel who should carry some to Mr. Hindley; and we
  • didn't settle it till all was nearly cold. Then we came to the agreement
  • that we would let him ask, if he wanted any; for we feared particularly
  • to go into his presence when he had been some time alone.
  • 'And how isn't that nowt comed in fro' th' field, be this time? What is
  • he about? girt idle seeght!' demanded the old man, looking round for
  • Heathcliff.
  • 'I'll call him,' I replied. 'He's in the barn, I've no doubt.'
  • I went and called, but got no answer. On returning, I whispered to
  • Catherine that he had heard a good part of what she said, I was sure; and
  • told how I saw him quit the kitchen just as she complained of her
  • brother's conduct regarding him. She jumped up in a fine fright, flung
  • Hareton on to the settle, and ran to seek for her friend herself; not
  • taking leisure to consider why she was so flurried, or how her talk would
  • have affected him. She was absent such a while that Joseph proposed we
  • should wait no longer. He cunningly conjectured they were staying away
  • in order to avoid hearing his protracted blessing. They were 'ill eneugh
  • for ony fahl manners,' he affirmed. And on their behalf he added that
  • night a special prayer to the usual quarter-of-an-hour's supplication
  • before meat, and would have tacked another to the end of the grace, had
  • not his young mistress broken in upon him with a hurried command that he
  • must run down the road, and, wherever Heathcliff had rambled, find and
  • make him re-enter directly!
  • 'I want to speak to him, and I _must_, before I go upstairs,' she said.
  • 'And the gate is open: he is somewhere out of hearing; for he would not
  • reply, though I shouted at the top of the fold as loud as I could.'
  • Joseph objected at first; she was too much in earnest, however, to suffer
  • contradiction; and at last he placed his hat on his head, and walked
  • grumbling forth. Meantime, Catherine paced up and down the floor,
  • exclaiming--'I wonder where he is--I wonder where he can be! What did I
  • say, Nelly? I've forgotten. Was he vexed at my bad humour this
  • afternoon? Dear! tell me what I've said to grieve him? I do wish he'd
  • come. I do wish he would!'
  • 'What a noise for nothing!' I cried, though rather uneasy myself. 'What
  • a trifle scares you! It's surely no great cause of alarm that Heathcliff
  • should take a moonlight saunter on the moors, or even lie too sulky to
  • speak to us in the hay-loft. I'll engage he's lurking there. See if I
  • don't ferret him out!'
  • I departed to renew my search; its result was disappointment, and
  • Joseph's quest ended in the same.
  • 'Yon lad gets war und war!' observed he on re-entering. 'He's left th'
  • gate at t' full swing, and Miss's pony has trodden dahn two rigs o' corn,
  • and plottered through, raight o'er into t' meadow! Hahsomdiver, t'
  • maister 'ull play t' devil to-morn, and he'll do weel. He's patience
  • itsseln wi' sich careless, offald craters--patience itsseln he is! Bud
  • he'll not be soa allus--yah's see, all on ye! Yah mun'n't drive him out
  • of his heead for nowt!'
  • 'Have you found Heathcliff, you ass?' interrupted Catherine. 'Have you
  • been looking for him, as I ordered?'
  • 'I sud more likker look for th' horse,' he replied. 'It 'ud be to more
  • sense. Bud I can look for norther horse nur man of a neeght loike
  • this--as black as t' chimbley! und Heathcliff's noan t' chap to coom at
  • _my_ whistle--happen he'll be less hard o' hearing wi' _ye_!'
  • It _was_ a very dark evening for summer: the clouds appeared inclined to
  • thunder, and I said we had better all sit down; the approaching rain
  • would be certain to bring him home without further trouble. However,
  • Catherine would not be persuaded into tranquillity. She kept wandering
  • to and fro, from the gate to the door, in a state of agitation which
  • permitted no repose; and at length took up a permanent situation on one
  • side of the wall, near the road: where, heedless of my expostulations and
  • the growling thunder, and the great drops that began to plash around her,
  • she remained, calling at intervals, and then listening, and then crying
  • outright. She beat Hareton, or any child, at a good passionate fit of
  • crying.
  • About midnight, while we still sat up, the storm came rattling over the
  • Heights in full fury. There was a violent wind, as well as thunder, and
  • either one or the other split a tree off at the corner of the building: a
  • huge bough fell across the roof, and knocked down a portion of the east
  • chimney-stack, sending a clatter of stones and soot into the
  • kitchen-fire. We thought a bolt had fallen in the middle of us; and
  • Joseph swung on to his knees, beseeching the Lord to remember the
  • patriarchs Noah and Lot, and, as in former times, spare the righteous,
  • though he smote the ungodly. I felt some sentiment that it must be a
  • judgment on us also. The Jonah, in my mind, was Mr. Earnshaw; and I
  • shook the handle of his den that I might ascertain if he were yet living.
  • He replied audibly enough, in a fashion which made my companion
  • vociferate, more clamorously than before, that a wide distinction might
  • be drawn between saints like himself and sinners like his master. But
  • the uproar passed away in twenty minutes, leaving us all unharmed;
  • excepting Cathy, who got thoroughly drenched for her obstinacy in
  • refusing to take shelter, and standing bonnetless and shawlless to catch
  • as much water as she could with her hair and clothes. She came in and
  • lay down on the settle, all soaked as she was, turning her face to the
  • back, and putting her hands before it.
  • 'Well, Miss!' I exclaimed, touching her shoulder; 'you are not bent on
  • getting your death, are you? Do you know what o'clock it is? Half-past
  • twelve. Come, come to bed! there's no use waiting any longer on that
  • foolish boy: he'll be gone to Gimmerton, and he'll stay there now. He
  • guesses we shouldn't wait for him till this late hour: at least, he
  • guesses that only Mr. Hindley would be up; and he'd rather avoid having
  • the door opened by the master.'
  • 'Nay, nay, he's noan at Gimmerton,' said Joseph. 'I's niver wonder but
  • he's at t' bothom of a bog-hoile. This visitation worn't for nowt, and I
  • wod hev' ye to look out, Miss--yah muh be t' next. Thank Hivin for all!
  • All warks togither for gooid to them as is chozzen, and piked out fro'
  • th' rubbidge! Yah knaw whet t' Scripture ses.' And he began quoting
  • several texts, referring us to chapters and verses where we might find
  • them.
  • I, having vainly begged the wilful girl to rise and remove her wet
  • things, left him preaching and her shivering, and betook myself to bed
  • with little Hareton, who slept as fast as if everyone had been sleeping
  • round him. I heard Joseph read on a while afterwards; then I
  • distinguished his slow step on the ladder, and then I dropped asleep.
  • Coming down somewhat later than usual, I saw, by the sunbeams piercing
  • the chinks of the shutters, Miss Catherine still seated near the
  • fireplace. The house-door was ajar, too; light entered from its unclosed
  • windows; Hindley had come out, and stood on the kitchen hearth, haggard
  • and drowsy.
  • 'What ails you, Cathy?' he was saying when I entered: 'you look as dismal
  • as a drowned whelp. Why are you so damp and pale, child?'
  • 'I've been wet,' she answered reluctantly, 'and I'm cold, that's all.'
  • 'Oh, she is naughty!' I cried, perceiving the master to be tolerably
  • sober. 'She got steeped in the shower of yesterday evening, and there
  • she has sat the night through, and I couldn't prevail on her to stir.'
  • Mr. Earnshaw stared at us in surprise. 'The night through,' he repeated.
  • 'What kept her up? not fear of the thunder, surely? That was over hours
  • since.'
  • Neither of us wished to mention Heathcliff's absence, as long as we could
  • conceal it; so I replied, I didn't know how she took it into her head to
  • sit up; and she said nothing. The morning was fresh and cool; I threw
  • back the lattice, and presently the room filled with sweet scents from
  • the garden; but Catherine called peevishly to me, 'Ellen, shut the
  • window. I'm starving!' And her teeth chattered as she shrank closer to
  • the almost extinguished embers.
  • 'She's ill,' said Hindley, taking her wrist; 'I suppose that's the reason
  • she would not go to bed. Damn it! I don't want to be troubled with more
  • sickness here. What took you into the rain?'
  • 'Running after t' lads, as usuald!' croaked Joseph, catching an
  • opportunity from our hesitation to thrust in his evil tongue. 'If I war
  • yah, maister, I'd just slam t' boards i' their faces all on 'em, gentle
  • and simple! Never a day ut yah're off, but yon cat o' Linton comes
  • sneaking hither; and Miss Nelly, shoo's a fine lass! shoo sits watching
  • for ye i' t' kitchen; and as yah're in at one door, he's out at t'other;
  • and, then, wer grand lady goes a-courting of her side! It's bonny
  • behaviour, lurking amang t' fields, after twelve o' t' night, wi' that
  • fahl, flaysome divil of a gipsy, Heathcliff! They think _I'm_ blind; but
  • I'm noan: nowt ut t' soart!--I seed young Linton boath coming and going,
  • and I seed _yah_' (directing his discourse to me), 'yah gooid fur nowt,
  • slattenly witch! nip up and bolt into th' house, t' minute yah heard t'
  • maister's horse-fit clatter up t' road.'
  • 'Silence, eavesdropper!' cried Catherine; 'none of your insolence before
  • me! Edgar Linton came yesterday by chance, Hindley; and it was _I_ who
  • told him to be off: because I knew you would not like to have met him as
  • you were.'
  • 'You lie, Cathy, no doubt,' answered her brother, 'and you are a
  • confounded simpleton! But never mind Linton at present: tell me, were
  • you not with Heathcliff last night? Speak the truth, now. You need not
  • be afraid of harming him: though I hate him as much as ever, he did me a
  • good turn a short time since that will make my conscience tender of
  • breaking his neck. To prevent it, I shall send him about his business
  • this very morning; and after he's gone, I'd advise you all to look sharp:
  • I shall only have the more humour for you.'
  • 'I never saw Heathcliff last night,' answered Catherine, beginning to sob
  • bitterly: 'and if you do turn him out of doors, I'll go with him. But,
  • perhaps, you'll never have an opportunity: perhaps, he's gone.' Here she
  • burst into uncontrollable grief, and the remainder of her words were
  • inarticulate.
  • Hindley lavished on her a torrent of scornful abuse, and bade her get to
  • her room immediately, or she shouldn't cry for nothing! I obliged her to
  • obey; and I shall never forget what a scene she acted when we reached her
  • chamber: it terrified me. I thought she was going mad, and I begged
  • Joseph to run for the doctor. It proved the commencement of delirium:
  • Mr. Kenneth, as soon as he saw her, pronounced her dangerously ill; she
  • had a fever. He bled her, and he told me to let her live on whey and
  • water-gruel, and take care she did not throw herself downstairs or out of
  • the window; and then he left: for he had enough to do in the parish,
  • where two or three miles was the ordinary distance between cottage and
  • cottage.
  • Though I cannot say I made a gentle nurse, and Joseph and the master were
  • no better, and though our patient was as wearisome and headstrong as a
  • patient could be, she weathered it through. Old Mrs. Linton paid us
  • several visits, to be sure, and set things to rights, and scolded and
  • ordered us all; and when Catherine was convalescent, she insisted on
  • conveying her to Thrushcross Grange: for which deliverance we were very
  • grateful. But the poor dame had reason to repent of her kindness: she
  • and her husband both took the fever, and died within a few days of each
  • other.
  • Our young lady returned to us saucier and more passionate, and haughtier
  • than ever. Heathcliff had never been heard of since the evening of the
  • thunder-storm; and, one day, I had the misfortune, when she had provoked
  • me exceedingly, to lay the blame of his disappearance on her: where
  • indeed it belonged, as she well knew. From that period, for several
  • months, she ceased to hold any communication with me, save in the
  • relation of a mere servant. Joseph fell under a ban also: he would speak
  • his mind, and lecture her all the same as if she were a little girl; and
  • she esteemed herself a woman, and our mistress, and thought that her
  • recent illness gave her a claim to be treated with consideration. Then
  • the doctor had said that she would not bear crossing much; she ought to
  • have her own way; and it was nothing less than murder in her eyes for any
  • one to presume to stand up and contradict her. From Mr. Earnshaw and his
  • companions she kept aloof; and tutored by Kenneth, and serious threats of
  • a fit that often attended her rages, her brother allowed her whatever she
  • pleased to demand, and generally avoided aggravating her fiery temper. He
  • was rather too indulgent in humouring her caprices; not from affection,
  • but from pride: he wished earnestly to see her bring honour to the family
  • by an alliance with the Lintons, and as long as she let him alone she
  • might trample on us like slaves, for aught he cared! Edgar Linton, as
  • multitudes have been before and will be after him, was infatuated: and
  • believed himself the happiest man alive on the day he led her to
  • Gimmerton Chapel, three years subsequent to his father's death.
  • Much against my inclination, I was persuaded to leave Wuthering Heights
  • and accompany her here. Little Hareton was nearly five years old, and I
  • had just begun to teach him his letters. We made a sad parting; but
  • Catherine's tears were more powerful than ours. When I refused to go,
  • and when she found her entreaties did not move me, she went lamenting to
  • her husband and brother. The former offered me munificent wages; the
  • latter ordered me to pack up: he wanted no women in the house, he said,
  • now that there was no mistress; and as to Hareton, the curate should take
  • him in hand, by-and-by. And so I had but one choice left: to do as I was
  • ordered. I told the master he got rid of all decent people only to run
  • to ruin a little faster; I kissed Hareton, said good-by; and since then
  • he has been a stranger: and it's very queer to think it, but I've no
  • doubt he has completely forgotten all about Ellen Dean, and that he was
  • ever more than all the world to her and she to him!
  • * * * * *
  • At this point of the housekeeper's story she chanced to glance towards
  • the time-piece over the chimney; and was in amazement on seeing the
  • minute-hand measure half-past one. She would not hear of staying a
  • second longer: in truth, I felt rather disposed to defer the sequel of
  • her narrative myself. And now that she is vanished to her rest, and I
  • have meditated for another hour or two, I shall summon courage to go
  • also, in spite of aching laziness of head and limbs.
  • CHAPTER X
  • A charming introduction to a hermit's life! Four weeks' torture,
  • tossing, and sickness! Oh, these bleak winds and bitter northern skies,
  • and impassable roads, and dilatory country surgeons! And oh, this dearth
  • of the human physiognomy! and, worse than all, the terrible intimation of
  • Kenneth that I need not expect to be out of doors till spring!
  • Mr. Heathcliff has just honoured me with a call. About seven days ago he
  • sent me a brace of grouse--the last of the season. Scoundrel! He is not
  • altogether guiltless in this illness of mine; and that I had a great mind
  • to tell him. But, alas! how could I offend a man who was charitable
  • enough to sit at my bedside a good hour, and talk on some other subject
  • than pills and draughts, blisters and leeches? This is quite an easy
  • interval. I am too weak to read; yet I feel as if I could enjoy
  • something interesting. Why not have up Mrs. Dean to finish her tale? I
  • can recollect its chief incidents, as far as she had gone. Yes: I
  • remember her hero had run off, and never been heard of for three years;
  • and the heroine was married. I'll ring: she'll be delighted to find me
  • capable of talking cheerfully. Mrs. Dean came.
  • 'It wants twenty minutes, sir, to taking the medicine,' she commenced.
  • 'Away, away with it!' I replied; 'I desire to have--'
  • 'The doctor says you must drop the powders.'
  • 'With all my heart! Don't interrupt me. Come and take your seat here.
  • Keep your fingers from that bitter phalanx of vials. Draw your knitting
  • out of your pocket--that will do--now continue the history of Mr.
  • Heathcliff, from where you left off, to the present day. Did he finish
  • his education on the Continent, and come back a gentleman? or did he get
  • a sizar's place at college, or escape to America, and earn honours by
  • drawing blood from his foster-country? or make a fortune more promptly on
  • the English highways?'
  • 'He may have done a little in all these vocations, Mr. Lockwood; but I
  • couldn't give my word for any. I stated before that I didn't know how he
  • gained his money; neither am I aware of the means he took to raise his
  • mind from the savage ignorance into which it was sunk: but, with your
  • leave, I'll proceed in my own fashion, if you think it will amuse and not
  • weary you. Are you feeling better this morning?'
  • 'Much.'
  • 'That's good news.'
  • * * * * *
  • I got Miss Catherine and myself to Thrushcross Grange; and, to my
  • agreeable disappointment, she behaved infinitely better than I dared to
  • expect. She seemed almost over-fond of Mr. Linton; and even to his
  • sister she showed plenty of affection. They were both very attentive to
  • her comfort, certainly. It was not the thorn bending to the
  • honeysuckles, but the honeysuckles embracing the thorn. There were no
  • mutual concessions: one stood erect, and the others yielded: and who can
  • be ill-natured and bad-tempered when they encounter neither opposition
  • nor indifference? I observed that Mr. Edgar had a deep-rooted fear of
  • ruffling her humour. He concealed it from her; but if ever he heard me
  • answer sharply, or saw any other servant grow cloudy at some imperious
  • order of hers, he would show his trouble by a frown of displeasure that
  • never darkened on his own account. He many a time spoke sternly to me
  • about my pertness; and averred that the stab of a knife could not inflict
  • a worse pang than he suffered at seeing his lady vexed. Not to grieve a
  • kind master, I learned to be less touchy; and, for the space of half a
  • year, the gunpowder lay as harmless as sand, because no fire came near to
  • explode it. Catherine had seasons of gloom and silence now and then:
  • they were respected with sympathising silence by her husband, who
  • ascribed them to an alteration in her constitution, produced by her
  • perilous illness; as she was never subject to depression of spirits
  • before. The return of sunshine was welcomed by answering sunshine from
  • him. I believe I may assert that they were really in possession of deep
  • and growing happiness.
  • It ended. Well, we _must_ be for ourselves in the long run; the mild and
  • generous are only more justly selfish than the domineering; and it ended
  • when circumstances caused each to feel that the one's interest was not
  • the chief consideration in the other's thoughts. On a mellow evening in
  • September, I was coming from the garden with a heavy basket of apples
  • which I had been gathering. It had got dusk, and the moon looked over
  • the high wall of the court, causing undefined shadows to lurk in the
  • corners of the numerous projecting portions of the building. I set my
  • burden on the house-steps by the kitchen-door, and lingered to rest, and
  • drew in a few more breaths of the soft, sweet air; my eyes were on the
  • moon, and my back to the entrance, when I heard a voice behind me
  • say,--'Nelly, is that you?'
  • It was a deep voice, and foreign in tone; yet there was something in the
  • manner of pronouncing my name which made it sound familiar. I turned
  • about to discover who spoke, fearfully; for the doors were shut, and I
  • had seen nobody on approaching the steps. Something stirred in the
  • porch; and, moving nearer, I distinguished a tall man dressed in dark
  • clothes, with dark face and hair. He leant against the side, and held
  • his fingers on the latch as if intending to open for himself. 'Who can
  • it be?' I thought. 'Mr. Earnshaw? Oh, no! The voice has no resemblance
  • to his.'
  • 'I have waited here an hour,' he resumed, while I continued staring; 'and
  • the whole of that time all round has been as still as death. I dared not
  • enter. You do not know me? Look, I'm not a stranger!'
  • A ray fell on his features; the cheeks were sallow, and half covered with
  • black whiskers; the brows lowering, the eyes deep-set and singular. I
  • remembered the eyes.
  • 'What!' I cried, uncertain whether to regard him as a worldly visitor,
  • and I raised my hands in amazement. 'What! you come back? Is it really
  • you? Is it?'
  • 'Yes, Heathcliff,' he replied, glancing from me up to the windows, which
  • reflected a score of glittering moons, but showed no lights from within.
  • 'Are they at home? where is she? Nelly, you are not glad! you needn't be
  • so disturbed. Is she here? Speak! I want to have one word with
  • her--your mistress. Go, and say some person from Gimmerton desires to
  • see her.'
  • 'How will she take it?' I exclaimed. 'What will she do? The surprise
  • bewilders me--it will put her out of her head! And you _are_ Heathcliff!
  • But altered! Nay, there's no comprehending it. Have you been for a
  • soldier?'
  • 'Go and carry my message,' he interrupted, impatiently. 'I'm in hell
  • till you do!'
  • He lifted the latch, and I entered; but when I got to the parlour where
  • Mr. and Mrs. Linton were, I could not persuade myself to proceed. At
  • length I resolved on making an excuse to ask if they would have the
  • candles lighted, and I opened the door.
  • They sat together in a window whose lattice lay back against the wall,
  • and displayed, beyond the garden trees, and the wild green park, the
  • valley of Gimmerton, with a long line of mist winding nearly to its top
  • (for very soon after you pass the chapel, as you may have noticed, the
  • sough that runs from the marshes joins a beck which follows the bend of
  • the glen). Wuthering Heights rose above this silvery vapour; but our old
  • house was invisible; it rather dips down on the other side. Both the
  • room and its occupants, and the scene they gazed on, looked wondrously
  • peaceful. I shrank reluctantly from performing my errand; and was
  • actually going away leaving it unsaid, after having put my question about
  • the candles, when a sense of my folly compelled me to return, and mutter,
  • 'A person from Gimmerton wishes to see you ma'am.'
  • 'What does he want?' asked Mrs. Linton.
  • 'I did not question him,' I answered.
  • 'Well, close the curtains, Nelly,' she said; 'and bring up tea. I'll be
  • back again directly.'
  • She quitted the apartment; Mr. Edgar inquired, carelessly, who it was.
  • 'Some one mistress does not expect,' I replied. 'That Heathcliff--you
  • recollect him, sir--who used to live at Mr. Earnshaw's.'
  • 'What! the gipsy--the ploughboy?' he cried. 'Why did you not say so to
  • Catherine?'
  • 'Hush! you must not call him by those names, master,' I said. 'She'd be
  • sadly grieved to hear you. She was nearly heartbroken when he ran off. I
  • guess his return will make a jubilee to her.'
  • Mr. Linton walked to a window on the other side of the room that
  • overlooked the court. He unfastened it, and leant out. I suppose they
  • were below, for he exclaimed quickly: 'Don't stand there, love! Bring
  • the person in, if it be anyone particular.' Ere long, I heard the click
  • of the latch, and Catherine flew up-stairs, breathless and wild; too
  • excited to show gladness: indeed, by her face, you would rather have
  • surmised an awful calamity.
  • 'Oh, Edgar, Edgar!' she panted, flinging her arms round his neck. 'Oh,
  • Edgar darling! Heathcliff's come back--he is!' And she tightened her
  • embrace to a squeeze.
  • 'Well, well,' cried her husband, crossly, 'don't strangle me for that! He
  • never struck me as such a marvellous treasure. There is no need to be
  • frantic!'
  • 'I know you didn't like him,' she answered, repressing a little the
  • intensity of her delight. 'Yet, for my sake, you must be friends now.
  • Shall I tell him to come up?'
  • 'Here,' he said, 'into the parlour?'
  • 'Where else?' she asked.
  • He looked vexed, and suggested the kitchen as a more suitable place for
  • him. Mrs. Linton eyed him with a droll expression--half angry, half
  • laughing at his fastidiousness.
  • 'No,' she added, after a while; 'I cannot sit in the kitchen. Set two
  • tables here, Ellen: one for your master and Miss Isabella, being gentry;
  • the other for Heathcliff and myself, being of the lower orders. Will
  • that please you, dear? Or must I have a fire lighted elsewhere? If so,
  • give directions. I'll run down and secure my guest. I'm afraid the joy
  • is too great to be real!'
  • She was about to dart off again; but Edgar arrested her.
  • '_You_ bid him step up,' he said, addressing me; 'and, Catherine, try to
  • be glad, without being absurd. The whole household need not witness the
  • sight of your welcoming a runaway servant as a brother.'
  • I descended, and found Heathcliff waiting under the porch, evidently
  • anticipating an invitation to enter. He followed my guidance without
  • waste of words, and I ushered him into the presence of the master and
  • mistress, whose flushed cheeks betrayed signs of warm talking. But the
  • lady's glowed with another feeling when her friend appeared at the door:
  • she sprang forward, took both his hands, and led him to Linton; and then
  • she seized Linton's reluctant fingers and crushed them into his. Now,
  • fully revealed by the fire and candlelight, I was amazed, more than ever,
  • to behold the transformation of Heathcliff. He had grown a tall,
  • athletic, well-formed man; beside whom my master seemed quite slender and
  • youth-like. His upright carriage suggested the idea of his having been
  • in the army. His countenance was much older in expression and decision
  • of feature than Mr. Linton's; it looked intelligent, and retained no
  • marks of former degradation. A half-civilised ferocity lurked yet in the
  • depressed brows and eyes full of black fire, but it was subdued; and his
  • manner was even dignified: quite divested of roughness, though stern for
  • grace. My master's surprise equalled or exceeded mine: he remained for a
  • minute at a loss how to address the ploughboy, as he had called him.
  • Heathcliff dropped his slight hand, and stood looking at him coolly till
  • he chose to speak.
  • 'Sit down, sir,' he said, at length. 'Mrs. Linton, recalling old times,
  • would have me give you a cordial reception; and, of course, I am
  • gratified when anything occurs to please her.'
  • 'And I also,' answered Heathcliff, 'especially if it be anything in which
  • I have a part. I shall stay an hour or two willingly.'
  • He took a seat opposite Catherine, who kept her gaze fixed on him as if
  • she feared he would vanish were she to remove it. He did not raise his
  • to her often: a quick glance now and then sufficed; but it flashed back,
  • each time more confidently, the undisguised delight he drank from hers.
  • They were too much absorbed in their mutual joy to suffer embarrassment.
  • Not so Mr. Edgar: he grew pale with pure annoyance: a feeling that
  • reached its climax when his lady rose, and stepping across the rug,
  • seized Heathcliff's hands again, and laughed like one beside herself.
  • 'I shall think it a dream to-morrow!' she cried. 'I shall not be able to
  • believe that I have seen, and touched, and spoken to you once more. And
  • yet, cruel Heathcliff! you don't deserve this welcome. To be absent and
  • silent for three years, and never to think of me!'
  • 'A little more than you have thought of me,' he murmured. 'I heard of
  • your marriage, Cathy, not long since; and, while waiting in the yard
  • below, I meditated this plan--just to have one glimpse of your face, a
  • stare of surprise, perhaps, and pretended pleasure; afterwards settle my
  • score with Hindley; and then prevent the law by doing execution on
  • myself. Your welcome has put these ideas out of my mind; but beware of
  • meeting me with another aspect next time! Nay, you'll not drive me off
  • again. You were really sorry for me, were you? Well, there was cause.
  • I've fought through a bitter life since I last heard your voice; and you
  • must forgive me, for I struggled only for you!'
  • 'Catherine, unless we are to have cold tea, please to come to the table,'
  • interrupted Linton, striving to preserve his ordinary tone, and a due
  • measure of politeness. 'Mr. Heathcliff will have a long walk, wherever
  • he may lodge to-night; and I'm thirsty.'
  • She took her post before the urn; and Miss Isabella came, summoned by the
  • bell; then, having handed their chairs forward, I left the room. The
  • meal hardly endured ten minutes. Catherine's cup was never filled: she
  • could neither eat nor drink. Edgar had made a slop in his saucer, and
  • scarcely swallowed a mouthful. Their guest did not protract his stay
  • that evening above an hour longer. I asked, as he departed, if he went
  • to Gimmerton?
  • 'No, to Wuthering Heights,' he answered: 'Mr. Earnshaw invited me, when I
  • called this morning.'
  • Mr. Earnshaw invited _him_! and _he_ called on Mr. Earnshaw! I pondered
  • this sentence painfully, after he was gone. Is he turning out a bit of a
  • hypocrite, and coming into the country to work mischief under a cloak? I
  • mused: I had a presentiment in the bottom of my heart that he had better
  • have remained away.
  • About the middle of the night, I was wakened from my first nap by Mrs.
  • Linton gliding into my chamber, taking a seat on my bedside, and pulling
  • me by the hair to rouse me.
  • 'I cannot rest, Ellen,' she said, by way of apology. 'And I want some
  • living creature to keep me company in my happiness! Edgar is sulky,
  • because I'm glad of a thing that does not interest him: he refuses to
  • open his mouth, except to utter pettish, silly speeches; and he affirmed
  • I was cruel and selfish for wishing to talk when he was so sick and
  • sleepy. He always contrives to be sick at the least cross! I gave a few
  • sentences of commendation to Heathcliff, and he, either for a headache or
  • a pang of envy, began to cry: so I got up and left him.'
  • 'What use is it praising Heathcliff to him?' I answered. 'As lads they
  • had an aversion to each other, and Heathcliff would hate just as much to
  • hear him praised: it's human nature. Let Mr. Linton alone about him,
  • unless you would like an open quarrel between them.'
  • 'But does it not show great weakness?' pursued she. 'I'm not envious: I
  • never feel hurt at the brightness of Isabella's yellow hair and the
  • whiteness of her skin, at her dainty elegance, and the fondness all the
  • family exhibit for her. Even you, Nelly, if we have a dispute sometimes,
  • you back Isabella at once; and I yield like a foolish mother: I call her
  • a darling, and flatter her into a good temper. It pleases her brother to
  • see us cordial, and that pleases me. But they are very much alike: they
  • are spoiled children, and fancy the world was made for their
  • accommodation; and though I humour both, I think a smart chastisement
  • might improve them all the same.'
  • 'You're mistaken, Mrs. Linton,' said I. 'They humour you: I know what
  • there would be to do if they did not. You can well afford to indulge
  • their passing whims as long as their business is to anticipate all your
  • desires. You may, however, fall out, at last, over something of equal
  • consequence to both sides; and then those you term weak are very capable
  • of being as obstinate as you.'
  • 'And then we shall fight to the death, sha'n't we, Nelly?' she returned,
  • laughing. 'No! I tell you, I have such faith in Linton's love, that I
  • believe I might kill him, and he wouldn't wish to retaliate.'
  • I advised her to value him the more for his affection.
  • 'I do,' she answered, 'but he needn't resort to whining for trifles. It
  • is childish and, instead of melting into tears because I said that
  • Heathcliff was now worthy of anyone's regard, and it would honour the
  • first gentleman in the country to be his friend, he ought to have said it
  • for me, and been delighted from sympathy. He must get accustomed to him,
  • and he may as well like him: considering how Heathcliff has reason to
  • object to him, I'm sure he behaved excellently!'
  • 'What do you think of his going to Wuthering Heights?' I inquired. 'He
  • is reformed in every respect, apparently: quite a Christian: offering the
  • right hand of fellowship to his enemies all around!'
  • 'He explained it,' she replied. 'I wonder as much as you. He said he
  • called to gather information concerning me from you, supposing you
  • resided there still; and Joseph told Hindley, who came out and fell to
  • questioning him of what he had been doing, and how he had been living;
  • and finally, desired him to walk in. There were some persons sitting at
  • cards; Heathcliff joined them; my brother lost some money to him, and,
  • finding him plentifully supplied, he requested that he would come again
  • in the evening: to which he consented. Hindley is too reckless to select
  • his acquaintance prudently: he doesn't trouble himself to reflect on the
  • causes he might have for mistrusting one whom he has basely injured. But
  • Heathcliff affirms his principal reason for resuming a connection with
  • his ancient persecutor is a wish to install himself in quarters at walking
  • distance from the Grange, and an attachment to the house where we lived
  • together; and likewise a hope that I shall have more opportunities of
  • seeing him there than I could have if he settled in Gimmerton. He means
  • to offer liberal payment for permission to lodge at the Heights; and
  • doubtless my brother's covetousness will prompt him to accept the terms:
  • he was always greedy; though what he grasps with one hand he flings away
  • with the other.'
  • 'It's a nice place for a young man to fix his dwelling in!' said I. 'Have
  • you no fear of the consequences, Mrs. Linton?'
  • 'None for my friend,' she replied: 'his strong head will keep him from
  • danger; a little for Hindley: but he can't be made morally worse than he
  • is; and I stand between him and bodily harm. The event of this evening
  • has reconciled me to God and humanity! I had risen in angry rebellion
  • against Providence. Oh, I've endured very, very bitter misery, Nelly! If
  • that creature knew how bitter, he'd be ashamed to cloud its removal with
  • idle petulance. It was kindness for him which induced me to bear it
  • alone: had I expressed the agony I frequently felt, he would have been
  • taught to long for its alleviation as ardently as I. However, it's over,
  • and I'll take no revenge on his folly; I can afford to suffer anything
  • hereafter! Should the meanest thing alive slap me on the cheek, I'd not
  • only turn the other, but I'd ask pardon for provoking it; and, as a
  • proof, I'll go make my peace with Edgar instantly. Good-night! I'm an
  • angel!'
  • In this self-complacent conviction she departed; and the success of her
  • fulfilled resolution was obvious on the morrow: Mr. Linton had not only
  • abjured his peevishness (though his spirits seemed still subdued by
  • Catherine's exuberance of vivacity), but he ventured no objection to her
  • taking Isabella with her to Wuthering Heights in the afternoon; and she
  • rewarded him with such a summer of sweetness and affection in return as
  • made the house a paradise for several days; both master and servants
  • profiting from the perpetual sunshine.
  • Heathcliff--Mr. Heathcliff I should say in future--used the liberty of
  • visiting at Thrushcross Grange cautiously, at first: he seemed estimating
  • how far its owner would bear his intrusion. Catherine, also, deemed it
  • judicious to moderate her expressions of pleasure in receiving him; and
  • he gradually established his right to be expected. He retained a great
  • deal of the reserve for which his boyhood was remarkable; and that served
  • to repress all startling demonstrations of feeling. My master's
  • uneasiness experienced a lull, and further circumstances diverted it into
  • another channel for a space.
  • His new source of trouble sprang from the not anticipated misfortune of
  • Isabella Linton evincing a sudden and irresistible attraction towards the
  • tolerated guest. She was at that time a charming young lady of eighteen;
  • infantile in manners, though possessed of keen wit, keen feelings, and a
  • keen temper, too, if irritated. Her brother, who loved her tenderly, was
  • appalled at this fantastic preference. Leaving aside the degradation of
  • an alliance with a nameless man, and the possible fact that his property,
  • in default of heirs male, might pass into such a one's power, he had
  • sense to comprehend Heathcliff's disposition: to know that, though his
  • exterior was altered, his mind was unchangeable and unchanged. And he
  • dreaded that mind: it revolted him: he shrank forebodingly from the idea
  • of committing Isabella to its keeping. He would have recoiled still more
  • had he been aware that her attachment rose unsolicited, and was bestowed
  • where it awakened no reciprocation of sentiment; for the minute he
  • discovered its existence he laid the blame on Heathcliff's deliberate
  • designing.
  • We had all remarked, during some time, that Miss Linton fretted and pined
  • over something. She grew cross and wearisome; snapping at and teasing
  • Catherine continually, at the imminent risk of exhausting her limited
  • patience. We excused her, to a certain extent, on the plea of
  • ill-health: she was dwindling and fading before our eyes. But one day,
  • when she had been peculiarly wayward, rejecting her breakfast,
  • complaining that the servants did not do what she told them; that the
  • mistress would allow her to be nothing in the house, and Edgar neglected
  • her; that she had caught a cold with the doors being left open, and we
  • let the parlour fire go out on purpose to vex her, with a hundred yet
  • more frivolous accusations, Mrs. Linton peremptorily insisted that she
  • should get to bed; and, having scolded her heartily, threatened to send
  • for the doctor. Mention of Kenneth caused her to exclaim, instantly,
  • that her health was perfect, and it was only Catherine's harshness which
  • made her unhappy.
  • 'How can you say I am harsh, you naughty fondling?' cried the mistress,
  • amazed at the unreasonable assertion. 'You are surely losing your
  • reason. When have I been harsh, tell me?'
  • 'Yesterday,' sobbed Isabella, 'and now!'
  • 'Yesterday!' said her sister-in-law. 'On what occasion?'
  • 'In our walk along the moor: you told me to ramble where I pleased, while
  • you sauntered on with Mr. Heathcliff!'
  • 'And that's your notion of harshness?' said Catherine, laughing. 'It was
  • no hint that your company was superfluous? We didn't care whether you
  • kept with us or not; I merely thought Heathcliff's talk would have
  • nothing entertaining for your ears.'
  • 'Oh, no,' wept the young lady; 'you wished me away, because you knew I
  • liked to be there!'
  • 'Is she sane?' asked Mrs. Linton, appealing to me. 'I'll repeat our
  • conversation, word for word, Isabella; and you point out any charm it
  • could have had for you.'
  • 'I don't mind the conversation,' she answered: 'I wanted to be with--'
  • 'Well?' said Catherine, perceiving her hesitate to complete the sentence.
  • 'With him: and I won't be always sent off!' she continued, kindling up.
  • 'You are a dog in the manger, Cathy, and desire no one to be loved but
  • yourself!'
  • 'You are an impertinent little monkey!' exclaimed Mrs. Linton, in
  • surprise. 'But I'll not believe this idiotcy! It is impossible that you
  • can covet the admiration of Heathcliff--that you consider him an
  • agreeable person! I hope I have misunderstood you, Isabella?'
  • 'No, you have not,' said the infatuated girl. 'I love him more than ever
  • you loved Edgar, and he might love me, if you would let him!'
  • 'I wouldn't be you for a kingdom, then!' Catherine declared,
  • emphatically: and she seemed to speak sincerely. 'Nelly, help me to
  • convince her of her madness. Tell her what Heathcliff is: an unreclaimed
  • creature, without refinement, without cultivation; an arid wilderness of
  • furze and whinstone. I'd as soon put that little canary into the park on
  • a winter's day, as recommend you to bestow your heart on him! It is
  • deplorable ignorance of his character, child, and nothing else, which
  • makes that dream enter your head. Pray, don't imagine that he conceals
  • depths of benevolence and affection beneath a stern exterior! He's not a
  • rough diamond--a pearl-containing oyster of a rustic: he's a fierce,
  • pitiless, wolfish man. I never say to him, "Let this or that enemy
  • alone, because it would be ungenerous or cruel to harm them;" I say, "Let
  • them alone, because _I_ should hate them to be wronged:" and he'd crush
  • you like a sparrow's egg, Isabella, if he found you a troublesome charge.
  • I know he couldn't love a Linton; and yet he'd be quite capable of
  • marrying your fortune and expectations: avarice is growing with him a
  • besetting sin. There's my picture: and I'm his friend--so much so, that
  • had he thought seriously to catch you, I should, perhaps, have held my
  • tongue, and let you fall into his trap.'
  • Miss Linton regarded her sister-in-law with indignation.
  • 'For shame! for shame!' she repeated, angrily. 'You are worse than
  • twenty foes, you poisonous friend!'
  • 'Ah! you won't believe me, then?' said Catherine. 'You think I speak
  • from wicked selfishness?'
  • 'I'm certain you do,' retorted Isabella; 'and I shudder at you!'
  • 'Good!' cried the other. 'Try for yourself, if that be your spirit: I
  • have done, and yield the argument to your saucy insolence.'--
  • 'And I must suffer for her egotism!' she sobbed, as Mrs. Linton left the
  • room. 'All, all is against me: she has blighted my single consolation.
  • But she uttered falsehoods, didn't she? Mr. Heathcliff is not a fiend:
  • he has an honourable soul, and a true one, or how could he remember her?'
  • 'Banish him from your thoughts, Miss,' I said. 'He's a bird of bad omen:
  • no mate for you. Mrs. Linton spoke strongly, and yet I can't contradict
  • her. She is better acquainted with his heart than I, or any one besides;
  • and she never would represent him as worse than he is. Honest people
  • don't hide their deeds. How has he been living? how has he got rich? why
  • is he staying at Wuthering Heights, the house of a man whom he abhors?
  • They say Mr. Earnshaw is worse and worse since he came. They sit up all
  • night together continually, and Hindley has been borrowing money on his
  • land, and does nothing but play and drink: I heard only a week ago--it
  • was Joseph who told me--I met him at Gimmerton: "Nelly," he said, "we's
  • hae a crowner's 'quest enow, at ahr folks'. One on 'em 's a'most getten
  • his finger cut off wi' hauding t' other fro' stickin' hisseln loike a
  • cawlf. That's maister, yeah knaw, 'at 's soa up o' going tuh t' grand
  • 'sizes. He's noan feared o' t' bench o' judges, norther Paul, nur Peter,
  • nur John, nur Matthew, nor noan on 'em, not he! He fair likes--he langs
  • to set his brazened face agean 'em! And yon bonny lad Heathcliff, yah
  • mind, he's a rare 'un. He can girn a laugh as well 's onybody at a
  • raight divil's jest. Does he niver say nowt of his fine living amang us,
  • when he goes to t' Grange? This is t' way on 't:--up at sun-down: dice,
  • brandy, cloised shutters, und can'le-light till next day at noon: then,
  • t'fooil gangs banning und raving to his cham'er, makking dacent fowks dig
  • thur fingers i' thur lugs fur varry shame; un' the knave, why he can
  • caint his brass, un' ate, un' sleep, un' off to his neighbour's to gossip
  • wi' t' wife. I' course, he tells Dame Catherine how her fathur's goold
  • runs into his pocket, and her fathur's son gallops down t' broad road,
  • while he flees afore to oppen t' pikes!" Now, Miss Linton, Joseph is an
  • old rascal, but no liar; and, if his account of Heathcliff's conduct be
  • true, you would never think of desiring such a husband, would you?'
  • 'You are leagued with the rest, Ellen!' she replied. 'I'll not listen to
  • your slanders. What malevolence you must have to wish to convince me
  • that there is no happiness in the world!'
  • Whether she would have got over this fancy if left to herself, or
  • persevered in nursing it perpetually, I cannot say: she had little time
  • to reflect. The day after, there was a justice-meeting at the next town;
  • my master was obliged to attend; and Mr. Heathcliff, aware of his
  • absence, called rather earlier than usual. Catherine and Isabella were
  • sitting in the library, on hostile terms, but silent: the latter alarmed
  • at her recent indiscretion, and the disclosure she had made of her secret
  • feelings in a transient fit of passion; the former, on mature
  • consideration, really offended with her companion; and, if she laughed
  • again at her pertness, inclined to make it no laughing matter to her. She
  • did laugh as she saw Heathcliff pass the window. I was sweeping the
  • hearth, and I noticed a mischievous smile on her lips. Isabella,
  • absorbed in her meditations, or a book, remained till the door opened;
  • and it was too late to attempt an escape, which she would gladly have
  • done had it been practicable.
  • 'Come in, that's right!' exclaimed the mistress, gaily, pulling a chair
  • to the fire. 'Here are two people sadly in need of a third to thaw the
  • ice between them; and you are the very one we should both of us choose.
  • Heathcliff, I'm proud to show you, at last, somebody that dotes on you
  • more than myself. I expect you to feel flattered. Nay, it's not Nelly;
  • don't look at her! My poor little sister-in-law is breaking her heart by
  • mere contemplation of your physical and moral beauty. It lies in your
  • own power to be Edgar's brother! No, no, Isabella, you sha'n't run off,'
  • she continued, arresting, with feigned playfulness, the confounded girl,
  • who had risen indignantly. 'We were quarrelling like cats about you,
  • Heathcliff; and I was fairly beaten in protestations of devotion and
  • admiration: and, moreover, I was informed that if I would but have the
  • manners to stand aside, my rival, as she will have herself to be, would
  • shoot a shaft into your soul that would fix you for ever, and send my
  • image into eternal oblivion!'
  • 'Catherine!' said Isabella, calling up her dignity, and disdaining to
  • struggle from the tight grasp that held her, 'I'd thank you to adhere to
  • the truth and not slander me, even in joke! Mr. Heathcliff, be kind
  • enough to bid this friend of yours release me: she forgets that you and I
  • are not intimate acquaintances; and what amuses her is painful to me
  • beyond expression.'
  • As the guest answered nothing, but took his seat, and looked thoroughly
  • indifferent what sentiments she cherished concerning him, she turned and
  • whispered an earnest appeal for liberty to her tormentor.
  • 'By no means!' cried Mrs. Linton in answer. 'I won't be named a dog in
  • the manger again. You _shall_ stay: now then! Heathcliff, why don't you
  • evince satisfaction at my pleasant news? Isabella swears that the love
  • Edgar has for me is nothing to that she entertains for you. I'm sure she
  • made some speech of the kind; did she not, Ellen? And she has fasted
  • ever since the day before yesterday's walk, from sorrow and rage that I
  • despatched her out of your society under the idea of its being
  • unacceptable.'
  • 'I think you belie her,' said Heathcliff, twisting his chair to face
  • them. 'She wishes to be out of my society now, at any rate!'
  • And he stared hard at the object of discourse, as one might do at a
  • strange repulsive animal: a centipede from the Indies, for instance,
  • which curiosity leads one to examine in spite of the aversion it raises.
  • The poor thing couldn't bear that; she grew white and red in rapid
  • succession, and, while tears beaded her lashes, bent the strength of her
  • small fingers to loosen the firm clutch of Catherine; and perceiving that
  • as fast as she raised one finger off her arm another closed down, and she
  • could not remove the whole together, she began to make use of her nails;
  • and their sharpness presently ornamented the detainer's with crescents of
  • red.
  • 'There's a tigress!' exclaimed Mrs. Linton, setting her free, and shaking
  • her hand with pain. 'Begone, for God's sake, and hide your vixen face!
  • How foolish to reveal those talons to him. Can't you fancy the
  • conclusions he'll draw? Look, Heathcliff! they are instruments that will
  • do execution--you must beware of your eyes.'
  • 'I'd wrench them off her fingers, if they ever menaced me,' he answered,
  • brutally, when the door had closed after her. 'But what did you mean by
  • teasing the creature in that manner, Cathy? You were not speaking the
  • truth, were you?'
  • 'I assure you I was,' she returned. 'She has been dying for your sake
  • several weeks, and raving about you this morning, and pouring forth a
  • deluge of abuse, because I represented your failings in a plain light,
  • for the purpose of mitigating her adoration. But don't notice it
  • further: I wished to punish her sauciness, that's all. I like her too
  • well, my dear Heathcliff, to let you absolutely seize and devour her up.'
  • 'And I like her too ill to attempt it,' said he, 'except in a very
  • ghoulish fashion. You'd hear of odd things if I lived alone with that
  • mawkish, waxen face: the most ordinary would be painting on its white the
  • colours of the rainbow, and turning the blue eyes black, every day or
  • two: they detestably resemble Linton's.'
  • 'Delectably!' observed Catherine. 'They are dove's eyes--angel's!'
  • 'She's her brother's heir, is she not?' he asked, after a brief silence.
  • 'I should be sorry to think so,' returned his companion. 'Half a dozen
  • nephews shall erase her title, please heaven! Abstract your mind from
  • the subject at present: you are too prone to covet your neighbour's
  • goods; remember _this_ neighbour's goods are mine.'
  • 'If they were _mine_, they would be none the less that,' said Heathcliff;
  • 'but though Isabella Linton may be silly, she is scarcely mad; and, in
  • short, we'll dismiss the matter, as you advise.'
  • From their tongues they did dismiss it; and Catherine, probably, from her
  • thoughts. The other, I felt certain, recalled it often in the course of
  • the evening. I saw him smile to himself--grin rather--and lapse into
  • ominous musing whenever Mrs. Linton had occasion to be absent from the
  • apartment.
  • I determined to watch his movements. My heart invariably cleaved to the
  • master's, in preference to Catherine's side: with reason I imagined, for
  • he was kind, and trustful, and honourable; and she--she could not be
  • called _opposite_, yet she seemed to allow herself such wide latitude,
  • that I had little faith in her principles, and still less sympathy for
  • her feelings. I wanted something to happen which might have the effect
  • of freeing both Wuthering Heights and the Grange of Mr. Heathcliff
  • quietly; leaving us as we had been prior to his advent. His visits were
  • a continual nightmare to me; and, I suspected, to my master also. His
  • abode at the Heights was an oppression past explaining. I felt that God
  • had forsaken the stray sheep there to its own wicked wanderings, and an
  • evil beast prowled between it and the fold, waiting his time to spring
  • and destroy.
  • CHAPTER XI
  • Sometimes, while meditating on these things in solitude, I've got up in a
  • sudden terror, and put on my bonnet to go see how all was at the farm.
  • I've persuaded my conscience that it was a duty to warn him how people
  • talked regarding his ways; and then I've recollected his confirmed bad
  • habits, and, hopeless of benefiting him, have flinched from re-entering
  • the dismal house, doubting if I could bear to be taken at my word.
  • One time I passed the old gate, going out of my way, on a journey to
  • Gimmerton. It was about the period that my narrative has reached: a
  • bright frosty afternoon; the ground bare, and the road hard and dry. I
  • came to a stone where the highway branches off on to the moor at your
  • left hand; a rough sand-pillar, with the letters W. H. cut on its north
  • side, on the east, G., and on the south-west, T. G. It serves as a
  • guide-post to the Grange, the Heights, and village. The sun shone yellow
  • on its grey head, reminding me of summer; and I cannot say why, but all
  • at once a gush of child's sensations flowed into my heart. Hindley and I
  • held it a favourite spot twenty years before. I gazed long at the
  • weather-worn block; and, stooping down, perceived a hole near the bottom
  • still full of snail-shells and pebbles, which we were fond of storing
  • there with more perishable things; and, as fresh as reality, it appeared
  • that I beheld my early playmate seated on the withered turf: his dark,
  • square head bent forward, and his little hand scooping out the earth
  • with a piece of slate. 'Poor Hindley!' I exclaimed, involuntarily. I
  • started: my bodily eye was cheated into a momentary belief that the
  • child lifted its face and stared straight into mine! It vanished in a
  • twinkling; but immediately I felt an irresistible yearning to be at the
  • Heights. Superstition urged me to comply with this impulse: supposing he
  • should be dead! I thought--or should die soon!--supposing it were a sign
  • of death! The nearer I got to the house the more agitated I grew; and on
  • catching sight of it I trembled in every limb. The apparition had
  • outstripped me: it stood looking through the gate. That was my first
  • idea on observing an elf-locked, brown-eyed boy setting his ruddy
  • countenance against the bars. Further reflection suggested this must be
  • Hareton, _my_ Hareton, not altered greatly since I left him, ten months
  • since.
  • 'God bless thee, darling!' I cried, forgetting instantaneously my
  • foolish fears. 'Hareton, it's Nelly! Nelly, thy nurse.'
  • He retreated out of arm's length, and picked up a large flint.
  • 'I am come to see thy father, Hareton,' I added, guessing from the
  • action that Nelly, if she lived in his memory at all, was not recognised
  • as one with me.
  • He raised his missile to hurl it; I commenced a soothing speech, but
  • could not stay his hand: the stone struck my bonnet; and then ensued,
  • from the stammering lips of the little fellow, a string of curses, which,
  • whether he comprehended them or not, were delivered with practised
  • emphasis, and distorted his baby features into a shocking expression of
  • malignity. You may be certain this grieved more than angered me. Fit to
  • cry, I took an orange from my pocket, and offered it to propitiate him.
  • He hesitated, and then snatched it from my hold; as if he fancied I only
  • intended to tempt and disappoint him. I showed another, keeping it out
  • of his reach.
  • 'Who has taught you those fine words, my bairn?' I inquired. 'The
  • curate?'
  • 'Damn the curate, and thee! Gie me that,' he replied.
  • 'Tell us where you got your lessons, and you shall have it,' said I.
  • 'Who's your master?'
  • 'Devil daddy,' was his answer.
  • 'And what do you learn from daddy?' I continued.
  • He jumped at the fruit; I raised it higher. 'What does he teach you?' I
  • asked.
  • 'Naught,' said he, 'but to keep out of his gait. Daddy cannot bide me,
  • because I swear at him.'
  • 'Ah! and the devil teaches you to swear at daddy?' I observed.
  • 'Ay--nay,' he drawled.
  • 'Who, then?'
  • 'Heathcliff.'
  • 'I asked if he liked Mr. Heathcliff.'
  • 'Ay!' he answered again.
  • Desiring to have his reasons for liking him, I could only gather the
  • sentences--'I known't: he pays dad back what he gies to me--he curses
  • daddy for cursing me. He says I mun do as I will.'
  • 'And the curate does not teach you to read and write, then?' I pursued.
  • 'No, I was told the curate should have his--teeth dashed down his--throat,
  • if he stepped over the threshold--Heathcliff had promised that!'
  • I put the orange in his hand, and bade him tell his father that a woman
  • called Nelly Dean was waiting to speak with him, by the garden gate. He
  • went up the walk, and entered the house; but, instead of Hindley,
  • Heathcliff appeared on the door-stones; and I turned directly and ran
  • down the road as hard as ever I could race, making no halt till I gained
  • the guide-post, and feeling as scared as if I had raised a goblin. This
  • is not much connected with Miss Isabella's affair: except that it urged
  • me to resolve further on mounting vigilant guard, and doing my utmost to
  • check the spread of such bad influence at the Grange: even though I
  • should wake a domestic storm, by thwarting Mrs. Linton's pleasure.
  • The next time Heathcliff came my young lady chanced to be feeding some
  • pigeons in the court. She had never spoken a word to her sister-in-law
  • for three days; but she had likewise dropped her fretful complaining, and
  • we found it a great comfort. Heathcliff had not the habit of bestowing a
  • single unnecessary civility on Miss Linton, I knew. Now, as soon as he
  • beheld her, his first precaution was to take a sweeping survey of the
  • house-front. I was standing by the kitchen-window, but I drew out of
  • sight. He then stepped across the pavement to her, and said something:
  • she seemed embarrassed, and desirous of getting away; to prevent it, he
  • laid his hand on her arm. She averted her face: he apparently put some
  • question which she had no mind to answer. There was another rapid glance
  • at the house, and supposing himself unseen, the scoundrel had the
  • impudence to embrace her.
  • 'Judas! Traitor!' I ejaculated. 'You are a hypocrite, too, are you? A
  • deliberate deceiver.'
  • 'Who is, Nelly?' said Catherine's voice at my elbow: I had been
  • over-intent on watching the pair outside to mark her entrance.
  • 'Your worthless friend!' I answered, warmly: 'the sneaking rascal yonder.
  • Ah, he has caught a glimpse of us--he is coming in! I wonder will he
  • have the heart to find a plausible excuse for making love to Miss, when
  • he told you he hated her?'
  • Mrs. Linton saw Isabella tear herself free, and run into the garden; and
  • a minute after, Heathcliff opened the door. I couldn't withhold giving
  • some loose to my indignation; but Catherine angrily insisted on silence,
  • and threatened to order me out of the kitchen, if I dared to be so
  • presumptuous as to put in my insolent tongue.
  • 'To hear you, people might think you were the mistress!' she cried. 'You
  • want setting down in your right place! Heathcliff, what are you about,
  • raising this stir? I said you must let Isabella alone!--I beg you will,
  • unless you are tired of being received here, and wish Linton to draw the
  • bolts against you!'
  • 'God forbid that he should try!' answered the black villain. I detested
  • him just then. 'God keep him meek and patient! Every day I grow madder
  • after sending him to heaven!'
  • 'Hush!' said Catherine, shutting the inner door! 'Don't vex me. Why
  • have you disregarded my request? Did she come across you on purpose?'
  • 'What is it to you?' he growled. 'I have a right to kiss her, if she
  • chooses; and you have no right to object. I am not _your_ husband: _you_
  • needn't be jealous of me!'
  • 'I'm not jealous of you,' replied the mistress; 'I'm jealous for you.
  • Clear your face: you sha'n't scowl at me! If you like Isabella, you
  • shall marry her. But do you like her? Tell the truth, Heathcliff!
  • There, you won't answer. I'm certain you don't.'
  • 'And would Mr. Linton approve of his sister marrying that man?' I
  • inquired.
  • 'Mr. Linton should approve,' returned my lady, decisively.
  • 'He might spare himself the trouble,' said Heathcliff: 'I could do as
  • well without his approbation. And as to you, Catherine, I have a mind to
  • speak a few words now, while we are at it. I want you to be aware that I
  • _know_ you have treated me infernally--infernally! Do you hear? And if
  • you flatter yourself that I don't perceive it, you are a fool; and if
  • you think I can be consoled by sweet words, you are an idiot: and if you
  • fancy I'll suffer unrevenged, I'll convince you of the contrary, in a
  • very little while! Meantime, thank you for telling me your
  • sister-in-law's secret: I swear I'll make the most of it. And stand you
  • aside!'
  • 'What new phase of his character is this?' exclaimed Mrs. Linton, in
  • amazement. 'I've treated you infernally--and you'll take your revenge!
  • How will you take it, ungrateful brute? How have I treated you
  • infernally?'
  • 'I seek no revenge on you,' replied Heathcliff, less vehemently. 'That's
  • not the plan. The tyrant grinds down his slaves and they don't turn
  • against him; they crush those beneath them. You are welcome to torture
  • me to death for your amusement, only allow me to amuse myself a little in
  • the same style, and refrain from insult as much as you are able. Having
  • levelled my palace, don't erect a hovel and complacently admire your own
  • charity in giving me that for a home. If I imagined you really wished me
  • to marry Isabel, I'd cut my throat!'
  • 'Oh, the evil is that I am _not_ jealous, is it?' cried Catherine. 'Well,
  • I won't repeat my offer of a wife: it is as bad as offering Satan a lost
  • soul. Your bliss lies, like his, in inflicting misery. You prove it.
  • Edgar is restored from the ill-temper he gave way to at your coming; I
  • begin to be secure and tranquil; and you, restless to know us at peace,
  • appear resolved on exciting a quarrel. Quarrel with Edgar, if you
  • please, Heathcliff, and deceive his sister: you'll hit on exactly the
  • most efficient method of revenging yourself on me.'
  • The conversation ceased. Mrs. Linton sat down by the fire, flushed and
  • gloomy. The spirit which served her was growing intractable: she could
  • neither lay nor control it. He stood on the hearth with folded arms,
  • brooding on his evil thoughts; and in this position I left them to seek
  • the master, who was wondering what kept Catherine below so long.
  • 'Ellen,' said he, when I entered, 'have you seen your mistress?'
  • 'Yes; she's in the kitchen, sir,' I answered. 'She's sadly put out by
  • Mr. Heathcliff's behaviour: and, indeed, I do think it's time to arrange
  • his visits on another footing. There's harm in being too soft, and now
  • it's come to this--.' And I related the scene in the court, and, as near
  • as I dared, the whole subsequent dispute. I fancied it could not be very
  • prejudicial to Mrs. Linton; unless she made it so afterwards, by assuming
  • the defensive for her guest. Edgar Linton had difficulty in hearing me
  • to the close. His first words revealed that he did not clear his wife of
  • blame.
  • 'This is insufferable!' he exclaimed. 'It is disgraceful that she should
  • own him for a friend, and force his company on me! Call me two men out
  • of the hall, Ellen. Catherine shall linger no longer to argue with the
  • low ruffian--I have humoured her enough.'
  • He descended, and bidding the servants wait in the passage, went,
  • followed by me, to the kitchen. Its occupants had recommenced their
  • angry discussion: Mrs. Linton, at least, was scolding with renewed
  • vigour; Heathcliff had moved to the window, and hung his head, somewhat
  • cowed by her violent rating apparently. He saw the master first, and
  • made a hasty motion that she should be silent; which she obeyed,
  • abruptly, on discovering the reason of his intimation.
  • 'How is this?' said Linton, addressing her; 'what notion of propriety
  • must you have to remain here, after the language which has been held to
  • you by that blackguard? I suppose, because it is his ordinary talk you
  • think nothing of it: you are habituated to his baseness, and, perhaps,
  • imagine I can get used to it too!'
  • 'Have you been listening at the door, Edgar?' asked the mistress, in a
  • tone particularly calculated to provoke her husband, implying both
  • carelessness and contempt of his irritation. Heathcliff, who had raised
  • his eyes at the former speech, gave a sneering laugh at the latter; on
  • purpose, it seemed, to draw Mr. Linton's attention to him. He succeeded;
  • but Edgar did not mean to entertain him with any high flights of passion.
  • 'I've been so far forbearing with you, sir,' he said quietly; 'not that I
  • was ignorant of your miserable, degraded character, but I felt you were
  • only partly responsible for that; and Catherine wishing to keep up your
  • acquaintance, I acquiesced--foolishly. Your presence is a moral poison
  • that would contaminate the most virtuous: for that cause, and to prevent
  • worse consequences, I shall deny you hereafter admission into this house,
  • and give notice now that I require your instant departure. Three
  • minutes' delay will render it involuntary and ignominious.'
  • Heathcliff measured the height and breadth of the speaker with an eye
  • full of derision.
  • 'Cathy, this lamb of yours threatens like a bull!' he said. 'It is in
  • danger of splitting its skull against my knuckles. By God! Mr. Linton,
  • I'm mortally sorry that you are not worth knocking down!'
  • My master glanced towards the passage, and signed me to fetch the men: he
  • had no intention of hazarding a personal encounter. I obeyed the hint;
  • but Mrs. Linton, suspecting something, followed; and when I attempted to
  • call them, she pulled me back, slammed the door to, and locked it.
  • 'Fair means!' she said, in answer to her husband's look of angry
  • surprise. 'If you have not courage to attack him, make an apology, or
  • allow yourself to be beaten. It will correct you of feigning more valour
  • than you possess. No, I'll swallow the key before you shall get it! I'm
  • delightfully rewarded for my kindness to each! After constant indulgence
  • of one's weak nature, and the other's bad one, I earn for thanks two
  • samples of blind ingratitude, stupid to absurdity! Edgar, I was
  • defending you and yours; and I wish Heathcliff may flog you sick, for
  • daring to think an evil thought of me!'
  • It did not need the medium of a flogging to produce that effect on the
  • master. He tried to wrest the key from Catherine's grasp, and for safety
  • she flung it into the hottest part of the fire; whereupon Mr. Edgar was
  • taken with a nervous trembling, and his countenance grew deadly pale. For
  • his life he could not avert that excess of emotion: mingled anguish and
  • humiliation overcame him completely. He leant on the back of a chair,
  • and covered his face.
  • 'Oh, heavens! In old days this would win you knighthood!' exclaimed Mrs.
  • Linton. 'We are vanquished! we are vanquished! Heathcliff would as soon
  • lift a finger at you as the king would march his army against a colony of
  • mice. Cheer up! you sha'n't be hurt! Your type is not a lamb, it's a
  • sucking leveret.'
  • 'I wish you joy of the milk-blooded coward, Cathy!' said her friend. 'I
  • compliment you on your taste. And that is the slavering, shivering thing
  • you preferred to me! I would not strike him with my fist, but I'd kick
  • him with my foot, and experience considerable satisfaction. Is he
  • weeping, or is he going to faint for fear?'
  • The fellow approached and gave the chair on which Linton rested a push.
  • He'd better have kept his distance: my master quickly sprang erect, and
  • struck him full on the throat a blow that would have levelled a slighter
  • man. It took his breath for a minute; and while he choked, Mr. Linton
  • walked out by the back door into the yard, and from thence to the front
  • entrance.
  • 'There! you've done with coming here,' cried Catherine. 'Get away, now;
  • he'll return with a brace of pistols and half-a-dozen assistants. If he
  • did overhear us, of course he'd never forgive you. You've played me an
  • ill turn, Heathcliff! But go--make haste! I'd rather see Edgar at bay
  • than you.'
  • 'Do you suppose I'm going with that blow burning in my gullet?' he
  • thundered. 'By hell, no! I'll crush his ribs in like a rotten hazel-nut
  • before I cross the threshold! If I don't floor him now, I shall murder
  • him some time; so, as you value his existence, let me get at him!'
  • 'He is not coming,' I interposed, framing a bit of a lie. 'There's the
  • coachman and the two gardeners; you'll surely not wait to be thrust into
  • the road by them! Each has a bludgeon; and master will, very likely, be
  • watching from the parlour-windows to see that they fulfil his orders.'
  • The gardeners and coachman were there: but Linton was with them. They
  • had already entered the court. Heathcliff, on the second thoughts,
  • resolved to avoid a struggle against three underlings: he seized the
  • poker, smashed the lock from the inner door, and made his escape as they
  • tramped in.
  • Mrs. Linton, who was very much excited, bade me accompany her up-stairs.
  • She did not know my share in contributing to the disturbance, and I was
  • anxious to keep her in ignorance.
  • 'I'm nearly distracted, Nelly!' she exclaimed, throwing herself on the
  • sofa. 'A thousand smiths' hammers are beating in my head! Tell Isabella
  • to shun me; this uproar is owing to her; and should she or any one else
  • aggravate my anger at present, I shall get wild. And, Nelly, say to
  • Edgar, if you see him again to-night, that I'm in danger of being
  • seriously ill. I wish it may prove true. He has startled and distressed
  • me shockingly! I want to frighten him. Besides, he might come and begin
  • a string of abuse or complainings; I'm certain I should recriminate, and
  • God knows where we should end! Will you do so, my good Nelly? You are
  • aware that I am no way blamable in this matter. What possessed him to
  • turn listener? Heathcliff's talk was outrageous, after you left us; but
  • I could soon have diverted him from Isabella, and the rest meant nothing.
  • Now all is dashed wrong; by the fool's craving to hear evil of self, that
  • haunts some people like a demon! Had Edgar never gathered our
  • conversation, he would never have been the worse for it. Really, when he
  • opened on me in that unreasonable tone of displeasure after I had scolded
  • Heathcliff till I was hoarse for him, I did not care hardly what they did
  • to each other; especially as I felt that, however the scene closed, we
  • should all be driven asunder for nobody knows how long! Well, if I
  • cannot keep Heathcliff for my friend--if Edgar will be mean and jealous,
  • I'll try to break their hearts by breaking my own. That will be a prompt
  • way of finishing all, when I am pushed to extremity! But it's a deed to
  • be reserved for a forlorn hope; I'd not take Linton by surprise with it.
  • To this point he has been discreet in dreading to provoke me; you must
  • represent the peril of quitting that policy, and remind him of my
  • passionate temper, verging, when kindled, on frenzy. I wish you could
  • dismiss that apathy out of that countenance, and look rather more anxious
  • about me.'
  • The stolidity with which I received these instructions was, no doubt,
  • rather exasperating: for they were delivered in perfect sincerity; but I
  • believed a person who could plan the turning of her fits of passion to
  • account, beforehand, might, by exerting her will, manage to control
  • herself tolerably, even while under their influence; and I did not wish
  • to 'frighten' her husband, as she said, and multiply his annoyances for
  • the purpose of serving her selfishness. Therefore I said nothing when I
  • met the master coming towards the parlour; but I took the liberty of
  • turning back to listen whether they would resume their quarrel together.
  • He began to speak first.
  • 'Remain where you are, Catherine,' he said; without any anger in his
  • voice, but with much sorrowful despondency. 'I shall not stay. I am
  • neither come to wrangle nor be reconciled; but I wish just to learn
  • whether, after this evening's events, you intend to continue your
  • intimacy with--'
  • 'Oh, for mercy's sake,' interrupted the mistress, stamping her foot, 'for
  • mercy's sake, let us hear no more of it now! Your cold blood cannot be
  • worked into a fever: your veins are full of ice-water; but mine are
  • boiling, and the sight of such chillness makes them dance.'
  • 'To get rid of me, answer my question,' persevered Mr. Linton. 'You must
  • answer it; and that violence does not alarm me. I have found that you
  • can be as stoical as anyone, when you please. Will you give up
  • Heathcliff hereafter, or will you give up me? It is impossible for you
  • to be _my_ friend and _his_ at the same time; and I absolutely _require_
  • to know which you choose.'
  • 'I require to be let alone!' exclaimed Catherine, furiously. 'I demand
  • it! Don't you see I can scarcely stand? Edgar, you--you leave me!'
  • She rang the bell till it broke with a twang; I entered leisurely. It
  • was enough to try the temper of a saint, such senseless, wicked rages!
  • There she lay dashing her head against the arm of the sofa, and grinding
  • her teeth, so that you might fancy she would crash them to splinters! Mr.
  • Linton stood looking at her in sudden compunction and fear. He told me
  • to fetch some water. She had no breath for speaking. I brought a glass
  • full; and as she would not drink, I sprinkled it on her face. In a few
  • seconds she stretched herself out stiff, and turned up her eyes, while
  • her cheeks, at once blanched and livid, assumed the aspect of death.
  • Linton looked terrified.
  • 'There is nothing in the world the matter,' I whispered. I did not want
  • him to yield, though I could not help being afraid in my heart.
  • 'She has blood on her lips!' he said, shuddering.
  • 'Never mind!' I answered, tartly. And I told him how she had resolved,
  • previous to his coming, on exhibiting a fit of frenzy. I incautiously
  • gave the account aloud, and she heard me; for she started up--her hair
  • flying over her shoulders, her eyes flashing, the muscles of her neck
  • and arms standing out preternaturally. I made up my mind for broken
  • bones, at least; but she only glared about her for an instant, and then
  • rushed from the room. The master directed me to follow; I did, to her
  • chamber-door: she hindered me from going further by securing it against
  • me.
  • As she never offered to descend to breakfast next morning, I went to ask
  • whether she would have some carried up. 'No!' she replied, peremptorily.
  • The same question was repeated at dinner and tea; and again on the morrow
  • after, and received the same answer. Mr. Linton, on his part, spent his
  • time in the library, and did not inquire concerning his wife's
  • occupations. Isabella and he had had an hour's interview, during which
  • he tried to elicit from her some sentiment of proper horror for
  • Heathcliff's advances: but he could make nothing of her evasive replies,
  • and was obliged to close the examination unsatisfactorily; adding,
  • however, a solemn warning, that if she were so insane as to encourage
  • that worthless suitor, it would dissolve all bonds of relationship
  • between herself and him.
  • CHAPTER XII
  • While Miss Linton moped about the park and garden, always silent, and
  • almost always in tears; and her brother shut himself up among books that
  • he never opened--wearying, I guessed, with a continual vague expectation
  • that Catherine, repenting her conduct, would come of her own accord to
  • ask pardon, and seek a reconciliation--and _she_ fasted pertinaciously,
  • under the idea, probably, that at every meal Edgar was ready to choke for
  • her absence, and pride alone held him from running to cast himself at her
  • feet; I went about my household duties, convinced that the Grange had but
  • one sensible soul in its walls, and that lodged in my body. I wasted no
  • condolences on Miss, nor any expostulations on my mistress; nor did I pay
  • much attention to the sighs of my master, who yearned to hear his lady's
  • name, since he might not hear her voice. I determined they should come
  • about as they pleased for me; and though it was a tiresomely slow
  • process, I began to rejoice at length in a faint dawn of its progress: as
  • I thought at first.
  • Mrs. Linton, on the third day, unbarred her door, and having finished the
  • water in her pitcher and decanter, desired a renewed supply, and a basin
  • of gruel, for she believed she was dying. That I set down as a speech
  • meant for Edgar's ears; I believed no such thing, so I kept it to myself
  • and brought her some tea and dry toast. She ate and drank eagerly, and
  • sank back on her pillow again, clenching her hands and groaning. 'Oh, I
  • will die,' she exclaimed, 'since no one cares anything about me. I wish
  • I had not taken that.' Then a good while after I heard her murmur, 'No,
  • I'll not die--he'd be glad--he does not love me at all--he would never
  • miss me!'
  • 'Did you want anything, ma'am?' I inquired, still preserving my external
  • composure, in spite of her ghastly countenance and strange, exaggerated
  • manner.
  • 'What is that apathetic being doing?' she demanded, pushing the thick
  • entangled locks from her wasted face. 'Has he fallen into a lethargy, or
  • is he dead?'
  • 'Neither,' replied I; 'if you mean Mr. Linton. He's tolerably well, I
  • think, though his studies occupy him rather more than they ought: he is
  • continually among his books, since he has no other society.'
  • I should not have spoken so if I had known her true condition, but I
  • could not get rid of the notion that she acted a part of her disorder.
  • 'Among his books!' she cried, confounded. 'And I dying! I on the brink
  • of the grave! My God! does he know how I'm altered?' continued she,
  • staring at her reflection in a mirror hanging against the opposite wall.
  • 'Is that Catherine Linton? He imagines me in a pet--in play, perhaps.
  • Cannot you inform him that it is frightful earnest? Nelly, if it be not
  • too late, as soon as I learn how he feels, I'll choose between these two:
  • either to starve at once--that would be no punishment unless he had a
  • heart--or to recover, and leave the country. Are you speaking the truth
  • about him now? Take care. Is he actually so utterly indifferent for my
  • life?'
  • 'Why, ma'am,' I answered, 'the master has no idea of your being deranged;
  • and of course he does not fear that you will let yourself die of hunger.'
  • 'You think not? Cannot you tell him I will?' she returned. 'Persuade
  • him! speak of your own mind: say you are certain I will!'
  • 'No, you forget, Mrs. Linton,' I suggested, 'that you have eaten some
  • food with a relish this evening, and to-morrow you will perceive its good
  • effects.'
  • 'If I were only sure it would kill him,' she interrupted, 'I'd kill
  • myself directly! These three awful nights I've never closed my lids--and
  • oh, I've been tormented! I've been haunted, Nelly! But I begin to fancy
  • you don't like me. How strange! I thought, though everybody hated and
  • despised each other, they could not avoid loving me. And they have all
  • turned to enemies in a few hours: they have, I'm positive; the people
  • here. How dreary to meet death, surrounded by their cold faces!
  • Isabella, terrified and repelled, afraid to enter the room, it would be
  • so dreadful to watch Catherine go. And Edgar standing solemnly by to see
  • it over; then offering prayers of thanks to God for restoring peace to
  • his house, and going back to his _books_! What in the name of all that
  • feels has he to do with _books_, when I am dying?'
  • She could not bear the notion which I had put into her head of Mr.
  • Linton's philosophical resignation. Tossing about, she increased her
  • feverish bewilderment to madness, and tore the pillow with her teeth;
  • then raising herself up all burning, desired that I would open the
  • window. We were in the middle of winter, the wind blew strong from the
  • north-east, and I objected. Both the expressions flitting over her face,
  • and the changes of her moods, began to alarm me terribly; and brought to
  • my recollection her former illness, and the doctor's injunction that she
  • should not be crossed. A minute previously she was violent; now,
  • supported on one arm, and not noticing my refusal to obey her, she seemed
  • to find childish diversion in pulling the feathers from the rents she had
  • just made, and ranging them on the sheet according to their different
  • species: her mind had strayed to other associations.
  • 'That's a turkey's,' she murmured to herself; 'and this is a wild duck's;
  • and this is a pigeon's. Ah, they put pigeons' feathers in the pillows--no
  • wonder I couldn't die! Let me take care to throw it on the floor when I
  • lie down. And here is a moor-cock's; and this--I should know it among a
  • thousand--it's a lapwing's. Bonny bird; wheeling over our heads in the
  • middle of the moor. It wanted to get to its nest, for the clouds had
  • touched the swells, and it felt rain coming. This feather was picked up
  • from the heath, the bird was not shot: we saw its nest in the winter,
  • full of little skeletons. Heathcliff set a trap over it, and the old
  • ones dared not come. I made him promise he'd never shoot a lapwing after
  • that, and he didn't. Yes, here are more! Did he shoot my lapwings,
  • Nelly? Are they red, any of them? Let me look.'
  • 'Give over with that baby-work!' I interrupted, dragging the pillow away,
  • and turning the holes towards the mattress, for she was removing its
  • contents by handfuls. 'Lie down and shut your eyes: you're wandering.
  • There's a mess! The down is flying about like snow.'
  • I went here and there collecting it.
  • 'I see in you, Nelly,' she continued dreamily, 'an aged woman: you have
  • grey hair and bent shoulders. This bed is the fairy cave under Penistone
  • crags, and you are gathering elf-bolts to hurt our heifers; pretending,
  • while I am near, that they are only locks of wool. That's what you'll
  • come to fifty years hence: I know you are not so now. I'm not wandering:
  • you're mistaken, or else I should believe you really _were_ that withered
  • hag, and I should think I _was_ under Penistone Crags; and I'm conscious
  • it's night, and there are two candles on the table making the black press
  • shine like jet.'
  • 'The black press? where is that?' I asked. 'You are talking in your
  • sleep!'
  • 'It's against the wall, as it always is,' she replied. 'It _does_ appear
  • odd--I see a face in it!'
  • 'There's no press in the room, and never was,' said I, resuming my seat,
  • and looping up the curtain that I might watch her.
  • 'Don't _you_ see that face?' she inquired, gazing earnestly at the
  • mirror.
  • And say what I could, I was incapable of making her comprehend it to be
  • her own; so I rose and covered it with a shawl.
  • 'It's behind there still!' she pursued, anxiously. 'And it stirred. Who
  • is it? I hope it will not come out when you are gone! Oh! Nelly, the
  • room is haunted! I'm afraid of being alone!'
  • I took her hand in mine, and bid her be composed; for a succession of
  • shudders convulsed her frame, and she would keep straining her gaze
  • towards the glass.
  • 'There's nobody here!' I insisted. 'It was _yourself_, Mrs. Linton: you
  • knew it a while since.'
  • 'Myself!' she gasped, 'and the clock is striking twelve! It's true,
  • then! that's dreadful!'
  • Her fingers clutched the clothes, and gathered them over her eyes. I
  • attempted to steal to the door with an intention of calling her husband;
  • but I was summoned back by a piercing shriek--the shawl had dropped from
  • the frame.
  • 'Why, what is the matter?' cried I. 'Who is coward now? Wake up! That
  • is the glass--the mirror, Mrs. Linton; and you see yourself in it, and
  • there am I too by your side.'
  • Trembling and bewildered, she held me fast, but the horror gradually
  • passed from her countenance; its paleness gave place to a glow of shame.
  • 'Oh, dear! I thought I was at home,' she sighed. 'I thought I was lying
  • in my chamber at Wuthering Heights. Because I'm weak, my brain got
  • confused, and I screamed unconsciously. Don't say anything; but stay
  • with me. I dread sleeping: my dreams appal me.'
  • 'A sound sleep would do you good, ma'am,' I answered: 'and I hope this
  • suffering will prevent your trying starving again.'
  • 'Oh, if I were but in my own bed in the old house!' she went on bitterly,
  • wringing her hands. 'And that wind sounding in the firs by the lattice.
  • Do let me feel it--it comes straight down the moor--do let me have one
  • breath!' To pacify her I held the casement ajar a few seconds. A cold
  • blast rushed through; I closed it, and returned to my post. She lay
  • still now, her face bathed in tears. Exhaustion of body had entirely
  • subdued her spirit: our fiery Catherine was no better than a wailing
  • child.
  • 'How long is it since I shut myself in here?' she asked, suddenly
  • reviving.
  • 'It was Monday evening,' I replied, 'and this is Thursday night, or
  • rather Friday morning, at present.'
  • 'What! of the same week?' she exclaimed. 'Only that brief time?'
  • 'Long enough to live on nothing but cold water and ill-temper,' observed
  • I.
  • 'Well, it seems a weary number of hours,' she muttered doubtfully: 'it
  • must be more. I remember being in the parlour after they had quarrelled,
  • and Edgar being cruelly provoking, and me running into this room
  • desperate. As soon as ever I had barred the door, utter blackness
  • overwhelmed me, and I fell on the floor. I couldn't explain to Edgar how
  • certain I felt of having a fit, or going raging mad, if he persisted in
  • teasing me! I had no command of tongue, or brain, and he did not guess
  • my agony, perhaps: it barely left me sense to try to escape from him and
  • his voice. Before I recovered sufficiently to see and hear, it began to
  • be dawn, and, Nelly, I'll tell you what I thought, and what has kept
  • recurring and recurring till I feared for my reason. I thought as I lay
  • there, with my head against that table leg, and my eyes dimly discerning
  • the grey square of the window, that I was enclosed in the oak-panelled
  • bed at home; and my heart ached with some great grief which, just
  • waking, I could not recollect. I pondered, and worried myself to
  • discover what it could be, and, most strangely, the whole last seven
  • years of my life grew a blank! I did not recall that they had been at
  • all. I was a child; my father was just buried, and my misery arose from
  • the separation that Hindley had ordered between me and Heathcliff. I was
  • laid alone, for the first time; and, rousing from a dismal doze after a
  • night of weeping, I lifted my hand to push the panels aside: it struck
  • the table-top! I swept it along the carpet, and then memory burst in: my
  • late anguish was swallowed in a paroxysm of despair. I cannot say why I
  • felt so wildly wretched: it must have been temporary derangement; for
  • there is scarcely cause. But, supposing at twelve years old I had been
  • wrenched from the Heights, and every early association, and my all in
  • all, as Heathcliff was at that time, and been converted at a stroke into
  • Mrs. Linton, the lady of Thrushcross Grange, and the wife of a stranger:
  • an exile, and outcast, thenceforth, from what had been my world. You may
  • fancy a glimpse of the abyss where I grovelled! Shake your head as you
  • will, Nelly, you have helped to unsettle me! You should have spoken to
  • Edgar, indeed you should, and compelled him to leave me quiet! Oh, I'm
  • burning! I wish I were out of doors! I wish I were a girl again, half
  • savage and hardy, and free; and laughing at injuries, not maddening
  • under them! Why am I so changed? why does my blood rush into a hell of
  • tumult at a few words? I'm sure I should be myself were I once among the
  • heather on those hills. Open the window again wide: fasten it open!
  • Quick, why don't you move?'
  • 'Because I won't give you your death of cold,' I answered.
  • 'You won't give me a chance of life, you mean,' she said, sullenly.
  • 'However, I'm not helpless yet; I'll open it myself.'
  • And sliding from the bed before I could hinder her, she crossed the room,
  • walking very uncertainly, threw it back, and bent out, careless of the
  • frosty air that cut about her shoulders as keen as a knife. I entreated,
  • and finally attempted to force her to retire. But I soon found her
  • delirious strength much surpassed mine (she was delirious, I became
  • convinced by her subsequent actions and ravings). There was no moon, and
  • everything beneath lay in misty darkness: not a light gleamed from any
  • house, far or near all had been extinguished long ago: and those at
  • Wuthering Heights were never visible--still she asserted she caught their
  • shining.
  • 'Look!' she cried eagerly, 'that's my room with the candle in it, and the
  • trees swaying before it; and the other candle is in Joseph's garret.
  • Joseph sits up late, doesn't he? He's waiting till I come home that he
  • may lock the gate. Well, he'll wait a while yet. It's a rough journey,
  • and a sad heart to travel it; and we must pass by Gimmerton Kirk to go
  • that journey! We've braved its ghosts often together, and dared each
  • other to stand among the graves and ask them to come. But, Heathcliff,
  • if I dare you now, will you venture? If you do, I'll keep you. I'll not
  • lie there by myself: they may bury me twelve feet deep, and throw the
  • church down over me, but I won't rest till you are with me. I never
  • will!'
  • She paused, and resumed with a strange smile. 'He's considering--he'd
  • rather I'd come to him! Find a way, then! not through that kirkyard. You
  • are slow! Be content, you always followed me!'
  • Perceiving it vain to argue against her insanity, I was planning how I
  • could reach something to wrap about her, without quitting my hold of
  • herself (for I could not trust her alone by the gaping lattice), when, to
  • my consternation, I heard the rattle of the door-handle, and Mr. Linton
  • entered. He had only then come from the library; and, in passing through
  • the lobby, had noticed our talking and been attracted by curiosity, or
  • fear, to examine what it signified, at that late hour.
  • 'Oh, sir!' I cried, checking the exclamation risen to his lips at the
  • sight which met him, and the bleak atmosphere of the chamber. 'My poor
  • mistress is ill, and she quite masters me: I cannot manage her at all;
  • pray, come and persuade her to go to bed. Forget your anger, for she's
  • hard to guide any way but her own.'
  • 'Catherine ill?' he said, hastening to us. 'Shut the window, Ellen!
  • Catherine! why--'
  • He was silent. The haggardness of Mrs. Linton's appearance smote him
  • speechless, and he could only glance from her to me in horrified
  • astonishment.
  • 'She's been fretting here,' I continued, 'and eating scarcely anything,
  • and never complaining: she would admit none of us till this evening, and
  • so we couldn't inform you of her state, as we were not aware of it
  • ourselves; but it is nothing.'
  • I felt I uttered my explanations awkwardly; the master frowned. 'It is
  • nothing, is it, Ellen Dean?' he said sternly. 'You shall account more
  • clearly for keeping me ignorant of this!' And he took his wife in his
  • arms, and looked at her with anguish.
  • At first she gave him no glance of recognition: he was invisible to her
  • abstracted gaze. The delirium was not fixed, however; having weaned her
  • eyes from contemplating the outer darkness, by degrees she centred her
  • attention on him, and discovered who it was that held her.
  • 'Ah! you are come, are you, Edgar Linton?' she said, with angry
  • animation. 'You are one of those things that are ever found when least
  • wanted, and when you are wanted, never! I suppose we shall have plenty
  • of lamentations now--I see we shall--but they can't keep me from my
  • narrow home out yonder: my resting-place, where I'm bound before spring
  • is over! There it is: not among the Lintons, mind, under the
  • chapel-roof, but in the open air, with a head-stone; and you may please
  • yourself whether you go to them or come to me!'
  • 'Catherine, what have you done?' commenced the master. 'Am I nothing to
  • you any more? Do you love that wretch Heath--'
  • 'Hush!' cried Mrs. Linton. 'Hush, this moment! You mention that name
  • and I end the matter instantly by a spring from the window! What you
  • touch at present you may have; but my soul will be on that hill-top
  • before you lay hands on me again. I don't want you, Edgar: I'm past
  • wanting you. Return to your books. I'm glad you possess a consolation,
  • for all you had in me is gone.'
  • 'Her mind wanders, sir,' I interposed. 'She has been talking nonsense
  • the whole evening; but let her have quiet, and proper attendance, and
  • she'll rally. Hereafter, we must be cautious how we vex her.'
  • 'I desire no further advice from you,' answered Mr. Linton. 'You knew
  • your mistress's nature, and you encouraged me to harass her. And not to
  • give me one hint of how she has been these three days! It was heartless!
  • Months of sickness could not cause such a change!'
  • I began to defend myself, thinking it too bad to be blamed for another's
  • wicked waywardness. 'I knew Mrs. Linton's nature to be headstrong and
  • domineering,' cried I: 'but I didn't know that you wished to foster her
  • fierce temper! I didn't know that, to humour her, I should wink at Mr.
  • Heathcliff. I performed the duty of a faithful servant in telling you,
  • and I have got a faithful servant's wages! Well, it will teach me to be
  • careful next time. Next time you may gather intelligence for yourself!'
  • 'The next time you bring a tale to me you shall quit my service, Ellen
  • Dean,' he replied.
  • 'You'd rather hear nothing about it, I suppose, then, Mr. Linton?' said
  • I. 'Heathcliff has your permission to come a-courting to Miss, and to
  • drop in at every opportunity your absence offers, on purpose to poison
  • the mistress against you?'
  • Confused as Catherine was, her wits were alert at applying our
  • conversation.
  • 'Ah! Nelly has played traitor,' she exclaimed, passionately. 'Nelly is
  • my hidden enemy. You witch! So you do seek elf-bolts to hurt us! Let
  • me go, and I'll make her rue! I'll make her howl a recantation!'
  • A maniac's fury kindled under her brows; she struggled desperately to
  • disengage herself from Linton's arms. I felt no inclination to tarry the
  • event; and, resolving to seek medical aid on my own responsibility, I
  • quitted the chamber.
  • In passing the garden to reach the road, at a place where a bridle hook
  • is driven into the wall, I saw something white moved irregularly,
  • evidently by another agent than the wind. Notwithstanding my hurry, I
  • stayed to examine it, lest ever after I should have the conviction
  • impressed on my imagination that it was a creature of the other world. My
  • surprise and perplexity were great on discovering, by touch more than
  • vision, Miss Isabella's springer, Fanny, suspended by a handkerchief, and
  • nearly at its last gasp. I quickly released the animal, and lifted it
  • into the garden. I had seen it follow its mistress up-stairs when she
  • went to bed; and wondered much how it could have got out there, and what
  • mischievous person had treated it so. While untying the knot round the
  • hook, it seemed to me that I repeatedly caught the beat of horses' feet
  • galloping at some distance; but there were such a number of things to
  • occupy my reflections that I hardly gave the circumstance a thought:
  • though it was a strange sound, in that place, at two o'clock in the
  • morning.
  • Mr. Kenneth was fortunately just issuing from his house to see a patient
  • in the village as I came up the street; and my account of Catherine
  • Linton's malady induced him to accompany me back immediately. He was a
  • plain rough man; and he made no scruple to speak his doubts of her
  • surviving this second attack; unless she were more submissive to his
  • directions than she had shown herself before.
  • 'Nelly Dean,' said he, 'I can't help fancying there's an extra cause for
  • this. What has there been to do at the Grange? We've odd reports up
  • here. A stout, hearty lass like Catherine does not fall ill for a
  • trifle; and that sort of people should not either. It's hard work
  • bringing them through fevers, and such things. How did it begin?'
  • 'The master will inform you,' I answered; 'but you are acquainted with
  • the Earnshaws' violent dispositions, and Mrs. Linton caps them all. I
  • may say this; it commenced in a quarrel. She was struck during a tempest
  • of passion with a kind of fit. That's her account, at least: for she
  • flew off in the height of it, and locked herself up. Afterwards, she
  • refused to eat, and now she alternately raves and remains in a half
  • dream; knowing those about her, but having her mind filled with all sorts
  • of strange ideas and illusions.'
  • 'Mr. Linton will be sorry?' observed Kenneth, interrogatively.
  • 'Sorry? he'll break his heart should anything happen!' I replied. 'Don't
  • alarm him more than necessary.'
  • 'Well, I told him to beware,' said my companion; 'and he must bide the
  • consequences of neglecting my warning! Hasn't he been intimate with Mr.
  • Heathcliff lately?'
  • 'Heathcliff frequently visits at the Grange,' answered I, 'though more on
  • the strength of the mistress having known him when a boy, than because
  • the master likes his company. At present he's discharged from the
  • trouble of calling; owing to some presumptuous aspirations after Miss
  • Linton which he manifested. I hardly think he'll be taken in again.'
  • 'And does Miss Linton turn a cold shoulder on him?' was the doctor's next
  • question.
  • 'I'm not in her confidence,' returned I, reluctant to continue the
  • subject.
  • 'No, she's a sly one,' he remarked, shaking his head. 'She keeps her own
  • counsel! But she's a real little fool. I have it from good authority
  • that last night (and a pretty night it was!) she and Heathcliff were
  • walking in the plantation at the back of your house above two hours; and
  • he pressed her not to go in again, but just mount his horse and away with
  • him! My informant said she could only put him off by pledging her word
  • of honour to be prepared on their first meeting after that: when it was
  • to be he didn't hear; but you urge Mr. Linton to look sharp!'
  • This news filled me with fresh fears; I outstripped Kenneth, and ran most
  • of the way back. The little dog was yelping in the garden yet. I spared
  • a minute to open the gate for it, but instead of going to the house door,
  • it coursed up and down snuffing the grass, and would have escaped to the
  • road, had I not seized it and conveyed it in with me. On ascending to
  • Isabella's room, my suspicions were confirmed: it was empty. Had I been
  • a few hours sooner Mrs. Linton's illness might have arrested her rash
  • step. But what could be done now? There was a bare possibility of
  • overtaking them if pursued instantly. _I_ could not pursue them,
  • however; and I dared not rouse the family, and fill the place with
  • confusion; still less unfold the business to my master, absorbed as he
  • was in his present calamity, and having no heart to spare for a second
  • grief! I saw nothing for it but to hold my tongue, and suffer matters to
  • take their course; and Kenneth being arrived, I went with a badly
  • composed countenance to announce him. Catherine lay in a troubled sleep:
  • her husband had succeeded in soothing the excess of frenzy; he now hung
  • over her pillow, watching every shade and every change of her painfully
  • expressive features.
  • The doctor, on examining the case for himself, spoke hopefully to him of
  • its having a favourable termination, if we could only preserve around her
  • perfect and constant tranquillity. To me, he signified the threatening
  • danger was not so much death, as permanent alienation of intellect.
  • I did not close my eyes that night, nor did Mr. Linton: indeed, we never
  • went to bed; and the servants were all up long before the usual hour,
  • moving through the house with stealthy tread, and exchanging whispers as
  • they encountered each other in their vocations. Every one was active but
  • Miss Isabella; and they began to remark how sound she slept: her brother,
  • too, asked if she had risen, and seemed impatient for her presence, and
  • hurt that she showed so little anxiety for her sister-in-law. I trembled
  • lest he should send me to call her; but I was spared the pain of being
  • the first proclaimant of her flight. One of the maids, a thoughtless
  • girl, who had been on an early errand to Gimmerton, came panting
  • up-stairs, open-mouthed, and dashed into the chamber, crying: 'Oh, dear,
  • dear! What mun we have next? Master, master, our young lady--'
  • 'Hold your noise!' cried, I hastily, enraged at her clamorous manner.
  • 'Speak lower, Mary--What is the matter?' said Mr. Linton. 'What ails
  • your young lady?'
  • 'She's gone, she's gone! Yon' Heathcliff's run off wi' her!' gasped the
  • girl.
  • 'That is not true!' exclaimed Linton, rising in agitation. 'It cannot
  • be: how has the idea entered your head? Ellen Dean, go and seek her. It
  • is incredible: it cannot be.'
  • As he spoke he took the servant to the door, and then repeated his demand
  • to know her reasons for such an assertion.
  • 'Why, I met on the road a lad that fetches milk here,' she stammered,
  • 'and he asked whether we weren't in trouble at the Grange. I thought he
  • meant for missis's sickness, so I answered, yes. Then says he, "There's
  • somebody gone after 'em, I guess?" I stared. He saw I knew nought about
  • it, and he told how a gentleman and lady had stopped to have a horse's
  • shoe fastened at a blacksmith's shop, two miles out of Gimmerton, not
  • very long after midnight! and how the blacksmith's lass had got up to spy
  • who they were: she knew them both directly. And she noticed the
  • man--Heathcliff it was, she felt certain: nob'dy could mistake him,
  • besides--put a sovereign in her father's hand for payment. The lady had
  • a cloak about her face; but having desired a sup of water, while she
  • drank it fell back, and she saw her very plain. Heathcliff held both
  • bridles as they rode on, and they set their faces from the village, and
  • went as fast as the rough roads would let them. The lass said nothing to
  • her father, but she told it all over Gimmerton this morning.'
  • I ran and peeped, for form's sake, into Isabella's room; confirming, when
  • I returned, the servant's statement. Mr. Linton had resumed his seat by
  • the bed; on my re-entrance, he raised his eyes, read the meaning of my
  • blank aspect, and dropped them without giving an order, or uttering a
  • word.
  • 'Are we to try any measures for overtaking and bringing her back,' I
  • inquired. 'How should we do?'
  • 'She went of her own accord,' answered the master; 'she had a right to go
  • if she pleased. Trouble me no more about her. Hereafter she is only my
  • sister in name: not because I disown her, but because she has disowned
  • me.'
  • And that was all he said on the subject: he did not make single inquiry
  • further, or mention her in any way, except directing me to send what
  • property she had in the house to her fresh home, wherever it was, when I
  • knew it.
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • For two months the fugitives remained absent; in those two months, Mrs.
  • Linton encountered and conquered the worst shock of what was denominated
  • a brain fever. No mother could have nursed an only child more devotedly
  • than Edgar tended her. Day and night he was watching, and patiently
  • enduring all the annoyances that irritable nerves and a shaken reason
  • could inflict; and, though Kenneth remarked that what he saved from the
  • grave would only recompense his care by forming the source of constant
  • future anxiety--in fact, that his health and strength were being
  • sacrificed to preserve a mere ruin of humanity--he knew no limits in
  • gratitude and joy when Catherine's life was declared out of danger; and
  • hour after hour he would sit beside her, tracing the gradual return to
  • bodily health, and flattering his too sanguine hopes with the illusion
  • that her mind would settle back to its right balance also, and she would
  • soon be entirely her former self.
  • The first time she left her chamber was at the commencement of the
  • following March. Mr. Linton had put on her pillow, in the morning, a
  • handful of golden crocuses; her eye, long stranger to any gleam of
  • pleasure, caught them in waking, and shone delighted as she gathered them
  • eagerly together.
  • 'These are the earliest flowers at the Heights,' she exclaimed. 'They
  • remind me of soft thaw winds, and warm sunshine, and nearly melted snow.
  • Edgar, is there not a south wind, and is not the snow almost gone?'
  • 'The snow is quite gone down here, darling,' replied her husband; 'and I
  • only see two white spots on the whole range of moors: the sky is blue,
  • and the larks are singing, and the becks and brooks are all brim full.
  • Catherine, last spring at this time, I was longing to have you under this
  • roof; now, I wish you were a mile or two up those hills: the air blows so
  • sweetly, I feel that it would cure you.'
  • 'I shall never be there but once more,' said the invalid; 'and then
  • you'll leave me, and I shall remain for ever. Next spring you'll long
  • again to have me under this roof, and you'll look back and think you were
  • happy to-day.'
  • Linton lavished on her the kindest caresses, and tried to cheer her by
  • the fondest words; but, vaguely regarding the flowers, she let the tears
  • collect on her lashes and stream down her cheeks unheeding. We knew she
  • was really better, and, therefore, decided that long confinement to a
  • single place produced much of this despondency, and it might be partially
  • removed by a change of scene. The master told me to light a fire in the
  • many-weeks' deserted parlour, and to set an easy-chair in the sunshine by
  • the window; and then he brought her down, and she sat a long while
  • enjoying the genial heat, and, as we expected, revived by the objects
  • round her: which, though familiar, were free from the dreary associations
  • investing her hated sick chamber. By evening she seemed greatly
  • exhausted; yet no arguments could persuade her to return to that
  • apartment, and I had to arrange the parlour sofa for her bed, till
  • another room could be prepared. To obviate the fatigue of mounting and
  • descending the stairs, we fitted up this, where you lie at present--on
  • the same floor with the parlour; and she was soon strong enough to move
  • from one to the other, leaning on Edgar's arm. Ah, I thought myself, she
  • might recover, so waited on as she was. And there was double cause to
  • desire it, for on her existence depended that of another: we cherished
  • the hope that in a little while Mr. Linton's heart would be gladdened,
  • and his lands secured from a stranger's grip, by the birth of an heir.
  • I should mention that Isabella sent to her brother, some six weeks from
  • her departure, a short note, announcing her marriage with Heathcliff. It
  • appeared dry and cold; but at the bottom was dotted in with pencil an
  • obscure apology, and an entreaty for kind remembrance and reconciliation,
  • if her proceeding had offended him: asserting that she could not help it
  • then, and being done, she had now no power to repeal it. Linton did not
  • reply to this, I believe; and, in a fortnight more, I got a long letter,
  • which I considered odd, coming from the pen of a bride just out of the
  • honeymoon. I'll read it: for I keep it yet. Any relic of the dead is
  • precious, if they were valued living.
  • * * * * *
  • DEAR ELLEN, it begins,--I came last night to Wuthering Heights, and
  • heard, for the first time, that Catherine has been, and is yet, very ill.
  • I must not write to her, I suppose, and my brother is either too angry or
  • too distressed to answer what I sent him. Still, I must write to
  • somebody, and the only choice left me is you.
  • Inform Edgar that I'd give the world to see his face again--that my heart
  • returned to Thrushcross Grange in twenty-four hours after I left it, and
  • is there at this moment, full of warm feelings for him, and Catherine! _I
  • can't follow it though_--(these words are underlined)--they need not
  • expect me, and they may draw what conclusions they please; taking care,
  • however, to lay nothing at the door of my weak will or deficient
  • affection.
  • The remainder of the letter is for yourself alone. I want to ask you two
  • questions: the first is,--How did you contrive to preserve the common
  • sympathies of human nature when you resided here? I cannot recognise any
  • sentiment which those around share with me.
  • The second question I have great interest in; it is this--Is Mr.
  • Heathcliff a man? If so, is he mad? And if not, is he a devil? I
  • sha'n't tell my reasons for making this inquiry; but I beseech you to
  • explain, if you can, what I have married: that is, when you call to see
  • me; and you must call, Ellen, very soon. Don't write, but come, and
  • bring me something from Edgar.
  • Now, you shall hear how I have been received in my new home, as I am led
  • to imagine the Heights will be. It is to amuse myself that I dwell on
  • such subjects as the lack of external comforts: they never occupy my
  • thoughts, except at the moment when I miss them. I should laugh and
  • dance for joy, if I found their absence was the total of my miseries, and
  • the rest was an unnatural dream!
  • The sun set behind the Grange as we turned on to the moors; by that, I
  • judged it to be six o'clock; and my companion halted half an hour, to
  • inspect the park, and the gardens, and, probably, the place itself, as
  • well as he could; so it was dark when we dismounted in the paved yard of
  • the farm-house, and your old fellow-servant, Joseph, issued out to
  • receive us by the light of a dip candle. He did it with a courtesy that
  • redounded to his credit. His first act was to elevate his torch to a
  • level with my face, squint malignantly, project his under-lip, and turn
  • away. Then he took the two horses, and led them into the stables;
  • reappearing for the purpose of locking the outer gate, as if we lived in
  • an ancient castle.
  • Heathcliff stayed to speak to him, and I entered the kitchen--a dingy,
  • untidy hole; I daresay you would not know it, it is so changed since it
  • was in your charge. By the fire stood a ruffianly child, strong in limb
  • and dirty in garb, with a look of Catherine in his eyes and about his
  • mouth.
  • 'This is Edgar's legal nephew,' I reflected--'mine in a manner; I must
  • shake hands, and--yes--I must kiss him. It is right to establish a good
  • understanding at the beginning.'
  • I approached, and, attempting to take his chubby fist, said--'How do you
  • do, my dear?'
  • He replied in a jargon I did not comprehend.
  • 'Shall you and I be friends, Hareton?' was my next essay at conversation.
  • An oath, and a threat to set Throttler on me if I did not 'frame off'
  • rewarded my perseverance.
  • 'Hey, Throttler, lad!' whispered the little wretch, rousing a half-bred
  • bull-dog from its lair in a corner. 'Now, wilt thou be ganging?' he
  • asked authoritatively.
  • Love for my life urged a compliance; I stepped over the threshold to wait
  • till the others should enter. Mr. Heathcliff was nowhere visible; and
  • Joseph, whom I followed to the stables, and requested to accompany me in,
  • after staring and muttering to himself, screwed up his nose and
  • replied--'Mim! mim! mim! Did iver Christian body hear aught like it?
  • Mincing un' munching! How can I tell whet ye say?'
  • 'I say, I wish you to come with me into the house!' I cried, thinking him
  • deaf, yet highly disgusted at his rudeness.
  • 'None o' me! I getten summut else to do,' he answered, and continued his
  • work; moving his lantern jaws meanwhile, and surveying my dress and
  • countenance (the former a great deal too fine, but the latter, I'm sure,
  • as sad as he could desire) with sovereign contempt.
  • I walked round the yard, and through a wicket, to another door, at which
  • I took the liberty of knocking, in hopes some more civil servant might
  • show himself. After a short suspense, it was opened by a tall, gaunt
  • man, without neckerchief, and otherwise extremely slovenly; his features
  • were lost in masses of shaggy hair that hung on his shoulders; and _his_
  • eyes, too, were like a ghostly Catherine's with all their beauty
  • annihilated.
  • 'What's your business here?' he demanded, grimly. 'Who are you?'
  • 'My name was Isabella Linton,' I replied. 'You've seen me before, sir.
  • I'm lately married to Mr. Heathcliff, and he has brought me here--I
  • suppose, by your permission.'
  • 'Is he come back, then?' asked the hermit, glaring like a hungry wolf.
  • 'Yes--we came just now,' I said; 'but he left me by the kitchen door; and
  • when I would have gone in, your little boy played sentinel over the
  • place, and frightened me off by the help of a bull-dog.'
  • 'It's well the hellish villain has kept his word!' growled my future
  • host, searching the darkness beyond me in expectation of discovering
  • Heathcliff; and then he indulged in a soliloquy of execrations, and
  • threats of what he would have done had the 'fiend' deceived him.
  • I repented having tried this second entrance, and was almost inclined to
  • slip away before he finished cursing, but ere I could execute that
  • intention, he ordered me in, and shut and re-fastened the door. There
  • was a great fire, and that was all the light in the huge apartment, whose
  • floor had grown a uniform grey; and the once brilliant pewter-dishes,
  • which used to attract my gaze when I was a girl, partook of a similar
  • obscurity, created by tarnish and dust. I inquired whether I might call
  • the maid, and be conducted to a bedroom! Mr. Earnshaw vouchsafed no
  • answer. He walked up and down, with his hands in his pockets, apparently
  • quite forgetting my presence; and his abstraction was evidently so deep,
  • and his whole aspect so misanthropical, that I shrank from disturbing him
  • again.
  • You'll not be surprised, Ellen, at my feeling particularly cheerless,
  • seated in worse than solitude on that inhospitable hearth, and
  • remembering that four miles distant lay my delightful home, containing
  • the only people I loved on earth; and there might as well be the
  • Atlantic to part us, instead of those four miles: I could not overpass
  • them! I questioned with myself--where must I turn for comfort? and--mind
  • you don't tell Edgar, or Catherine--above every sorrow beside, this rose
  • pre-eminent: despair at finding nobody who could or would be my ally
  • against Heathcliff! I had sought shelter at Wuthering Heights, almost
  • gladly, because I was secured by that arrangement from living alone with
  • him; but he knew the people we were coming amongst, and he did not fear
  • their intermeddling.
  • I sat and thought a doleful time: the clock struck eight, and nine, and
  • still my companion paced to and fro, his head bent on his breast, and
  • perfectly silent, unless a groan or a bitter ejaculation forced itself
  • out at intervals. I listened to detect a woman's voice in the house, and
  • filled the interim with wild regrets and dismal anticipations, which, at
  • last, spoke audibly in irrepressible sighing and weeping. I was not
  • aware how openly I grieved, till Earnshaw halted opposite, in his
  • measured walk, and gave me a stare of newly-awakened surprise. Taking
  • advantage of his recovered attention, I exclaimed--'I'm tired with my
  • journey, and I want to go to bed! Where is the maid-servant? Direct me
  • to her, as she won't come to me!'
  • 'We have none,' he answered; 'you must wait on yourself!'
  • 'Where must I sleep, then?' I sobbed; I was beyond regarding
  • self-respect, weighed down by fatigue and wretchedness.
  • 'Joseph will show you Heathcliff's chamber,' said he; 'open that
  • door--he's in there.'
  • I was going to obey, but he suddenly arrested me, and added in the
  • strangest tone--'Be so good as to turn your lock, and draw your
  • bolt--don't omit it!'
  • 'Well!' I said. 'But why, Mr. Earnshaw?' I did not relish the notion of
  • deliberately fastening myself in with Heathcliff.
  • 'Look here!' he replied, pulling from his waistcoat a
  • curiously-constructed pistol, having a double-edged spring knife attached
  • to the barrel. 'That's a great tempter to a desperate man, is it not? I
  • cannot resist going up with this every night, and trying his door. If
  • once I find it open he's done for; I do it invariably, even though the
  • minute before I have been recalling a hundred reasons that should make me
  • refrain: it is some devil that urges me to thwart my own schemes by
  • killing him. You fight against that devil for love as long as you may;
  • when the time comes, not all the angels in heaven shall save him!'
  • I surveyed the weapon inquisitively. A hideous notion struck me: how
  • powerful I should be possessing such an instrument! I took it from his
  • hand, and touched the blade. He looked astonished at the expression my
  • face assumed during a brief second: it was not horror, it was
  • covetousness. He snatched the pistol back, jealously; shut the knife,
  • and returned it to its concealment.
  • 'I don't care if you tell him,' said he. 'Put him on his guard, and
  • watch for him. You know the terms we are on, I see: his danger does not
  • shock you.'
  • 'What has Heathcliff done to you?' I asked. 'In what has he wronged you,
  • to warrant this appalling hatred? Wouldn't it be wiser to bid him quit
  • the house?'
  • 'No!' thundered Earnshaw; 'should he offer to leave me, he's a dead man:
  • persuade him to attempt it, and you are a murderess! Am I to lose _all_,
  • without a chance of retrieval? Is Hareton to be a beggar? Oh,
  • damnation! I _will_ have it back; and I'll have _his_ gold too; and then
  • his blood; and hell shall have his soul! It will be ten times blacker
  • with that guest than ever it was before!'
  • You've acquainted me, Ellen, with your old master's habits. He is
  • clearly on the verge of madness: he was so last night at least. I
  • shuddered to be near him, and thought on the servant's ill-bred
  • moroseness as comparatively agreeable. He now recommenced his moody
  • walk, and I raised the latch, and escaped into the kitchen. Joseph was
  • bending over the fire, peering into a large pan that swung above it; and
  • a wooden bowl of oatmeal stood on the settle close by. The contents of
  • the pan began to boil, and he turned to plunge his hand into the bowl; I
  • conjectured that this preparation was probably for our supper, and, being
  • hungry, I resolved it should be eatable; so, crying out sharply, '_I'll_
  • make the porridge!' I removed the vessel out of his reach, and proceeded
  • to take off my hat and riding-habit. 'Mr. Earnshaw,' I continued,
  • 'directs me to wait on myself: I will. I'm not going to act the lady
  • among you, for fear I should starve.'
  • 'Gooid Lord!' he muttered, sitting down, and stroking his ribbed
  • stockings from the knee to the ankle. 'If there's to be fresh
  • ortherings--just when I getten used to two maisters, if I mun hev' a
  • _mistress_ set o'er my heead, it's like time to be flitting. I niver
  • _did_ think to see t' day that I mud lave th' owld place--but I doubt
  • it's nigh at hand!'
  • This lamentation drew no notice from me: I went briskly to work, sighing
  • to remember a period when it would have been all merry fun; but compelled
  • speedily to drive off the remembrance. It racked me to recall past
  • happiness and the greater peril there was of conjuring up its apparition,
  • the quicker the thible ran round, and the faster the handfuls of meal
  • fell into the water. Joseph beheld my style of cookery with growing
  • indignation.
  • 'Thear!' he ejaculated. 'Hareton, thou willn't sup thy porridge
  • to-neeght; they'll be naught but lumps as big as my neive. Thear, agean!
  • I'd fling in bowl un' all, if I wer ye! There, pale t' guilp off, un'
  • then ye'll hae done wi' 't. Bang, bang. It's a mercy t' bothom isn't
  • deaved out!'
  • It _was_ rather a rough mess, I own, when poured into the basins; four
  • had been provided, and a gallon pitcher of new milk was brought from the
  • dairy, which Hareton seized and commenced drinking and spilling from the
  • expansive lip. I expostulated, and desired that he should have his in a
  • mug; affirming that I could not taste the liquid treated so dirtily. The
  • old cynic chose to be vastly offended at this nicety; assuring me,
  • repeatedly, that 'the barn was every bit as good' as I, 'and every bit as
  • wollsome,' and wondering how I could fashion to be so conceited.
  • Meanwhile, the infant ruffian continued sucking; and glowered up at me
  • defyingly, as he slavered into the jug.
  • 'I shall have my supper in another room,' I said. 'Have you no place you
  • call a parlour?'
  • '_Parlour_!' he echoed, sneeringly, '_parlour_! Nay, we've noa
  • _parlours_. If yah dunnut loike wer company, there's maister's; un' if
  • yah dunnut loike maister, there's us.'
  • 'Then I shall go up-stairs,' I answered; 'show me a chamber.'
  • I put my basin on a tray, and went myself to fetch some more milk. With
  • great grumblings, the fellow rose, and preceded me in my ascent: we
  • mounted to the garrets; he opened a door, now and then, to look into the
  • apartments we passed.
  • 'Here's a rahm,' he said, at last, flinging back a cranky board on
  • hinges. 'It's weel eneugh to ate a few porridge in. There's a pack o'
  • corn i' t' corner, thear, meeterly clane; if ye're feared o' muckying yer
  • grand silk cloes, spread yer hankerchir o' t' top on't.'
  • The 'rahm' was a kind of lumber-hole smelling strong of malt and grain;
  • various sacks of which articles were piled around, leaving a wide, bare
  • space in the middle.
  • 'Why, man,' I exclaimed, facing him angrily, 'this is not a place to
  • sleep in. I wish to see my bed-room.'
  • '_Bed-rume_!' he repeated, in a tone of mockery. 'Yah's see all t'
  • _bed-rumes_ thear is--yon's mine.'
  • He pointed into the second garret, only differing from the first in being
  • more naked about the walls, and having a large, low, curtainless bed,
  • with an indigo-coloured quilt, at one end.
  • 'What do I want with yours?' I retorted. 'I suppose Mr. Heathcliff does
  • not lodge at the top of the house, does he?'
  • 'Oh! it's Maister _Hathecliff's_ ye're wanting?' cried he, as if making a
  • new discovery. 'Couldn't ye ha' said soa, at onst? un' then, I mud ha'
  • telled ye, baht all this wark, that that's just one ye cannut see--he
  • allas keeps it locked, un' nob'dy iver mells on't but hisseln.'
  • 'You've a nice house, Joseph,' I could not refrain from observing, 'and
  • pleasant inmates; and I think the concentrated essence of all the madness
  • in the world took up its abode in my brain the day I linked my fate with
  • theirs! However, that is not to the present purpose--there are other
  • rooms. For heaven's sake be quick, and let me settle somewhere!'
  • He made no reply to this adjuration; only plodding doggedly down the
  • wooden steps, and halting, before an apartment which, from that halt and
  • the superior quality of its furniture, I conjectured to be the best one.
  • There was a carpet--a good one, but the pattern was obliterated by dust;
  • a fireplace hung with cut-paper, dropping to pieces; a handsome
  • oak-bedstead with ample crimson curtains of rather expensive material and
  • modern make; but they had evidently experienced rough usage: the
  • vallances hung in festoons, wrenched from their rings, and the iron rod
  • supporting them was bent in an arc on one side, causing the drapery to
  • trail upon the floor. The chairs were also damaged, many of them
  • severely; and deep indentations deformed the panels of the walls. I was
  • endeavouring to gather resolution for entering and taking possession,
  • when my fool of a guide announced,--'This here is t' maister's.' My
  • supper by this time was cold, my appetite gone, and my patience
  • exhausted. I insisted on being provided instantly with a place of
  • refuge, and means of repose.
  • 'Whear the divil?' began the religious elder. 'The Lord bless us! The
  • Lord forgie us! Whear the _hell_ wold ye gang? ye marred, wearisome
  • nowt! Ye've seen all but Hareton's bit of a cham'er. There's not
  • another hoile to lig down in i' th' hahse!'
  • I was so vexed, I flung my tray and its contents on the ground; and then
  • seated myself at the stairs'-head, hid my face in my hands, and cried.
  • 'Ech! ech!' exclaimed Joseph. 'Weel done, Miss Cathy! weel done, Miss
  • Cathy! Howsiver, t' maister sall just tum'le o'er them brooken pots; un'
  • then we's hear summut; we's hear how it's to be. Gooid-for-naught
  • madling! ye desarve pining fro' this to Chrustmas, flinging t' precious
  • gifts o'God under fooit i' yer flaysome rages! But I'm mista'en if ye
  • shew yer sperrit lang. Will Hathecliff bide sich bonny ways, think ye? I
  • nobbut wish he may catch ye i' that plisky. I nobbut wish he may.'
  • And so he went on scolding to his den beneath, taking the candle with
  • him; and I remained in the dark. The period of reflection succeeding
  • this silly action compelled me to admit the necessity of smothering my
  • pride and choking my wrath, and bestirring myself to remove its effects.
  • An unexpected aid presently appeared in the shape of Throttler, whom I
  • now recognised as a son of our old Skulker: it had spent its whelphood
  • at the Grange, and was given by my father to Mr. Hindley. I fancy it
  • knew me: it pushed its nose against mine by way of salute, and then
  • hastened to devour the porridge; while I groped from step to step,
  • collecting the shattered earthenware, and drying the spatters of milk
  • from the banister with my pocket-handkerchief. Our labours were scarcely
  • over when I heard Earnshaw's tread in the passage; my assistant tucked
  • in his tail, and pressed to the wall; I stole into the nearest doorway.
  • The dog's endeavour to avoid him was unsuccessful; as I guessed by a
  • scutter down-stairs, and a prolonged, piteous yelping. I had better
  • luck: he passed on, entered his chamber, and shut the door. Directly
  • after Joseph came up with Hareton, to put him to bed. I had found
  • shelter in Hareton's room, and the old man, on seeing me, said,--'They's
  • rahm for boath ye un' yer pride, now, I sud think i' the hahse. It's
  • empty; ye may hev' it all to yerseln, un' Him as allus maks a third, i'
  • sich ill company!'
  • Gladly did I take advantage of this intimation; and the minute I flung
  • myself into a chair, by the fire, I nodded, and slept. My slumber was
  • deep and sweet, though over far too soon. Mr. Heathcliff awoke me; he
  • had just come in, and demanded, in his loving manner, what I was doing
  • there? I told him the cause of my staying up so late--that he had the
  • key of our room in his pocket. The adjective _our_ gave mortal offence.
  • He swore it was not, nor ever should be, mine; and he'd--but I'll not
  • repeat his language, nor describe his habitual conduct: he is ingenious
  • and unresting in seeking to gain my abhorrence! I sometimes wonder at
  • him with an intensity that deadens my fear: yet, I assure you, a tiger or
  • a venomous serpent could not rouse terror in me equal to that which he
  • wakens. He told me of Catherine's illness, and accused my brother of
  • causing it promising that I should be Edgar's proxy in suffering, till he
  • could get hold of him.
  • I do hate him--I am wretched--I have been a fool! Beware of uttering one
  • breath of this to any one at the Grange. I shall expect you every
  • day--don't disappoint me!--ISABELLA.
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • As soon as I had perused this epistle I went to the master, and informed
  • him that his sister had arrived at the Heights, and sent me a letter
  • expressing her sorrow for Mrs. Linton's situation, and her ardent desire
  • to see him; with a wish that he would transmit to her, as early as
  • possible, some token of forgiveness by me.
  • 'Forgiveness!' said Linton. 'I have nothing to forgive her, Ellen. You
  • may call at Wuthering Heights this afternoon, if you like, and say that I
  • am not angry, but I'm sorry to have lost her; especially as I can never
  • think she'll be happy. It is out of the question my going to see her,
  • however: we are eternally divided; and should she really wish to oblige
  • me, let her persuade the villain she has married to leave the country.'
  • 'And you won't write her a little note, sir?' I asked, imploringly.
  • 'No,' he answered. 'It is needless. My communication with Heathcliff's
  • family shall be as sparing as his with mine. It shall not exist!'
  • Mr. Edgar's coldness depressed me exceedingly; and all the way from the
  • Grange I puzzled my brains how to put more heart into what he said, when
  • I repeated it; and how to soften his refusal of even a few lines to
  • console Isabella. I daresay she had been on the watch for me since
  • morning: I saw her looking through the lattice as I came up the garden
  • causeway, and I nodded to her; but she drew back, as if afraid of being
  • observed. I entered without knocking. There never was such a dreary,
  • dismal scene as the formerly cheerful house presented! I must confess,
  • that if I had been in the young lady's place, I would, at least, have
  • swept the hearth, and wiped the tables with a duster. But she already
  • partook of the pervading spirit of neglect which encompassed her. Her
  • pretty face was wan and listless; her hair uncurled: some locks hanging
  • lankly down, and some carelessly twisted round her head. Probably she
  • had not touched her dress since yester evening. Hindley was not there.
  • Mr. Heathcliff sat at a table, turning over some papers in his
  • pocket-book; but he rose when I appeared, asked me how I did, quite
  • friendly, and offered me a chair. He was the only thing there that
  • seemed decent; and I thought he never looked better. So much had
  • circumstances altered their positions, that he would certainly have
  • struck a stranger as a born and bred gentleman; and his wife as a
  • thorough little slattern! She came forward eagerly to greet me, and held
  • out one hand to take the expected letter. I shook my head. She wouldn't
  • understand the hint, but followed me to a sideboard, where I went to lay
  • my bonnet, and importuned me in a whisper to give her directly what I
  • had brought. Heathcliff guessed the meaning of her manoeuvres, and
  • said--'If you have got anything for Isabella (as no doubt you have,
  • Nelly), give it to her. You needn't make a secret of it: we have no
  • secrets between us.'
  • 'Oh, I have nothing,' I replied, thinking it best to speak the truth at
  • once. 'My master bid me tell his sister that she must not expect either
  • a letter or a visit from him at present. He sends his love, ma'am, and
  • his wishes for your happiness, and his pardon for the grief you have
  • occasioned; but he thinks that after this time his household and the
  • household here should drop intercommunication, as nothing could come of
  • keeping it up.'
  • Mrs. Heathcliff's lip quivered slightly, and she returned to her seat in
  • the window. Her husband took his stand on the hearthstone, near me, and
  • began to put questions concerning Catherine. I told him as much as I
  • thought proper of her illness, and he extorted from me, by
  • cross-examination, most of the facts connected with its origin. I blamed
  • her, as she deserved, for bringing it all on herself; and ended by hoping
  • that he would follow Mr. Linton's example and avoid future interference
  • with his family, for good or evil.
  • 'Mrs. Linton is now just recovering,' I said; 'she'll never be like she
  • was, but her life is spared; and if you really have a regard for her,
  • you'll shun crossing her way again: nay, you'll move out of this country
  • entirely; and that you may not regret it, I'll inform you Catherine
  • Linton is as different now from your old friend Catherine Earnshaw, as
  • that young lady is different from me. Her appearance is changed greatly,
  • her character much more so; and the person who is compelled, of
  • necessity, to be her companion, will only sustain his affection hereafter
  • by the remembrance of what she once was, by common humanity, and a sense
  • of duty!'
  • 'That is quite possible,' remarked Heathcliff, forcing himself to seem
  • calm: 'quite possible that your master should have nothing but common
  • humanity and a sense of duty to fall back upon. But do you imagine that
  • I shall leave Catherine to his _duty_ and _humanity_? and can you compare
  • my feelings respecting Catherine to his? Before you leave this house, I
  • must exact a promise from you that you'll get me an interview with her:
  • consent, or refuse, I _will_ see her! What do you say?'
  • 'I say, Mr. Heathcliff,' I replied, 'you must not: you never shall,
  • through my means. Another encounter between you and the master would
  • kill her altogether.'
  • 'With your aid that may be avoided,' he continued; 'and should there be
  • danger of such an event--should he be the cause of adding a single
  • trouble more to her existence--why, I think I shall be justified in going
  • to extremes! I wish you had sincerity enough to tell me whether
  • Catherine would suffer greatly from his loss: the fear that she would
  • restrains me. And there you see the distinction between our feelings:
  • had he been in my place, and I in his, though I hated him with a hatred
  • that turned my life to gall, I never would have raised a hand against
  • him. You may look incredulous, if you please! I never would have
  • banished him from her society as long as she desired his. The moment her
  • regard ceased, I would have torn his heart out, and drunk his blood! But,
  • till then--if you don't believe me, you don't know me--till then, I would
  • have died by inches before I touched a single hair of his head!'
  • 'And yet,' I interrupted, 'you have no scruples in completely ruining all
  • hopes of her perfect restoration, by thrusting yourself into her
  • remembrance now, when she has nearly forgotten you, and involving her in
  • a new tumult of discord and distress.'
  • 'You suppose she has nearly forgotten me?' he said. 'Oh, Nelly! you know
  • she has not! You know as well as I do, that for every thought she spends
  • on Linton she spends a thousand on me! At a most miserable period of my
  • life, I had a notion of the kind: it haunted me on my return to the
  • neighbourhood last summer; but only her own assurance could make me admit
  • the horrible idea again. And then, Linton would be nothing, nor Hindley,
  • nor all the dreams that ever I dreamt. Two words would comprehend my
  • future--_death_ and _hell_: existence, after losing her, would be hell.
  • Yet I was a fool to fancy for a moment that she valued Edgar Linton's
  • attachment more than mine. If he loved with all the powers of his puny
  • being, he couldn't love as much in eighty years as I could in a day. And
  • Catherine has a heart as deep as I have: the sea could be as readily
  • contained in that horse-trough as her whole affection be monopolised by
  • him. Tush! He is scarcely a degree dearer to her than her dog, or her
  • horse. It is not in him to be loved like me: how can she love in him
  • what he has not?'
  • 'Catherine and Edgar are as fond of each other as any two people can be,'
  • cried Isabella, with sudden vivacity. 'No one has a right to talk in
  • that manner, and I won't hear my brother depreciated in silence!'
  • 'Your brother is wondrous fond of you too, isn't he?' observed
  • Heathcliff, scornfully. 'He turns you adrift on the world with
  • surprising alacrity.'
  • 'He is not aware of what I suffer,' she replied. 'I didn't tell him
  • that.'
  • 'You have been telling him something, then: you have written, have you?'
  • 'To say that I was married, I did write--you saw the note.'
  • 'And nothing since?'
  • 'No.'
  • 'My young lady is looking sadly the worse for her change of condition,' I
  • remarked. 'Somebody's love comes short in her case, obviously; whose, I
  • may guess; but, perhaps, I shouldn't say.'
  • 'I should guess it was her own,' said Heathcliff. 'She degenerates into
  • a mere slut! She is tired of trying to please me uncommonly early. You'd
  • hardly credit it, but the very morrow of our wedding she was weeping to
  • go home. However, she'll suit this house so much the better for not
  • being over nice, and I'll take care she does not disgrace me by rambling
  • abroad.'
  • 'Well, sir,' returned I, 'I hope you'll consider that Mrs. Heathcliff is
  • accustomed to be looked after and waited on; and that she has been
  • brought up like an only daughter, whom every one was ready to serve. You
  • must let her have a maid to keep things tidy about her, and you must
  • treat her kindly. Whatever be your notion of Mr. Edgar, you cannot doubt
  • that she has a capacity for strong attachments, or she wouldn't have
  • abandoned the elegancies, and comforts, and friends of her former home,
  • to fix contentedly, in such a wilderness as this, with you.'
  • 'She abandoned them under a delusion,' he answered; 'picturing in me a
  • hero of romance, and expecting unlimited indulgences from my chivalrous
  • devotion. I can hardly regard her in the light of a rational creature,
  • so obstinately has she persisted in forming a fabulous notion of my
  • character and acting on the false impressions she cherished. But, at
  • last, I think she begins to know me: I don't perceive the silly smiles
  • and grimaces that provoked me at first; and the senseless incapability of
  • discerning that I was in earnest when I gave her my opinion of her
  • infatuation and herself. It was a marvellous effort of perspicacity to
  • discover that I did not love her. I believed, at one time, no lessons
  • could teach her that! And yet it is poorly learnt; for this morning she
  • announced, as a piece of appalling intelligence, that I had actually
  • succeeded in making her hate me! A positive labour of Hercules, I assure
  • you! If it be achieved, I have cause to return thanks. Can I trust your
  • assertion, Isabella? Are you sure you hate me? If I let you alone for
  • half a day, won't you come sighing and wheedling to me again? I daresay
  • she would rather I had seemed all tenderness before you: it wounds her
  • vanity to have the truth exposed. But I don't care who knows that the
  • passion was wholly on one side: and I never told her a lie about it. She
  • cannot accuse me of showing one bit of deceitful softness. The first
  • thing she saw me do, on coming out of the Grange, was to hang up her
  • little dog; and when she pleaded for it, the first words I uttered were a
  • wish that I had the hanging of every being belonging to her, except one:
  • possibly she took that exception for herself. But no brutality disgusted
  • her: I suppose she has an innate admiration of it, if only her precious
  • person were secure from injury! Now, was it not the depth of
  • absurdity--of genuine idiotcy, for that pitiful, slavish, mean-minded
  • brach to dream that I could love her? Tell your master, Nelly, that I
  • never, in all my life, met with such an abject thing as she is. She even
  • disgraces the name of Linton; and I've sometimes relented, from pure lack
  • of invention, in my experiments on what she could endure, and still creep
  • shamefully cringing back! But tell him, also, to set his fraternal and
  • magisterial heart at ease: that I keep strictly within the limits of the
  • law. I have avoided, up to this period, giving her the slightest right
  • to claim a separation; and, what's more, she'd thank nobody for dividing
  • us. If she desired to go, she might: the nuisance of her presence
  • outweighs the gratification to be derived from tormenting her!'
  • 'Mr. Heathcliff,' said I, 'this is the talk of a madman; your wife, most
  • likely, is convinced you are mad; and, for that reason, she has borne
  • with you hitherto: but now that you say she may go, she'll doubtless
  • avail herself of the permission. You are not so bewitched, ma'am, are
  • you, as to remain with him of your own accord?'
  • 'Take care, Ellen!' answered Isabella, her eyes sparkling irefully; there
  • was no misdoubting by their expression the full success of her partner's
  • endeavours to make himself detested. 'Don't put faith in a single word
  • he speaks. He's a lying fiend! a monster, and not a human being! I've
  • been told I might leave him before; and I've made the attempt, but I dare
  • not repeat it! Only, Ellen, promise you'll not mention a syllable of his
  • infamous conversation to my brother or Catherine. Whatever he may
  • pretend, he wishes to provoke Edgar to desperation: he says he has
  • married me on purpose to obtain power over him; and he sha'n't obtain
  • it--I'll die first! I just hope, I pray, that he may forget his
  • diabolical prudence and kill me! The single pleasure I can imagine is to
  • die, or to see him dead!'
  • 'There--that will do for the present!' said Heathcliff. 'If you are
  • called upon in a court of law, you'll remember her language, Nelly! And
  • take a good look at that countenance: she's near the point which would
  • suit me. No; you're not fit to be your own guardian, Isabella, now; and
  • I, being your legal protector, must retain you in my custody, however
  • distasteful the obligation may be. Go up-stairs; I have something to say
  • to Ellen Dean in private. That's not the way: up-stairs, I tell you!
  • Why, this is the road upstairs, child!'
  • He seized, and thrust her from the room; and returned muttering--'I have
  • no pity! I have no pity! The more the worms writhe, the more I yearn to
  • crush out their entrails! It is a moral teething; and I grind with
  • greater energy in proportion to the increase of pain.'
  • 'Do you understand what the word pity means?' I said, hastening to resume
  • my bonnet. 'Did you ever feel a touch of it in your life?'
  • 'Put that down!' he interrupted, perceiving my intention to depart. 'You
  • are not going yet. Come here now, Nelly: I must either persuade or
  • compel you to aid me in fulfilling my determination to see Catherine, and
  • that without delay. I swear that I meditate no harm: I don't desire to
  • cause any disturbance, or to exasperate or insult Mr. Linton; I only wish
  • to hear from herself how she is, and why she has been ill; and to ask if
  • anything that I could do would be of use to her. Last night I was in the
  • Grange garden six hours, and I'll return there to-night; and every night
  • I'll haunt the place, and every day, till I find an opportunity of
  • entering. If Edgar Linton meets me, I shall not hesitate to knock him
  • down, and give him enough to insure his quiescence while I stay. If his
  • servants oppose me, I shall threaten them off with these pistols. But
  • wouldn't it be better to prevent my coming in contact with them, or their
  • master? And you could do it so easily. I'd warn you when I came, and
  • then you might let me in unobserved, as soon as she was alone, and watch
  • till I departed, your conscience quite calm: you would be hindering
  • mischief.'
  • I protested against playing that treacherous part in my employer's house:
  • and, besides, I urged the cruelty and selfishness of his destroying Mrs.
  • Linton's tranquillity for his satisfaction. 'The commonest occurrence
  • startles her painfully,' I said. 'She's all nerves, and she couldn't
  • bear the surprise, I'm positive. Don't persist, sir! or else I shall be
  • obliged to inform my master of your designs; and he'll take measures to
  • secure his house and its inmates from any such unwarrantable intrusions!'
  • 'In that case I'll take measures to secure you, woman!' exclaimed
  • Heathcliff; 'you shall not leave Wuthering Heights till to-morrow
  • morning. It is a foolish story to assert that Catherine could not bear
  • to see me; and as to surprising her, I don't desire it: you must prepare
  • her--ask her if I may come. You say she never mentions my name, and that
  • I am never mentioned to her. To whom should she mention me if I am a
  • forbidden topic in the house? She thinks you are all spies for her
  • husband. Oh, I've no doubt she's in hell among you! I guess by her
  • silence, as much as anything, what she feels. You say she is often
  • restless, and anxious-looking: is that a proof of tranquillity? You talk
  • of her mind being unsettled. How the devil could it be otherwise in her
  • frightful isolation? And that insipid, paltry creature attending her
  • from _duty_ and _humanity_! From _pity_ and _charity_! He might as well
  • plant an oak in a flower-pot, and expect it to thrive, as imagine he can
  • restore her to vigour in the soil of his shallow cares? Let us settle it
  • at once: will you stay here, and am I to fight my way to Catherine over
  • Linton and his footman? Or will you be my friend, as you have been
  • hitherto, and do what I request? Decide! because there is no reason for
  • my lingering another minute, if you persist in your stubborn ill-nature!'
  • Well, Mr. Lockwood, I argued and complained, and flatly refused him fifty
  • times; but in the long run he forced me to an agreement. I engaged to
  • carry a letter from him to my mistress; and should she consent, I
  • promised to let him have intelligence of Linton's next absence from home,
  • when he might come, and get in as he was able: I wouldn't be there, and
  • my fellow-servants should be equally out of the way. Was it right or
  • wrong? I fear it was wrong, though expedient. I thought I prevented
  • another explosion by my compliance; and I thought, too, it might create a
  • favourable crisis in Catherine's mental illness: and then I remembered
  • Mr. Edgar's stern rebuke of my carrying tales; and I tried to smooth away
  • all disquietude on the subject, by affirming, with frequent iteration,
  • that that betrayal of trust, if it merited so harsh an appellation,
  • should be the last. Notwithstanding, my journey homeward was sadder than
  • my journey thither; and many misgivings I had, ere I could prevail on
  • myself to put the missive into Mrs. Linton's hand.
  • But here is Kenneth; I'll go down, and tell him how much better you are.
  • My history is _dree_, as we say, and will serve to while away another
  • morning.
  • Dree, and dreary! I reflected as the good woman descended to receive the
  • doctor: and not exactly of the kind which I should have chosen to amuse
  • me. But never mind! I'll extract wholesome medicines from Mrs. Dean's
  • bitter herbs; and firstly, let me beware of the fascination that lurks in
  • Catherine Heathcliff's brilliant eyes. I should be in a curious taking
  • if I surrendered my heart to that young person, and the daughter turned
  • out a second edition of the mother.
  • CHAPTER XV
  • Another week over--and I am so many days nearer health, and spring! I
  • have now heard all my neighbour's history, at different sittings, as the
  • housekeeper could spare time from more important occupations. I'll
  • continue it in her own words, only a little condensed. She is, on the
  • whole, a very fair narrator, and I don't think I could improve her style.
  • In the evening, she said, the evening of my visit to the Heights, I knew,
  • as well as if I saw him, that Mr. Heathcliff was about the place; and I
  • shunned going out, because I still carried his letter in my pocket, and
  • didn't want to be threatened or teased any more. I had made up my mind
  • not to give it till my master went somewhere, as I could not guess how
  • its receipt would affect Catherine. The consequence was, that it did not
  • reach her before the lapse of three days. The fourth was Sunday, and I
  • brought it into her room after the family were gone to church. There was
  • a manservant left to keep the house with me, and we generally made a
  • practice of locking the doors during the hours of service; but on that
  • occasion the weather was so warm and pleasant that I set them wide open,
  • and, to fulfil my engagement, as I knew who would be coming, I told my
  • companion that the mistress wished very much for some oranges, and he
  • must run over to the village and get a few, to be paid for on the morrow.
  • He departed, and I went up-stairs.
  • Mrs. Linton sat in a loose white dress, with a light shawl over her
  • shoulders, in the recess of the open window, as usual. Her thick, long
  • hair had been partly removed at the beginning of her illness, and now she
  • wore it simply combed in its natural tresses over her temples and neck.
  • Her appearance was altered, as I had told Heathcliff; but when she was
  • calm, there seemed unearthly beauty in the change. The flash of her eyes
  • had been succeeded by a dreamy and melancholy softness; they no longer
  • gave the impression of looking at the objects around her: they appeared
  • always to gaze beyond, and far beyond--you would have said out of this
  • world. Then, the paleness of her face--its haggard aspect having
  • vanished as she recovered flesh--and the peculiar expression arising from
  • her mental state, though painfully suggestive of their causes, added to
  • the touching interest which she awakened; and--invariably to me, I know,
  • and to any person who saw her, I should think--refuted more tangible
  • proofs of convalescence, and stamped her as one doomed to decay.
  • A book lay spread on the sill before her, and the scarcely perceptible
  • wind fluttered its leaves at intervals. I believe Linton had laid it
  • there: for she never endeavoured to divert herself with reading, or
  • occupation of any kind, and he would spend many an hour in trying to
  • entice her attention to some subject which had formerly been her
  • amusement. She was conscious of his aim, and in her better moods endured
  • his efforts placidly, only showing their uselessness by now and then
  • suppressing a wearied sigh, and checking him at last with the saddest of
  • smiles and kisses. At other times, she would turn petulantly away, and
  • hide her face in her hands, or even push him off angrily; and then he
  • took care to let her alone, for he was certain of doing no good.
  • Gimmerton chapel bells were still ringing; and the full, mellow flow of
  • the beck in the valley came soothingly on the ear. It was a sweet
  • substitute for the yet absent murmur of the summer foliage, which drowned
  • that music about the Grange when the trees were in leaf. At Wuthering
  • Heights it always sounded on quiet days following a great thaw or a
  • season of steady rain. And of Wuthering Heights Catherine was thinking
  • as she listened: that is, if she thought or listened at all; but she had
  • the vague, distant look I mentioned before, which expressed no
  • recognition of material things either by ear or eye.
  • 'There's a letter for you, Mrs. Linton,' I said, gently inserting it in
  • one hand that rested on her knee. 'You must read it immediately, because
  • it wants an answer. Shall I break the seal?' 'Yes,' she answered,
  • without altering the direction of her eyes. I opened it--it was very
  • short. 'Now,' I continued, 'read it.' She drew away her hand, and let
  • it fall. I replaced it in her lap, and stood waiting till it should
  • please her to glance down; but that movement was so long delayed that at
  • last I resumed--'Must I read it, ma'am? It is from Mr. Heathcliff.'
  • There was a start and a troubled gleam of recollection, and a struggle to
  • arrange her ideas. She lifted the letter, and seemed to peruse it; and
  • when she came to the signature she sighed: yet still I found she had not
  • gathered its import, for, upon my desiring to hear her reply, she merely
  • pointed to the name, and gazed at me with mournful and questioning
  • eagerness.
  • 'Well, he wishes to see you,' said I, guessing her need of an
  • interpreter. 'He's in the garden by this time, and impatient to know
  • what answer I shall bring.'
  • As I spoke, I observed a large dog lying on the sunny grass beneath raise
  • its ears as if about to bark, and then smoothing them back, announce, by
  • a wag of the tail, that some one approached whom it did not consider a
  • stranger. Mrs. Linton bent forward, and listened breathlessly. The
  • minute after a step traversed the hall; the open house was too tempting
  • for Heathcliff to resist walking in: most likely he supposed that I was
  • inclined to shirk my promise, and so resolved to trust to his own
  • audacity. With straining eagerness Catherine gazed towards the entrance
  • of her chamber. He did not hit the right room directly: she motioned me
  • to admit him, but he found it out ere I could reach the door, and in a
  • stride or two was at her side, and had her grasped in his arms.
  • He neither spoke nor loosed his hold for some five minutes, during which
  • period he bestowed more kisses than ever he gave in his life before, I
  • daresay: but then my mistress had kissed him first, and I plainly saw
  • that he could hardly bear, for downright agony, to look into her face!
  • The same conviction had stricken him as me, from the instant he beheld
  • her, that there was no prospect of ultimate recovery there--she was
  • fated, sure to die.
  • 'Oh, Cathy! Oh, my life! how can I bear it?' was the first sentence he
  • uttered, in a tone that did not seek to disguise his despair. And now he
  • stared at her so earnestly that I thought the very intensity of his gaze
  • would bring tears into his eyes; but they burned with anguish: they did
  • not melt.
  • 'What now?' said Catherine, leaning back, and returning his look with a
  • suddenly clouded brow: her humour was a mere vane for constantly varying
  • caprices. 'You and Edgar have broken my heart, Heathcliff! And you both
  • come to bewail the deed to me, as if you were the people to be pitied! I
  • shall not pity you, not I. You have killed me--and thriven on it, I
  • think. How strong you are! How many years do you mean to live after I
  • am gone?'
  • Heathcliff had knelt on one knee to embrace her; he attempted to rise,
  • but she seized his hair, and kept him down.
  • 'I wish I could hold you,' she continued, bitterly, 'till we were both
  • dead! I shouldn't care what you suffered. I care nothing for your
  • sufferings. Why shouldn't you suffer? I do! Will you forget me? Will
  • you be happy when I am in the earth? Will you say twenty years hence,
  • "That's the grave of Catherine Earnshaw? I loved her long ago, and was
  • wretched to lose her; but it is past. I've loved many others since: my
  • children are dearer to me than she was; and, at death, I shall not
  • rejoice that I am going to her: I shall be sorry that I must leave
  • them!" Will you say so, Heathcliff?'
  • 'Don't torture me till I'm as mad as yourself,' cried he, wrenching his
  • head free, and grinding his teeth.
  • The two, to a cool spectator, made a strange and fearful picture. Well
  • might Catherine deem that heaven would be a land of exile to her, unless
  • with her mortal body she cast away her moral character also. Her present
  • countenance had a wild vindictiveness in its white cheek, and a bloodless
  • lip and scintillating eye; and she retained in her closed fingers a
  • portion of the locks she had been grasping. As to her companion, while
  • raising himself with one hand, he had taken her arm with the other; and
  • so inadequate was his stock of gentleness to the requirements of her
  • condition, that on his letting go I saw four distinct impressions left
  • blue in the colourless skin.
  • 'Are you possessed with a devil,' he pursued, savagely, 'to talk in that
  • manner to me when you are dying? Do you reflect that all those words
  • will be branded in my memory, and eating deeper eternally after you have
  • left me? You know you lie to say I have killed you: and, Catherine, you
  • know that I could as soon forget you as my existence! Is it not
  • sufficient for your infernal selfishness, that while you are at peace I
  • shall writhe in the torments of hell?'
  • 'I shall not be at peace,' moaned Catherine, recalled to a sense of
  • physical weakness by the violent, unequal throbbing of her heart, which
  • beat visibly and audibly under this excess of agitation. She said
  • nothing further till the paroxysm was over; then she continued, more
  • kindly--
  • 'I'm not wishing you greater torment than I have, Heathcliff. I only
  • wish us never to be parted: and should a word of mine distress you
  • hereafter, think I feel the same distress underground, and for my own
  • sake, forgive me! Come here and kneel down again! You never harmed me
  • in your life. Nay, if you nurse anger, that will be worse to remember
  • than my harsh words! Won't you come here again? Do!'
  • Heathcliff went to the back of her chair, and leant over, but not so far
  • as to let her see his face, which was livid with emotion. She bent round
  • to look at him; he would not permit it: turning abruptly, he walked to
  • the fireplace, where he stood, silent, with his back towards us. Mrs.
  • Linton's glance followed him suspiciously: every movement woke a new
  • sentiment in her. After a pause and a prolonged gaze, she resumed;
  • addressing me in accents of indignant disappointment:--
  • 'Oh, you see, Nelly, he would not relent a moment to keep me out of the
  • grave. _That_ is how I'm loved! Well, never mind. That is not _my_
  • Heathcliff. I shall love mine yet; and take him with me: he's in my
  • soul. And,' added she musingly, 'the thing that irks me most is this
  • shattered prison, after all. I'm tired of being enclosed here. I'm
  • wearying to escape into that glorious world, and to be always there: not
  • seeing it dimly through tears, and yearning for it through the walls of
  • an aching heart: but really with it, and in it. Nelly, you think you are
  • better and more fortunate than I; in full health and strength: you are
  • sorry for me--very soon that will be altered. I shall be sorry for
  • _you_. I shall be incomparably beyond and above you all. I _wonder_ he
  • won't be near me!' She went on to herself. 'I thought he wished it.
  • Heathcliff, dear! you should not be sullen now. Do come to me,
  • Heathcliff.'
  • In her eagerness she rose and supported herself on the arm of the chair.
  • At that earnest appeal he turned to her, looking absolutely desperate.
  • His eyes, wide and wet, at last flashed fiercely on her; his breast
  • heaved convulsively. An instant they held asunder, and then how they met
  • I hardly saw, but Catherine made a spring, and he caught her, and they
  • were locked in an embrace from which I thought my mistress would never be
  • released alive: in fact, to my eyes, she seemed directly insensible. He
  • flung himself into the nearest seat, and on my approaching hurriedly to
  • ascertain if she had fainted, he gnashed at me, and foamed like a mad
  • dog, and gathered her to him with greedy jealousy. I did not feel as if
  • I were in the company of a creature of my own species: it appeared that
  • he would not understand, though I spoke to him; so I stood off, and held
  • my tongue, in great perplexity.
  • A movement of Catherine's relieved me a little presently: she put up her
  • hand to clasp his neck, and bring her cheek to his as he held her; while
  • he, in return, covering her with frantic caresses, said wildly--
  • 'You teach me now how cruel you've been--cruel and false. _Why_ did you
  • despise me? _Why_ did you betray your own heart, Cathy? I have not one
  • word of comfort. You deserve this. You have killed yourself. Yes, you
  • may kiss me, and cry; and wring out my kisses and tears: they'll blight
  • you--they'll damn you. You loved me--then what _right_ had you to leave
  • me? What right--answer me--for the poor fancy you felt for Linton?
  • Because misery and degradation, and death, and nothing that God or Satan
  • could inflict would have parted us, _you_, of your own will, did it. I
  • have not broken your heart--_you_ have broken it; and in breaking it, you
  • have broken mine. So much the worse for me that I am strong. Do I want
  • to live? What kind of living will it be when you--oh, God! would _you_
  • like to live with your soul in the grave?'
  • 'Let me alone. Let me alone,' sobbed Catherine. 'If I've done wrong,
  • I'm dying for it. It is enough! You left me too: but I won't upbraid
  • you! I forgive you. Forgive me!'
  • 'It is hard to forgive, and to look at those eyes, and feel those wasted
  • hands,' he answered. 'Kiss me again; and don't let me see your eyes! I
  • forgive what you have done to me. I love _my_ murderer--but _yours_! How
  • can I?'
  • They were silent--their faces hid against each other, and washed by each
  • other's tears. At least, I suppose the weeping was on both sides; as it
  • seemed Heathcliff could weep on a great occasion like this.
  • I grew very uncomfortable, meanwhile; for the afternoon wore fast away,
  • the man whom I had sent off returned from his errand, and I could
  • distinguish, by the shine of the western sun up the valley, a concourse
  • thickening outside Gimmerton chapel porch.
  • 'Service is over,' I announced. 'My master will be here in half an
  • hour.'
  • Heathcliff groaned a curse, and strained Catherine closer: she never
  • moved.
  • Ere long I perceived a group of the servants passing up the road towards
  • the kitchen wing. Mr. Linton was not far behind; he opened the gate
  • himself and sauntered slowly up, probably enjoying the lovely afternoon
  • that breathed as soft as summer.
  • 'Now he is here,' I exclaimed. 'For heaven's sake, hurry down! You'll
  • not meet any one on the front stairs. Do be quick; and stay among the
  • trees till he is fairly in.'
  • 'I must go, Cathy,' said Heathcliff, seeking to extricate himself from
  • his companion's arms. 'But if I live, I'll see you again before you are
  • asleep. I won't stray five yards from your window.'
  • 'You must not go!' she answered, holding him as firmly as her strength
  • allowed. 'You _shall_ not, I tell you.'
  • 'For one hour,' he pleaded earnestly.
  • 'Not for one minute,' she replied.
  • 'I _must_--Linton will be up immediately,' persisted the alarmed
  • intruder.
  • He would have risen, and unfixed her fingers by the act--she clung fast,
  • gasping: there was mad resolution in her face.
  • 'No!' she shrieked. 'Oh, don't, don't go. It is the last time! Edgar
  • will not hurt us. Heathcliff, I shall die! I shall die!'
  • 'Damn the fool! There he is,' cried Heathcliff, sinking back into his
  • seat. 'Hush, my darling! Hush, hush, Catherine! I'll stay. If he shot
  • me so, I'd expire with a blessing on my lips.'
  • And there they were fast again. I heard my master mounting the
  • stairs--the cold sweat ran from my forehead: I was horrified.
  • 'Are you going to listen to her ravings?' I said, passionately. 'She
  • does not know what she says. Will you ruin her, because she has not wit
  • to help herself? Get up! You could be free instantly. That is the most
  • diabolical deed that ever you did. We are all done for--master,
  • mistress, and servant.'
  • I wrung my hands, and cried out; and Mr. Linton hastened his step at the
  • noise. In the midst of my agitation, I was sincerely glad to observe
  • that Catherine's arms had fallen relaxed, and her head hung down.
  • 'She's fainted, or dead,' I thought: 'so much the better. Far better
  • that she should be dead, than lingering a burden and a misery-maker to
  • all about her.'
  • Edgar sprang to his unbidden guest, blanched with astonishment and rage.
  • What he meant to do I cannot tell; however, the other stopped all
  • demonstrations, at once, by placing the lifeless-looking form in his
  • arms.
  • 'Look there!' he said. 'Unless you be a fiend, help her first--then you
  • shall speak to me!'
  • He walked into the parlour, and sat down. Mr. Linton summoned me, and
  • with great difficulty, and after resorting to many means, we managed to
  • restore her to sensation; but she was all bewildered; she sighed, and
  • moaned, and knew nobody. Edgar, in his anxiety for her, forgot her hated
  • friend. I did not. I went, at the earliest opportunity, and besought
  • him to depart; affirming that Catherine was better, and he should hear
  • from me in the morning how she passed the night.
  • 'I shall not refuse to go out of doors,' he answered; 'but I shall stay
  • in the garden: and, Nelly, mind you keep your word to-morrow. I shall be
  • under those larch-trees. Mind! or I pay another visit, whether Linton be
  • in or not.'
  • He sent a rapid glance through the half-open door of the chamber, and,
  • ascertaining that what I stated was apparently true, delivered the house
  • of his luckless presence.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • About twelve o'clock that night was born the Catherine you saw at
  • Wuthering Heights: a puny, seven-months' child; and two hours after the
  • mother died, having never recovered sufficient consciousness to miss
  • Heathcliff, or know Edgar. The latter's distraction at his bereavement
  • is a subject too painful to be dwelt on; its after-effects showed how
  • deep the sorrow sunk. A great addition, in my eyes, was his being left
  • without an heir. I bemoaned that, as I gazed on the feeble orphan; and I
  • mentally abused old Linton for (what was only natural partiality) the
  • securing his estate to his own daughter, instead of his son's. An
  • unwelcomed infant it was, poor thing! It might have wailed out of life,
  • and nobody cared a morsel, during those first hours of existence. We
  • redeemed the neglect afterwards; but its beginning was as friendless as
  • its end is likely to be.
  • Next morning--bright and cheerful out of doors--stole softened in through
  • the blinds of the silent room, and suffused the couch and its occupant
  • with a mellow, tender glow. Edgar Linton had his head laid on the
  • pillow, and his eyes shut. His young and fair features were almost as
  • deathlike as those of the form beside him, and almost as fixed: but _his_
  • was the hush of exhausted anguish, and _hers_ of perfect peace. Her brow
  • smooth, her lids closed, her lips wearing the expression of a smile; no
  • angel in heaven could be more beautiful than she appeared. And I partook
  • of the infinite calm in which she lay: my mind was never in a holier
  • frame than while I gazed on that untroubled image of Divine rest. I
  • instinctively echoed the words she had uttered a few hours before:
  • 'Incomparably beyond and above us all! Whether still on earth or now in
  • heaven, her spirit is at home with God!'
  • I don't know if it be a peculiarity in me, but I am seldom otherwise than
  • happy while watching in the chamber of death, should no frenzied or
  • despairing mourner share the duty with me. I see a repose that neither
  • earth nor hell can break, and I feel an assurance of the endless and
  • shadowless hereafter--the Eternity they have entered--where life is
  • boundless in its duration, and love in its sympathy, and joy in its
  • fulness. I noticed on that occasion how much selfishness there is even
  • in a love like Mr. Linton's, when he so regretted Catherine's blessed
  • release! To be sure, one might have doubted, after the wayward and
  • impatient existence she had led, whether she merited a haven of peace at
  • last. One might doubt in seasons of cold reflection; but not then, in
  • the presence of her corpse. It asserted its own tranquillity, which
  • seemed a pledge of equal quiet to its former inhabitant.
  • Do you believe such people are happy in the other world, sir? I'd give a
  • great deal to know.
  • I declined answering Mrs. Dean's question, which struck me as something
  • heterodox. She proceeded:
  • Retracing the course of Catherine Linton, I fear we have no right to
  • think she is; but we'll leave her with her Maker.
  • The master looked asleep, and I ventured soon after sunrise to quit the
  • room and steal out to the pure refreshing air. The servants thought me
  • gone to shake off the drowsiness of my protracted watch; in reality, my
  • chief motive was seeing Mr. Heathcliff. If he had remained among the
  • larches all night, he would have heard nothing of the stir at the Grange;
  • unless, perhaps, he might catch the gallop of the messenger going to
  • Gimmerton. If he had come nearer, he would probably be aware, from the
  • lights flitting to and fro, and the opening and shutting of the outer
  • doors, that all was not right within. I wished, yet feared, to find him.
  • I felt the terrible news must be told, and I longed to get it over; but
  • how to do it I did not know. He was there--at least, a few yards further
  • in the park; leant against an old ash-tree, his hat off, and his hair
  • soaked with the dew that had gathered on the budded branches, and fell
  • pattering round him. He had been standing a long time in that position,
  • for I saw a pair of ousels passing and repassing scarcely three feet from
  • him, busy in building their nest, and regarding his proximity no more
  • than that of a piece of timber. They flew off at my approach, and he
  • raised his eyes and spoke:--'She's dead!' he said; 'I've not waited for
  • you to learn that. Put your handkerchief away--don't snivel before me.
  • Damn you all! she wants none of your tears!'
  • I was weeping as much for him as her: we do sometimes pity creatures that
  • have none of the feeling either for themselves or others. When I first
  • looked into his face, I perceived that he had got intelligence of the
  • catastrophe; and a foolish notion struck me that his heart was quelled
  • and he prayed, because his lips moved and his gaze was bent on the
  • ground.
  • 'Yes, she's dead!' I answered, checking my sobs and drying my cheeks.
  • 'Gone to heaven, I hope; where we may, every one, join her, if we take
  • due warning and leave our evil ways to follow good!'
  • 'Did _she_ take due warning, then?' asked Heathcliff, attempting a sneer.
  • 'Did she die like a saint? Come, give me a true history of the event.
  • How did--?'
  • He endeavoured to pronounce the name, but could not manage it; and
  • compressing his mouth he held a silent combat with his inward agony,
  • defying, meanwhile, my sympathy with an unflinching, ferocious stare.
  • 'How did she die?' he resumed, at last--fain, notwithstanding his
  • hardihood, to have a support behind him; for, after the struggle, he
  • trembled, in spite of himself, to his very finger-ends.
  • 'Poor wretch!' I thought; 'you have a heart and nerves the same as your
  • brother men! Why should you be anxious to conceal them? Your pride
  • cannot blind God! You tempt him to wring them, till he forces a cry of
  • humiliation.'
  • 'Quietly as a lamb!' I answered, aloud. 'She drew a sigh, and stretched
  • herself, like a child reviving, and sinking again to sleep; and five
  • minutes after I felt one little pulse at her heart, and nothing more!'
  • 'And--did she ever mention me?' he asked, hesitating, as if he dreaded
  • the answer to his question would introduce details that he could not bear
  • to hear.
  • 'Her senses never returned: she recognised nobody from the time you left
  • her,' I said. 'She lies with a sweet smile on her face; and her latest
  • ideas wandered back to pleasant early days. Her life closed in a gentle
  • dream--may she wake as kindly in the other world!'
  • 'May she wake in torment!' he cried, with frightful vehemence, stamping
  • his foot, and groaning in a sudden paroxysm of ungovernable passion.
  • 'Why, she's a liar to the end! Where is she? Not _there_--not in
  • heaven--not perished--where? Oh! you said you cared nothing for my
  • sufferings! And I pray one prayer--I repeat it till my tongue
  • stiffens--Catherine Earnshaw, may you not rest as long as I am living;
  • you said I killed you--haunt me, then! The murdered _do_ haunt their
  • murderers, I believe. I know that ghosts _have_ wandered on earth. Be
  • with me always--take any form--drive me mad! only _do_ not leave me in
  • this abyss, where I cannot find you! Oh, God! it is unutterable! I
  • _cannot_ live without my life! I _cannot_ live without my soul!'
  • He dashed his head against the knotted trunk; and, lifting up his eyes,
  • howled, not like a man, but like a savage beast being goaded to death
  • with knives and spears. I observed several splashes of blood about the
  • bark of the tree, and his hand and forehead were both stained; probably
  • the scene I witnessed was a repetition of others acted during the night.
  • It hardly moved my compassion--it appalled me: still, I felt reluctant to
  • quit him so. But the moment he recollected himself enough to notice me
  • watching, he thundered a command for me to go, and I obeyed. He was
  • beyond my skill to quiet or console!
  • Mrs. Linton's funeral was appointed to take place on the Friday following
  • her decease; and till then her coffin remained uncovered, and strewn with
  • flowers and scented leaves, in the great drawing-room. Linton spent his
  • days and nights there, a sleepless guardian; and--a circumstance
  • concealed from all but me--Heathcliff spent his nights, at least,
  • outside, equally a stranger to repose. I held no communication with him:
  • still, I was conscious of his design to enter, if he could; and on the
  • Tuesday, a little after dark, when my master, from sheer fatigue, had
  • been compelled to retire a couple of hours, I went and opened one of the
  • windows; moved by his perseverance to give him a chance of bestowing on
  • the faded image of his idol one final adieu. He did not omit to avail
  • himself of the opportunity, cautiously and briefly; too cautiously to
  • betray his presence by the slightest noise. Indeed, I shouldn't have
  • discovered that he had been there, except for the disarrangement of the
  • drapery about the corpse's face, and for observing on the floor a curl of
  • light hair, fastened with a silver thread; which, on examination, I
  • ascertained to have been taken from a locket hung round Catherine's neck.
  • Heathcliff had opened the trinket and cast out its contents, replacing
  • them by a black lock of his own. I twisted the two, and enclosed them
  • together.
  • Mr. Earnshaw was, of course, invited to attend the remains of his sister
  • to the grave; he sent no excuse, but he never came; so that, besides her
  • husband, the mourners were wholly composed of tenants and servants.
  • Isabella was not asked.
  • The place of Catherine's interment, to the surprise of the villagers, was
  • neither in the chapel under the carved monument of the Lintons, nor yet
  • by the tombs of her own relations, outside. It was dug on a green slope
  • in a corner of the kirk-yard, where the wall is so low that heath and
  • bilberry-plants have climbed over it from the moor; and peat-mould almost
  • buries it. Her husband lies in the same spot now; and they have each a
  • simple headstone above, and a plain grey block at their feet, to mark the
  • graves.
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • That Friday made the last of our fine days for a month. In the evening
  • the weather broke: the wind shifted from south to north-east, and brought
  • rain first, and then sleet and snow. On the morrow one could hardly
  • imagine that there had been three weeks of summer: the primroses and
  • crocuses were hidden under wintry drifts; the larks were silent, the
  • young leaves of the early trees smitten and blackened. And dreary, and
  • chill, and dismal, that morrow did creep over! My master kept his room;
  • I took possession of the lonely parlour, converting it into a nursery:
  • and there I was, sitting with the moaning doll of a child laid on my
  • knee; rocking it to and fro, and watching, meanwhile, the still driving
  • flakes build up the uncurtained window, when the door opened, and some
  • person entered, out of breath and laughing! My anger was greater than my
  • astonishment for a minute. I supposed it one of the maids, and I
  • cried--'Have done! How dare you show your giddiness here; What would Mr.
  • Linton say if he heard you?'
  • 'Excuse me!' answered a familiar voice; 'but I know Edgar is in bed, and
  • I cannot stop myself.'
  • With that the speaker came forward to the fire, panting and holding her
  • hand to her side.
  • 'I have run the whole way from Wuthering Heights!' she continued, after a
  • pause; 'except where I've flown. I couldn't count the number of falls
  • I've had. Oh, I'm aching all over! Don't be alarmed! There shall be an
  • explanation as soon as I can give it; only just have the goodness to step
  • out and order the carriage to take me on to Gimmerton, and tell a servant
  • to seek up a few clothes in my wardrobe.'
  • The intruder was Mrs. Heathcliff. She certainly seemed in no laughing
  • predicament: her hair streamed on her shoulders, dripping with snow and
  • water; she was dressed in the girlish dress she commonly wore, befitting
  • her age more than her position: a low frock with short sleeves, and
  • nothing on either head or neck. The frock was of light silk, and clung
  • to her with wet, and her feet were protected merely by thin slippers; add
  • to this a deep cut under one ear, which only the cold prevented from
  • bleeding profusely, a white face scratched and bruised, and a frame
  • hardly able to support itself through fatigue; and you may fancy my first
  • fright was not much allayed when I had had leisure to examine her.
  • 'My dear young lady,' I exclaimed, 'I'll stir nowhere, and hear nothing,
  • till you have removed every article of your clothes, and put on dry
  • things; and certainly you shall not go to Gimmerton to-night, so it is
  • needless to order the carriage.'
  • 'Certainly I shall,' she said; 'walking or riding: yet I've no objection
  • to dress myself decently. And--ah, see how it flows down my neck now!
  • The fire does make it smart.'
  • She insisted on my fulfilling her directions, before she would let me
  • touch her; and not till after the coachman had been instructed to get
  • ready, and a maid set to pack up some necessary attire, did I obtain her
  • consent for binding the wound and helping to change her garments.
  • 'Now, Ellen,' she said, when my task was finished and she was seated in
  • an easy-chair on the hearth, with a cup of tea before her, 'you sit down
  • opposite me, and put poor Catherine's baby away: I don't like to see it!
  • You mustn't think I care little for Catherine, because I behaved so
  • foolishly on entering: I've cried, too, bitterly--yes, more than any one
  • else has reason to cry. We parted unreconciled, you remember, and I
  • sha'n't forgive myself. But, for all that, I was not going to sympathise
  • with him--the brute beast! Oh, give me the poker! This is the last
  • thing of his I have about me:' she slipped the gold ring from her third
  • finger, and threw it on the floor. 'I'll smash it!' she continued,
  • striking it with childish spite, 'and then I'll burn it!' and she took
  • and dropped the misused article among the coals. 'There! he shall buy
  • another, if he gets me back again. He'd be capable of coming to seek me,
  • to tease Edgar. I dare not stay, lest that notion should possess his
  • wicked head! And besides, Edgar has not been kind, has he? And I won't
  • come suing for his assistance; nor will I bring him into more trouble.
  • Necessity compelled me to seek shelter here; though, if I had not learned
  • he was out of the way, I'd have halted at the kitchen, washed my face,
  • warmed myself, got you to bring what I wanted, and departed again to
  • anywhere out of the reach of my accursed--of that incarnate goblin! Ah,
  • he was in such a fury! If he had caught me! It's a pity Earnshaw is not
  • his match in strength: I wouldn't have run till I'd seen him all but
  • demolished, had Hindley been able to do it!'
  • 'Well, don't talk so fast, Miss!' I interrupted; 'you'll disorder the
  • handkerchief I have tied round your face, and make the cut bleed again.
  • Drink your tea, and take breath, and give over laughing: laughter is
  • sadly out of place under this roof, and in your condition!'
  • 'An undeniable truth,' she replied. 'Listen to that child! It maintains
  • a constant wail--send it out of my hearing for an hour; I sha'n't stay
  • any longer.'
  • I rang the bell, and committed it to a servant's care; and then I
  • inquired what had urged her to escape from Wuthering Heights in such an
  • unlikely plight, and where she meant to go, as she refused remaining with
  • us.
  • 'I ought, and I wished to remain,' answered she, 'to cheer Edgar and take
  • care of the baby, for two things, and because the Grange is my right
  • home. But I tell you he wouldn't let me! Do you think he could bear to
  • see me grow fat and merry--could bear to think that we were tranquil, and
  • not resolve on poisoning our comfort? Now, I have the satisfaction of
  • being sure that he detests me, to the point of its annoying him seriously
  • to have me within ear-shot or eyesight: I notice, when I enter his
  • presence, the muscles of his countenance are involuntarily distorted into
  • an expression of hatred; partly arising from his knowledge of the good
  • causes I have to feel that sentiment for him, and partly from original
  • aversion. It is strong enough to make me feel pretty certain that he
  • would not chase me over England, supposing I contrived a clear escape;
  • and therefore I must get quite away. I've recovered from my first desire
  • to be killed by him: I'd rather he'd kill himself! He has extinguished
  • my love effectually, and so I'm at my ease. I can recollect yet how I
  • loved him; and can dimly imagine that I could still be loving him, if--no,
  • no! Even if he had doted on me, the devilish nature would have revealed
  • its existence somehow. Catherine had an awfully perverted taste to
  • esteem him so dearly, knowing him so well. Monster! would that he could
  • be blotted out of creation, and out of my memory!'
  • 'Hush, hush! He's a human being,' I said. 'Be more charitable: there
  • are worse men than he is yet!'
  • 'He's not a human being,' she retorted; 'and he has no claim on my
  • charity. I gave him my heart, and he took and pinched it to death, and
  • flung it back to me. People feel with their hearts, Ellen: and since he
  • has destroyed mine, I have not power to feel for him: and I would not,
  • though he groaned from this to his dying day, and wept tears of blood for
  • Catherine! No, indeed, indeed, I wouldn't!' And here Isabella began to
  • cry; but, immediately dashing the water from her lashes, she recommenced.
  • 'You asked, what has driven me to flight at last? I was compelled to
  • attempt it, because I had succeeded in rousing his rage a pitch above his
  • malignity. Pulling out the nerves with red hot pincers requires more
  • coolness than knocking on the head. He was worked up to forget the
  • fiendish prudence he boasted of, and proceeded to murderous violence. I
  • experienced pleasure in being able to exasperate him: the sense of
  • pleasure woke my instinct of self-preservation, so I fairly broke free;
  • and if ever I come into his hands again he is welcome to a signal
  • revenge.
  • 'Yesterday, you know, Mr. Earnshaw should have been at the funeral. He
  • kept himself sober for the purpose--tolerably sober: not going to bed mad
  • at six o'clock and getting up drunk at twelve. Consequently, he rose, in
  • suicidal low spirits, as fit for the church as for a dance; and instead,
  • he sat down by the fire and swallowed gin or brandy by tumblerfuls.
  • 'Heathcliff--I shudder to name him! has been a stranger in the house from
  • last Sunday till to-day. Whether the angels have fed him, or his kin
  • beneath, I cannot tell; but he has not eaten a meal with us for nearly a
  • week. He has just come home at dawn, and gone up-stairs to his chamber;
  • locking himself in--as if anybody dreamt of coveting his company! There
  • he has continued, praying like a Methodist: only the deity he implored is
  • senseless dust and ashes; and God, when addressed, was curiously
  • confounded with his own black father! After concluding these precious
  • orisons--and they lasted generally till he grew hoarse and his voice was
  • strangled in his throat--he would be off again; always straight down to
  • the Grange! I wonder Edgar did not send for a constable, and give him
  • into custody! For me, grieved as I was about Catherine, it was
  • impossible to avoid regarding this season of deliverance from degrading
  • oppression as a holiday.
  • 'I recovered spirits sufficient to bear Joseph's eternal lectures without
  • weeping, and to move up and down the house less with the foot of a
  • frightened thief than formerly. You wouldn't think that I should cry at
  • anything Joseph could say; but he and Hareton are detestable companions.
  • I'd rather sit with Hindley, and hear his awful talk, than with "t'
  • little maister" and his staunch supporter, that odious old man! When
  • Heathcliff is in, I'm often obliged to seek the kitchen and their
  • society, or starve among the damp uninhabited chambers; when he is not,
  • as was the case this week, I establish a table and chair at one corner of
  • the house fire, and never mind how Mr. Earnshaw may occupy himself; and
  • he does not interfere with my arrangements. He is quieter now than he
  • used to be, if no one provokes him: more sullen and depressed, and less
  • furious. Joseph affirms he's sure he's an altered man: that the Lord has
  • touched his heart, and he is saved "so as by fire." I'm puzzled to
  • detect signs of the favourable change: but it is not my business.
  • 'Yester-evening I sat in my nook reading some old books till late on
  • towards twelve. It seemed so dismal to go up-stairs, with the wild snow
  • blowing outside, and my thoughts continually reverting to the kirk-yard
  • and the new-made grave! I dared hardly lift my eyes from the page before
  • me, that melancholy scene so instantly usurped its place. Hindley sat
  • opposite, his head leant on his hand; perhaps meditating on the same
  • subject. He had ceased drinking at a point below irrationality, and had
  • neither stirred nor spoken during two or three hours. There was no sound
  • through the house but the moaning wind, which shook the windows every now
  • and then, the faint crackling of the coals, and the click of my snuffers
  • as I removed at intervals the long wick of the candle. Hareton and
  • Joseph were probably fast asleep in bed. It was very, very sad: and
  • while I read I sighed, for it seemed as if all joy had vanished from the
  • world, never to be restored.
  • 'The doleful silence was broken at length by the sound of the kitchen
  • latch: Heathcliff had returned from his watch earlier than usual; owing,
  • I suppose, to the sudden storm. That entrance was fastened, and we heard
  • him coming round to get in by the other. I rose with an irrepressible
  • expression of what I felt on my lips, which induced my companion, who had
  • been staring towards the door, to turn and look at me.
  • '"I'll keep him out five minutes," he exclaimed. "You won't object?"
  • '"No, you may keep him out the whole night for me," I answered. "Do! put
  • the key in the lock, and draw the bolts."
  • 'Earnshaw accomplished this ere his guest reached the front; he then came
  • and brought his chair to the other side of my table, leaning over it, and
  • searching in my eyes for a sympathy with the burning hate that gleamed
  • from his: as he both looked and felt like an assassin, he couldn't
  • exactly find that; but he discovered enough to encourage him to speak.
  • '"You, and I," he said, "have each a great debt to settle with the man
  • out yonder! If we were neither of us cowards, we might combine to
  • discharge it. Are you as soft as your brother? Are you willing to
  • endure to the last, and not once attempt a repayment?"
  • '"I'm weary of enduring now," I replied; "and I'd be glad of a
  • retaliation that wouldn't recoil on myself; but treachery and violence
  • are spears pointed at both ends; they wound those who resort to them
  • worse than their enemies."
  • '"Treachery and violence are a just return for treachery and violence!"
  • cried Hindley. "Mrs. Heathcliff, I'll ask you to do nothing; but sit
  • still and be dumb. Tell me now, can you? I'm sure you would have as
  • much pleasure as I in witnessing the conclusion of the fiend's existence;
  • he'll be _your_ death unless you overreach him; and he'll be _my_ ruin.
  • Damn the hellish villain! He knocks at the door as if he were master
  • here already! Promise to hold your tongue, and before that clock
  • strikes--it wants three minutes of one--you're a free woman!"
  • 'He took the implements which I described to you in my letter from his
  • breast, and would have turned down the candle. I snatched it away,
  • however, and seized his arm.
  • '"I'll not hold my tongue!" I said; "you mustn't touch him. Let the door
  • remain shut, and be quiet!"
  • '"No! I've formed my resolution, and by God I'll execute it!" cried the
  • desperate being. "I'll do you a kindness in spite of yourself, and
  • Hareton justice! And you needn't trouble your head to screen me;
  • Catherine is gone. Nobody alive would regret me, or be ashamed, though I
  • cut my throat this minute--and it's time to make an end!"
  • 'I might as well have struggled with a bear, or reasoned with a lunatic.
  • The only resource left me was to run to a lattice and warn his intended
  • victim of the fate which awaited him.
  • '"You'd better seek shelter somewhere else to-night!" I exclaimed, in
  • rather a triumphant tone. "Mr. Earnshaw has a mind to shoot you, if you
  • persist in endeavouring to enter."
  • '"You'd better open the door, you--" he answered, addressing me by some
  • elegant term that I don't care to repeat.
  • '"I shall not meddle in the matter," I retorted again. "Come in and get
  • shot, if you please. I've done my duty."
  • 'With that I shut the window and returned to my place by the fire; having
  • too small a stock of hypocrisy at my command to pretend any anxiety for
  • the danger that menaced him. Earnshaw swore passionately at me:
  • affirming that I loved the villain yet; and calling me all sorts of names
  • for the base spirit I evinced. And I, in my secret heart (and conscience
  • never reproached me), thought what a blessing it would be for _him_
  • should Heathcliff put him out of misery; and what a blessing for _me_
  • should he send Heathcliff to his right abode! As I sat nursing these
  • reflections, the casement behind me was banged on to the floor by a blow
  • from the latter individual, and his black countenance looked blightingly
  • through. The stanchions stood too close to suffer his shoulders to
  • follow, and I smiled, exulting in my fancied security. His hair and
  • clothes were whitened with snow, and his sharp cannibal teeth, revealed
  • by cold and wrath, gleamed through the dark.
  • '"Isabella, let me in, or I'll make you repent!" he "girned," as Joseph
  • calls it.
  • '"I cannot commit murder," I replied. "Mr. Hindley stands sentinel with
  • a knife and loaded pistol."
  • '"Let me in by the kitchen door," he said.
  • '"Hindley will be there before me," I answered: "and that's a poor love
  • of yours that cannot bear a shower of snow! We were left at peace in our
  • beds as long as the summer moon shone, but the moment a blast of winter
  • returns, you must run for shelter! Heathcliff, if I were you, I'd go
  • stretch myself over her grave and die like a faithful dog. The world is
  • surely not worth living in now, is it? You had distinctly impressed on
  • me the idea that Catherine was the whole joy of your life: I can't
  • imagine how you think of surviving her loss."
  • '"He's there, is he?" exclaimed my companion, rushing to the gap. "If I
  • can get my arm out I can hit him!"
  • 'I'm afraid, Ellen, you'll set me down as really wicked; but you don't
  • know all, so don't judge. I wouldn't have aided or abetted an attempt on
  • even _his_ life for anything. Wish that he were dead, I must; and
  • therefore I was fearfully disappointed, and unnerved by terror for the
  • consequences of my taunting speech, when he flung himself on Earnshaw's
  • weapon and wrenched it from his grasp.
  • 'The charge exploded, and the knife, in springing back, closed into its
  • owner's wrist. Heathcliff pulled it away by main force, slitting up the
  • flesh as it passed on, and thrust it dripping into his pocket. He then
  • took a stone, struck down the division between two windows, and sprang
  • in. His adversary had fallen senseless with excessive pain and the flow
  • of blood, that gushed from an artery or a large vein. The ruffian kicked
  • and trampled on him, and dashed his head repeatedly against the flags,
  • holding me with one hand, meantime, to prevent me summoning Joseph. He
  • exerted preterhuman self-denial in abstaining from finishing him
  • completely; but getting out of breath, he finally desisted, and dragged
  • the apparently inanimate body on to the settle. There he tore off the
  • sleeve of Earnshaw's coat, and bound up the wound with brutal roughness;
  • spitting and cursing during the operation as energetically as he had
  • kicked before. Being at liberty, I lost no time in seeking the old
  • servant; who, having gathered by degrees the purport of my hasty tale,
  • hurried below, gasping, as he descended the steps two at once.
  • '"What is ther to do, now? what is ther to do, now?"
  • '"There's this to do," thundered Heathcliff, "that your master's mad; and
  • should he last another month, I'll have him to an asylum. And how the
  • devil did you come to fasten me out, you toothless hound? Don't stand
  • muttering and mumbling there. Come, I'm not going to nurse him. Wash
  • that stuff away; and mind the sparks of your candle--it is more than half
  • brandy!"
  • '"And so ye've been murthering on him?" exclaimed Joseph, lifting his
  • hands and eyes in horror. "If iver I seed a seeght loike this! May the
  • Lord--"
  • 'Heathcliff gave him a push on to his knees in the middle of the blood,
  • and flung a towel to him; but instead of proceeding to dry it up, he
  • joined his hands and began a prayer, which excited my laughter from its
  • odd phraseology. I was in the condition of mind to be shocked at
  • nothing: in fact, I was as reckless as some malefactors show themselves
  • at the foot of the gallows.
  • '"Oh, I forgot you," said the tyrant. "You shall do that. Down with
  • you. And you conspire with him against me, do you, viper? There, that
  • is work fit for you!"
  • 'He shook me till my teeth rattled, and pitched me beside Joseph, who
  • steadily concluded his supplications, and then rose, vowing he would set
  • off for the Grange directly. Mr. Linton was a magistrate, and though he
  • had fifty wives dead, he should inquire into this. He was so obstinate
  • in his resolution, that Heathcliff deemed it expedient to compel from my
  • lips a recapitulation of what had taken place; standing over me, heaving
  • with malevolence, as I reluctantly delivered the account in answer to his
  • questions. It required a great deal of labour to satisfy the old man
  • that Heathcliff was not the aggressor; especially with my hardly-wrung
  • replies. However, Mr. Earnshaw soon convinced him that he was alive
  • still; Joseph hastened to administer a dose of spirits, and by their
  • succour his master presently regained motion and consciousness.
  • Heathcliff, aware that his opponent was ignorant of the treatment
  • received while insensible, called him deliriously intoxicated; and said
  • he should not notice his atrocious conduct further, but advised him to
  • get to bed. To my joy, he left us, after giving this judicious counsel,
  • and Hindley stretched himself on the hearthstone. I departed to my own
  • room, marvelling that I had escaped so easily.
  • 'This morning, when I came down, about half an hour before noon, Mr.
  • Earnshaw was sitting by the fire, deadly sick; his evil genius, almost as
  • gaunt and ghastly, leant against the chimney. Neither appeared inclined
  • to dine, and, having waited till all was cold on the table, I commenced
  • alone. Nothing hindered me from eating heartily, and I experienced a
  • certain sense of satisfaction and superiority, as, at intervals, I cast a
  • look towards my silent companions, and felt the comfort of a quiet
  • conscience within me. After I had done, I ventured on the unusual
  • liberty of drawing near the fire, going round Earnshaw's seat, and
  • kneeling in the corner beside him.
  • 'Heathcliff did not glance my way, and I gazed up, and contemplated his
  • features almost as confidently as if they had been turned to stone. His
  • forehead, that I once thought so manly, and that I now think so
  • diabolical, was shaded with a heavy cloud; his basilisk eyes were nearly
  • quenched by sleeplessness, and weeping, perhaps, for the lashes were wet
  • then: his lips devoid of their ferocious sneer, and sealed in an
  • expression of unspeakable sadness. Had it been another, I would have
  • covered my face in the presence of such grief. In _his_ case, I was
  • gratified; and, ignoble as it seems to insult a fallen enemy, I couldn't
  • miss this chance of sticking in a dart: his weakness was the only time
  • when I could taste the delight of paying wrong for wrong.'
  • 'Fie, fie, Miss!' I interrupted. 'One might suppose you had never opened
  • a Bible in your life. If God afflict your enemies, surely that ought to
  • suffice you. It is both mean and presumptuous to add your torture to
  • his!'
  • 'In general I'll allow that it would be, Ellen,' she continued; 'but what
  • misery laid on Heathcliff could content me, unless I have a hand in it?
  • I'd rather he suffered less, if I might cause his sufferings and he might
  • _know_ that I was the cause. Oh, I owe him so much. On only one
  • condition can I hope to forgive him. It is, if I may take an eye for an
  • eye, a tooth for a tooth; for every wrench of agony return a wrench:
  • reduce him to my level. As he was the first to injure, make him the
  • first to implore pardon; and then--why then, Ellen, I might show you some
  • generosity. But it is utterly impossible I can ever be revenged, and
  • therefore I cannot forgive him. Hindley wanted some water, and I handed
  • him a glass, and asked him how he was.
  • '"Not as ill as I wish," he replied. "But leaving out my arm, every inch
  • of me is as sore as if I had been fighting with a legion of imps!"
  • '"Yes, no wonder," was my next remark. "Catherine used to boast that she
  • stood between you and bodily harm: she meant that certain persons would
  • not hurt you for fear of offending her. It's well people don't _really_
  • rise from their grave, or, last night, she might have witnessed a
  • repulsive scene! Are not you bruised, and cut over your chest and
  • shoulders?"
  • '"I can't say," he answered, "but what do you mean? Did he dare to
  • strike me when I was down?"
  • '"He trampled on and kicked you, and dashed you on the ground," I
  • whispered. "And his mouth watered to tear you with his teeth; because
  • he's only half man: not so much, and the rest fiend."
  • 'Mr. Earnshaw looked up, like me, to the countenance of our mutual foe;
  • who, absorbed in his anguish, seemed insensible to anything around him:
  • the longer he stood, the plainer his reflections revealed their blackness
  • through his features.
  • '"Oh, if God would but give me strength to strangle him in my last agony,
  • I'd go to hell with joy," groaned the impatient man, writhing to rise,
  • and sinking back in despair, convinced of his inadequacy for the
  • struggle.
  • '"Nay, it's enough that he has murdered one of you," I observed aloud.
  • "At the Grange, every one knows your sister would have been living now
  • had it not been for Mr. Heathcliff. After all, it is preferable to be
  • hated than loved by him. When I recollect how happy we were--how happy
  • Catherine was before he came--I'm fit to curse the day."
  • 'Most likely, Heathcliff noticed more the truth of what was said, than
  • the spirit of the person who said it. His attention was roused, I saw,
  • for his eyes rained down tears among the ashes, and he drew his breath in
  • suffocating sighs. I stared full at him, and laughed scornfully. The
  • clouded windows of hell flashed a moment towards me; the fiend which
  • usually looked out, however, was so dimmed and drowned that I did not
  • fear to hazard another sound of derision.
  • '"Get up, and begone out of my sight," said the mourner.
  • 'I guessed he uttered those words, at least, though his voice was hardly
  • intelligible.
  • '"I beg your pardon," I replied. "But I loved Catherine too; and her
  • brother requires attendance, which, for her sake, I shall supply. Now,
  • that she's dead, I see her in Hindley: Hindley has exactly her eyes, if
  • you had not tried to gouge them out, and made them black and red; and
  • her--"
  • '"Get up, wretched idiot, before I stamp you to death!" he cried, making
  • a movement that caused me to make one also.
  • '"But then," I continued, holding myself ready to flee, "if poor
  • Catherine had trusted you, and assumed the ridiculous, contemptible,
  • degrading title of Mrs. Heathcliff, she would soon have presented a
  • similar picture! _She_ wouldn't have borne your abominable behaviour
  • quietly: her detestation and disgust must have found voice."
  • 'The back of the settle and Earnshaw's person interposed between me and
  • him; so instead of endeavouring to reach me, he snatched a dinner-knife
  • from the table and flung it at my head. It struck beneath my ear, and
  • stopped the sentence I was uttering; but, pulling it out, I sprang to the
  • door and delivered another; which I hope went a little deeper than his
  • missile. The last glimpse I caught of him was a furious rush on his
  • part, checked by the embrace of his host; and both fell locked together
  • on the hearth. In my flight through the kitchen I bid Joseph speed to
  • his master; I knocked over Hareton, who was hanging a litter of puppies
  • from a chair-back in the doorway; and, blessed as a soul escaped from
  • purgatory, I bounded, leaped, and flew down the steep road; then,
  • quitting its windings, shot direct across the moor, rolling over banks,
  • and wading through marshes: precipitating myself, in fact, towards the
  • beacon-light of the Grange. And far rather would I be condemned to a
  • perpetual dwelling in the infernal regions than, even for one night,
  • abide beneath the roof of Wuthering Heights again.'
  • Isabella ceased speaking, and took a drink of tea; then she rose, and
  • bidding me put on her bonnet, and a great shawl I had brought, and
  • turning a deaf ear to my entreaties for her to remain another hour, she
  • stepped on to a chair, kissed Edgar's and Catherine's portraits, bestowed
  • a similar salute on me, and descended to the carriage, accompanied by
  • Fanny, who yelped wild with joy at recovering her mistress. She was
  • driven away, never to revisit this neighbourhood: but a regular
  • correspondence was established between her and my master when things were
  • more settled. I believe her new abode was in the south, near London;
  • there she had a son born a few months subsequent to her escape. He was
  • christened Linton, and, from the first, she reported him to be an ailing,
  • peevish creature.
  • Mr. Heathcliff, meeting me one day in the village, inquired where she
  • lived. I refused to tell. He remarked that it was not of any moment,
  • only she must beware of coming to her brother: she should not be with
  • him, if he had to keep her himself. Though I would give no information,
  • he discovered, through some of the other servants, both her place of
  • residence and the existence of the child. Still, he didn't molest her:
  • for which forbearance she might thank his aversion, I suppose. He often
  • asked about the infant, when he saw me; and on hearing its name, smiled
  • grimly, and observed: 'They wish me to hate it too, do they?'
  • 'I don't think they wish you to know anything about it,' I answered.
  • 'But I'll have it,' he said, 'when I want it. They may reckon on that!'
  • Fortunately its mother died before the time arrived; some thirteen years
  • after the decease of Catherine, when Linton was twelve, or a little more.
  • On the day succeeding Isabella's unexpected visit I had no opportunity of
  • speaking to my master: he shunned conversation, and was fit for
  • discussing nothing. When I could get him to listen, I saw it pleased him
  • that his sister had left her husband; whom he abhorred with an intensity
  • which the mildness of his nature would scarcely seem to allow. So deep
  • and sensitive was his aversion, that he refrained from going anywhere
  • where he was likely to see or hear of Heathcliff. Grief, and that
  • together, transformed him into a complete hermit: he threw up his office
  • of magistrate, ceased even to attend church, avoided the village on all
  • occasions, and spent a life of entire seclusion within the limits of his
  • park and grounds; only varied by solitary rambles on the moors, and
  • visits to the grave of his wife, mostly at evening, or early morning
  • before other wanderers were abroad. But he was too good to be thoroughly
  • unhappy long. _He_ didn't pray for Catherine's soul to haunt him. Time
  • brought resignation, and a melancholy sweeter than common joy. He
  • recalled her memory with ardent, tender love, and hopeful aspiring to the
  • better world; where he doubted not she was gone.
  • And he had earthly consolation and affections also. For a few days, I
  • said, he seemed regardless of the puny successor to the departed: that
  • coldness melted as fast as snow in April, and ere the tiny thing could
  • stammer a word or totter a step it wielded a despot's sceptre in his
  • heart. It was named Catherine; but he never called it the name in full,
  • as he had never called the first Catherine short: probably because
  • Heathcliff had a habit of doing so. The little one was always Cathy: it
  • formed to him a distinction from the mother, and yet a connection with
  • her; and his attachment sprang from its relation to her, far more than
  • from its being his own.
  • I used to draw a comparison between him and Hindley Earnshaw, and perplex
  • myself to explain satisfactorily why their conduct was so opposite in
  • similar circumstances. They had both been fond husbands, and were both
  • attached to their children; and I could not see how they shouldn't both
  • have taken the same road, for good or evil. But, I thought in my mind,
  • Hindley, with apparently the stronger head, has shown himself sadly the
  • worse and the weaker man. When his ship struck, the captain abandoned
  • his post; and the crew, instead of trying to save her, rushed into riot
  • and confusion, leaving no hope for their luckless vessel. Linton, on the
  • contrary, displayed the true courage of a loyal and faithful soul: he
  • trusted God; and God comforted him. One hoped, and the other despaired:
  • they chose their own lots, and were righteously doomed to endure them.
  • But you'll not want to hear my moralising, Mr. Lockwood; you'll judge, as
  • well as I can, all these things: at least, you'll think you will, and
  • that's the same. The end of Earnshaw was what might have been expected;
  • it followed fast on his sister's: there were scarcely six months between
  • them. We, at the Grange, never got a very succinct account of his state
  • preceding it; all that I did learn was on occasion of going to aid in the
  • preparations for the funeral. Mr. Kenneth came to announce the event to
  • my master.
  • 'Well, Nelly,' said he, riding into the yard one morning, too early not
  • to alarm me with an instant presentiment of bad news, 'it's yours and my
  • turn to go into mourning at present. Who's given us the slip now, do you
  • think?'
  • 'Who?' I asked in a flurry.
  • 'Why, guess!' he returned, dismounting, and slinging his bridle on a hook
  • by the door. 'And nip up the corner of your apron: I'm certain you'll
  • need it.'
  • 'Not Mr. Heathcliff, surely?' I exclaimed.
  • 'What! would you have tears for him?' said the doctor. 'No, Heathcliff's
  • a tough young fellow: he looks blooming to-day. I've just seen him. He's
  • rapidly regaining flesh since he lost his better half.'
  • 'Who is it, then, Mr. Kenneth?' I repeated impatiently.
  • 'Hindley Earnshaw! Your old friend Hindley,' he replied, 'and my wicked
  • gossip: though he's been too wild for me this long while. There! I said
  • we should draw water. But cheer up! He died true to his character:
  • drunk as a lord. Poor lad! I'm sorry, too. One can't help missing an
  • old companion: though he had the worst tricks with him that ever man
  • imagined, and has done me many a rascally turn. He's barely
  • twenty-seven, it seems; that's your own age: who would have thought you
  • were born in one year?'
  • I confess this blow was greater to me than the shock of Mrs. Linton's
  • death: ancient associations lingered round my heart; I sat down in the
  • porch and wept as for a blood relation, desiring Mr. Kenneth to get
  • another servant to introduce him to the master. I could not hinder
  • myself from pondering on the question--'Had he had fair play?' Whatever
  • I did, that idea would bother me: it was so tiresomely pertinacious that
  • I resolved on requesting leave to go to Wuthering Heights, and assist in
  • the last duties to the dead. Mr. Linton was extremely reluctant to
  • consent, but I pleaded eloquently for the friendless condition in which
  • he lay; and I said my old master and foster-brother had a claim on my
  • services as strong as his own. Besides, I reminded him that the child
  • Hareton was his wife's nephew, and, in the absence of nearer kin, he
  • ought to act as its guardian; and he ought to and must inquire how the
  • property was left, and look over the concerns of his brother-in-law. He
  • was unfit for attending to such matters then, but he bid me speak to his
  • lawyer; and at length permitted me to go. His lawyer had been Earnshaw's
  • also: I called at the village, and asked him to accompany me. He shook
  • his head, and advised that Heathcliff should be let alone; affirming, if
  • the truth were known, Hareton would be found little else than a beggar.
  • 'His father died in debt,' he said; 'the whole property is mortgaged, and
  • the sole chance for the natural heir is to allow him an opportunity of
  • creating some interest in the creditor's heart, that he may be inclined
  • to deal leniently towards him.'
  • When I reached the Heights, I explained that I had come to see everything
  • carried on decently; and Joseph, who appeared in sufficient distress,
  • expressed satisfaction at my presence. Mr. Heathcliff said he did not
  • perceive that I was wanted; but I might stay and order the arrangements
  • for the funeral, if I chose.
  • 'Correctly,' he remarked, 'that fool's body should be buried at the
  • cross-roads, without ceremony of any kind. I happened to leave him ten
  • minutes yesterday afternoon, and in that interval he fastened the two
  • doors of the house against me, and he has spent the night in drinking
  • himself to death deliberately! We broke in this morning, for we heard
  • him sporting like a horse; and there he was, laid over the settle:
  • flaying and scalping would not have wakened him. I sent for Kenneth, and
  • he came; but not till the beast had changed into carrion: he was both
  • dead and cold, and stark; and so you'll allow it was useless making more
  • stir about him!'
  • The old servant confirmed this statement, but muttered:
  • 'I'd rayther he'd goan hisseln for t' doctor! I sud ha' taen tent o' t'
  • maister better nor him--and he warn't deead when I left, naught o' t'
  • soart!'
  • I insisted on the funeral being respectable. Mr. Heathcliff said I might
  • have my own way there too: only, he desired me to remember that the money
  • for the whole affair came out of his pocket. He maintained a hard,
  • careless deportment, indicative of neither joy nor sorrow: if anything,
  • it expressed a flinty gratification at a piece of difficult work
  • successfully executed. I observed once, indeed, something like
  • exultation in his aspect: it was just when the people were bearing the
  • coffin from the house. He had the hypocrisy to represent a mourner: and
  • previous to following with Hareton, he lifted the unfortunate child on to
  • the table and muttered, with peculiar gusto, 'Now, my bonny lad, you are
  • _mine_! And we'll see if one tree won't grow as crooked as another, with
  • the same wind to twist it!' The unsuspecting thing was pleased at this
  • speech: he played with Heathcliff's whiskers, and stroked his cheek; but
  • I divined its meaning, and observed tartly, 'That boy must go back with
  • me to Thrushcross Grange, sir. There is nothing in the world less yours
  • than he is!'
  • 'Does Linton say so?' he demanded.
  • 'Of course--he has ordered me to take him,' I replied.
  • 'Well,' said the scoundrel, 'we'll not argue the subject now: but I have
  • a fancy to try my hand at rearing a young one; so intimate to your master
  • that I must supply the place of this with my own, if he attempt to remove
  • it. I don't engage to let Hareton go undisputed; but I'll be pretty sure
  • to make the other come! Remember to tell him.'
  • This hint was enough to bind our hands. I repeated its substance on my
  • return; and Edgar Linton, little interested at the commencement, spoke no
  • more of interfering. I'm not aware that he could have done it to any
  • purpose, had he been ever so willing.
  • The guest was now the master of Wuthering Heights: he held firm
  • possession, and proved to the attorney--who, in his turn, proved it to
  • Mr. Linton--that Earnshaw had mortgaged every yard of land he owned for
  • cash to supply his mania for gaming; and he, Heathcliff, was the
  • mortgagee. In that manner Hareton, who should now be the first gentleman
  • in the neighbourhood, was reduced to a state of complete dependence on
  • his father's inveterate enemy; and lives in his own house as a servant,
  • deprived of the advantage of wages: quite unable to right himself,
  • because of his friendlessness, and his ignorance that he has been
  • wronged.
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • The twelve years, continued Mrs. Dean, following that dismal period were
  • the happiest of my life: my greatest troubles in their passage rose from
  • our little lady's trifling illnesses, which she had to experience in
  • common with all children, rich and poor. For the rest, after the first
  • six months, she grew like a larch, and could walk and talk too, in her
  • own way, before the heath blossomed a second time over Mrs. Linton's
  • dust. She was the most winning thing that ever brought sunshine into a
  • desolate house: a real beauty in face, with the Earnshaws' handsome dark
  • eyes, but the Lintons' fair skin and small features, and yellow curling
  • hair. Her spirit was high, though not rough, and qualified by a heart
  • sensitive and lively to excess in its affections. That capacity for
  • intense attachments reminded me of her mother: still she did not resemble
  • her: for she could be soft and mild as a dove, and she had a gentle voice
  • and pensive expression: her anger was never furious; her love never
  • fierce: it was deep and tender. However, it must be acknowledged, she
  • had faults to foil her gifts. A propensity to be saucy was one; and a
  • perverse will, that indulged children invariably acquire, whether they be
  • good tempered or cross. If a servant chanced to vex her, it was
  • always--'I shall tell papa!' And if he reproved her, even by a look, you
  • would have thought it a heart-breaking business: I don't believe he ever
  • did speak a harsh word to her. He took her education entirely on
  • himself, and made it an amusement. Fortunately, curiosity and a quick
  • intellect made her an apt scholar: she learned rapidly and eagerly, and
  • did honour to his teaching.
  • Till she reached the age of thirteen she had not once been beyond the
  • range of the park by herself. Mr. Linton would take her with him a mile
  • or so outside, on rare occasions; but he trusted her to no one else.
  • Gimmerton was an unsubstantial name in her ears; the chapel, the only
  • building she had approached or entered, except her own home. Wuthering
  • Heights and Mr. Heathcliff did not exist for her: she was a perfect
  • recluse; and, apparently, perfectly contented. Sometimes, indeed, while
  • surveying the country from her nursery window, she would observe--
  • 'Ellen, how long will it be before I can walk to the top of those hills?
  • I wonder what lies on the other side--is it the sea?'
  • 'No, Miss Cathy,' I would answer; 'it is hills again, just like these.'
  • 'And what are those golden rocks like when you stand under them?' she
  • once asked.
  • The abrupt descent of Penistone Crags particularly attracted her notice;
  • especially when the setting sun shone on it and the topmost heights, and
  • the whole extent of landscape besides lay in shadow. I explained that
  • they were bare masses of stone, with hardly enough earth in their clefts
  • to nourish a stunted tree.
  • 'And why are they bright so long after it is evening here?' she pursued.
  • 'Because they are a great deal higher up than we are,' replied I; 'you
  • could not climb them, they are too high and steep. In winter the frost
  • is always there before it comes to us; and deep into summer I have found
  • snow under that black hollow on the north-east side!'
  • 'Oh, you have been on them!' she cried gleefully. 'Then I can go, too,
  • when I am a woman. Has papa been, Ellen?'
  • 'Papa would tell you, Miss,' I answered, hastily, 'that they are not
  • worth the trouble of visiting. The moors, where you ramble with him, are
  • much nicer; and Thrushcross Park is the finest place in the world.'
  • 'But I know the park, and I don't know those,' she murmured to herself.
  • 'And I should delight to look round me from the brow of that tallest
  • point: my little pony Minny shall take me some time.'
  • One of the maids mentioning the Fairy Cave, quite turned her head with a
  • desire to fulfil this project: she teased Mr. Linton about it; and he
  • promised she should have the journey when she got older. But Miss
  • Catherine measured her age by months, and, 'Now, am I old enough to go to
  • Penistone Crags?' was the constant question in her mouth. The road
  • thither wound close by Wuthering Heights. Edgar had not the heart to
  • pass it; so she received as constantly the answer, 'Not yet, love: not
  • yet.'
  • I said Mrs. Heathcliff lived above a dozen years after quitting her
  • husband. Her family were of a delicate constitution: she and Edgar both
  • lacked the ruddy health that you will generally meet in these parts. What
  • her last illness was, I am not certain: I conjecture, they died of the
  • same thing, a kind of fever, slow at its commencement, but incurable, and
  • rapidly consuming life towards the close. She wrote to inform her
  • brother of the probable conclusion of a four-months' indisposition under
  • which she had suffered, and entreated him to come to her, if possible;
  • for she had much to settle, and she wished to bid him adieu, and deliver
  • Linton safely into his hands. Her hope was that Linton might be left
  • with him, as he had been with her: his father, she would fain convince
  • herself, had no desire to assume the burden of his maintenance or
  • education. My master hesitated not a moment in complying with her
  • request: reluctant as he was to leave home at ordinary calls, he flew to
  • answer this; commanding Catherine to my peculiar vigilance, in his
  • absence, with reiterated orders that she must not wander out of the park,
  • even under my escort he did not calculate on her going unaccompanied.
  • He was away three weeks. The first day or two my charge sat in a corner
  • of the library, too sad for either reading or playing: in that quiet
  • state she caused me little trouble; but it was succeeded by an interval
  • of impatient, fretful weariness; and being too busy, and too old then, to
  • run up and down amusing her, I hit on a method by which she might
  • entertain herself. I used to send her on her travels round the
  • grounds--now on foot, and now on a pony; indulging her with a patient
  • audience of all her real and imaginary adventures when she returned.
  • The summer shone in full prime; and she took such a taste for this
  • solitary rambling that she often contrived to remain out from breakfast
  • till tea; and then the evenings were spent in recounting her fanciful
  • tales. I did not fear her breaking bounds; because the gates were
  • generally locked, and I thought she would scarcely venture forth alone,
  • if they had stood wide open. Unluckily, my confidence proved misplaced.
  • Catherine came to me, one morning, at eight o'clock, and said she was
  • that day an Arabian merchant, going to cross the Desert with his caravan;
  • and I must give her plenty of provision for herself and beasts: a horse,
  • and three camels, personated by a large hound and a couple of pointers. I
  • got together good store of dainties, and slung them in a basket on one
  • side of the saddle; and she sprang up as gay as a fairy, sheltered by her
  • wide-brimmed hat and gauze veil from the July sun, and trotted off with a
  • merry laugh, mocking my cautious counsel to avoid galloping, and come
  • back early. The naughty thing never made her appearance at tea. One
  • traveller, the hound, being an old dog and fond of its ease, returned;
  • but neither Cathy, nor the pony, nor the two pointers were visible in any
  • direction: I despatched emissaries down this path, and that path, and at
  • last went wandering in search of her myself. There was a labourer
  • working at a fence round a plantation, on the borders of the grounds. I
  • inquired of him if he had seen our young lady.
  • 'I saw her at morn,' he replied: 'she would have me to cut her a hazel
  • switch, and then she leapt her Galloway over the hedge yonder, where it
  • is lowest, and galloped out of sight.'
  • You may guess how I felt at hearing this news. It struck me directly she
  • must have started for Penistone Crags. 'What will become of her?' I
  • ejaculated, pushing through a gap which the man was repairing, and making
  • straight to the high-road. I walked as if for a wager, mile after mile,
  • till a turn brought me in view of the Heights; but no Catherine could I
  • detect, far or near. The Crags lie about a mile and a half beyond Mr.
  • Heathcliff's place, and that is four from the Grange, so I began to fear
  • night would fall ere I could reach them. 'And what if she should have
  • slipped in clambering among them,' I reflected, 'and been killed, or
  • broken some of her bones?' My suspense was truly painful; and, at first,
  • it gave me delightful relief to observe, in hurrying by the farmhouse,
  • Charlie, the fiercest of the pointers, lying under a window, with swelled
  • head and bleeding ear. I opened the wicket and ran to the door, knocking
  • vehemently for admittance. A woman whom I knew, and who formerly lived
  • at Gimmerton, answered: she had been servant there since the death of Mr.
  • Earnshaw.
  • 'Ah,' said she, 'you are come a-seeking your little mistress! Don't be
  • frightened. She's here safe: but I'm glad it isn't the master.'
  • 'He is not at home then, is he?' I panted, quite breathless with quick
  • walking and alarm.
  • 'No, no,' she replied: 'both he and Joseph are off, and I think they
  • won't return this hour or more. Step in and rest you a bit.'
  • I entered, and beheld my stray lamb seated on the hearth, rocking herself
  • in a little chair that had been her mother's when a child. Her hat was
  • hung against the wall, and she seemed perfectly at home, laughing and
  • chattering, in the best spirits imaginable, to Hareton--now a great,
  • strong lad of eighteen--who stared at her with considerable curiosity and
  • astonishment: comprehending precious little of the fluent succession of
  • remarks and questions which her tongue never ceased pouring forth.
  • 'Very well, Miss!' I exclaimed, concealing my joy under an angry
  • countenance. 'This is your last ride, till papa comes back. I'll not
  • trust you over the threshold again, you naughty, naughty girl!'
  • 'Aha, Ellen!' she cried, gaily, jumping up and running to my side. 'I
  • shall have a pretty story to tell to-night; and so you've found me out.
  • Have you ever been here in your life before?'
  • 'Put that hat on, and home at once,' said I. 'I'm dreadfully grieved at
  • you, Miss Cathy: you've done extremely wrong! It's no use pouting and
  • crying: that won't repay the trouble I've had, scouring the country after
  • you. To think how Mr. Linton charged me to keep you in; and you stealing
  • off so! It shows you are a cunning little fox, and nobody will put faith
  • in you any more.'
  • 'What have I done?' sobbed she, instantly checked. 'Papa charged me
  • nothing: he'll not scold me, Ellen--he's never cross, like you!'
  • 'Come, come!' I repeated. 'I'll tie the riband. Now, let us have no
  • petulance. Oh, for shame! You thirteen years old, and such a baby!'
  • This exclamation was caused by her pushing the hat from her head, and
  • retreating to the chimney out of my reach.
  • 'Nay,' said the servant, 'don't be hard on the bonny lass, Mrs. Dean. We
  • made her stop: she'd fain have ridden forwards, afeard you should be
  • uneasy. Hareton offered to go with her, and I thought he should: it's a
  • wild road over the hills.'
  • Hareton, during the discussion, stood with his hands in his pockets, too
  • awkward to speak; though he looked as if he did not relish my intrusion.
  • 'How long am I to wait?' I continued, disregarding the woman's
  • interference. 'It will be dark in ten minutes. Where is the pony, Miss
  • Cathy? And where is Phoenix? I shall leave you, unless you be quick; so
  • please yourself.'
  • 'The pony is in the yard,' she replied, 'and Phoenix is shut in there.
  • He's bitten--and so is Charlie. I was going to tell you all about it;
  • but you are in a bad temper, and don't deserve to hear.'
  • I picked up her hat, and approached to reinstate it; but perceiving that
  • the people of the house took her part, she commenced capering round the
  • room; and on my giving chase, ran like a mouse over and under and behind
  • the furniture, rendering it ridiculous for me to pursue. Hareton and the
  • woman laughed, and she joined them, and waxed more impertinent still;
  • till I cried, in great irritation,--'Well, Miss Cathy, if you were aware
  • whose house this is you'd be glad enough to get out.'
  • 'It's _your_ father's, isn't it?' said she, turning to Hareton.
  • 'Nay,' he replied, looking down, and blushing bashfully.
  • He could not stand a steady gaze from her eyes, though they were just his
  • own.
  • 'Whose then--your master's?' she asked.
  • He coloured deeper, with a different feeling, muttered an oath, and
  • turned away.
  • 'Who is his master?' continued the tiresome girl, appealing to me. 'He
  • talked about "our house," and "our folk." I thought he had been the
  • owner's son. And he never said Miss: he should have done, shouldn't he,
  • if he's a servant?'
  • Hareton grew black as a thunder-cloud at this childish speech. I
  • silently shook my questioner, and at last succeeded in equipping her for
  • departure.
  • 'Now, get my horse,' she said, addressing her unknown kinsman as she
  • would one of the stable-boys at the Grange. 'And you may come with me. I
  • want to see where the goblin-hunter rises in the marsh, and to hear about
  • the _fairishes_, as you call them: but make haste! What's the matter?
  • Get my horse, I say.'
  • 'I'll see thee damned before I be _thy_ servant!' growled the lad.
  • 'You'll see me _what_!' asked Catherine in surprise.
  • 'Damned--thou saucy witch!' he replied.
  • 'There, Miss Cathy! you see you have got into pretty company,' I
  • interposed. 'Nice words to be used to a young lady! Pray don't begin to
  • dispute with him. Come, let us seek for Minny ourselves, and begone.'
  • 'But, Ellen,' cried she, staring fixed in astonishment, 'how dare he
  • speak so to me? Mustn't he be made to do as I ask him? You wicked
  • creature, I shall tell papa what you said.--Now, then!'
  • Hareton did not appear to feel this threat; so the tears sprang into her
  • eyes with indignation. 'You bring the pony,' she exclaimed, turning to
  • the woman, 'and let my dog free this moment!'
  • 'Softly, Miss,' answered she addressed; 'you'll lose nothing by being
  • civil. Though Mr. Hareton, there, be not the master's son, he's your
  • cousin: and I was never hired to serve you.'
  • '_He_ my cousin!' cried Cathy, with a scornful laugh.
  • 'Yes, indeed,' responded her reprover.
  • 'Oh, Ellen! don't let them say such things,' she pursued in great
  • trouble. 'Papa is gone to fetch my cousin from London: my cousin is a
  • gentleman's son. That my--' she stopped, and wept outright; upset at the
  • bare notion of relationship with such a clown.
  • 'Hush, hush!' I whispered; 'people can have many cousins and of all
  • sorts, Miss Cathy, without being any the worse for it; only they needn't
  • keep their company, if they be disagreeable and bad.'
  • 'He's not--he's not my cousin, Ellen!' she went on, gathering fresh grief
  • from reflection, and flinging herself into my arms for refuge from the
  • idea.
  • I was much vexed at her and the servant for their mutual revelations;
  • having no doubt of Linton's approaching arrival, communicated by the
  • former, being reported to Mr. Heathcliff; and feeling as confident that
  • Catherine's first thought on her father's return would be to seek an
  • explanation of the latter's assertion concerning her rude-bred kindred.
  • Hareton, recovering from his disgust at being taken for a servant, seemed
  • moved by her distress; and, having fetched the pony round to the door, he
  • took, to propitiate her, a fine crooked-legged terrier whelp from the
  • kennel, and putting it into her hand, bid her whist! for he meant nought.
  • Pausing in her lamentations, she surveyed him with a glance of awe and
  • horror, then burst forth anew.
  • I could scarcely refrain from smiling at this antipathy to the poor
  • fellow; who was a well-made, athletic youth, good-looking in features,
  • and stout and healthy, but attired in garments befitting his daily
  • occupations of working on the farm and lounging among the moors after
  • rabbits and game. Still, I thought I could detect in his physiognomy a
  • mind owning better qualities than his father ever possessed. Good things
  • lost amid a wilderness of weeds, to be sure, whose rankness far
  • over-topped their neglected growth; yet, notwithstanding, evidence of a
  • wealthy soil, that might yield luxuriant crops under other and favourable
  • circumstances. Mr. Heathcliff, I believe, had not treated him physically
  • ill; thanks to his fearless nature, which offered no temptation to that
  • course of oppression: he had none of the timid susceptibility that would
  • have given zest to ill-treatment, in Heathcliff's judgment. He appeared
  • to have bent his malevolence on making him a brute: he was never taught
  • to read or write; never rebuked for any bad habit which did not annoy his
  • keeper; never led a single step towards virtue, or guarded by a single
  • precept against vice. And from what I heard, Joseph contributed much to
  • his deterioration, by a narrow-minded partiality which prompted him to
  • flatter and pet him, as a boy, because he was the head of the old family.
  • And as he had been in the habit of accusing Catherine Earnshaw and
  • Heathcliff, when children, of putting the master past his patience, and
  • compelling him to seek solace in drink by what he termed their 'offald
  • ways,' so at present he laid the whole burden of Hareton's faults on the
  • shoulders of the usurper of his property. If the lad swore, he wouldn't
  • correct him: nor however culpably he behaved. It gave Joseph
  • satisfaction, apparently, to watch him go the worst lengths: he allowed
  • that the lad was ruined: that his soul was abandoned to perdition; but
  • then he reflected that Heathcliff must answer for it. Hareton's blood
  • would be required at his hands; and there lay immense consolation in that
  • thought. Joseph had instilled into him a pride of name, and of his
  • lineage; he would, had he dared, have fostered hate between him and the
  • present owner of the Heights: but his dread of that owner amounted to
  • superstition; and he confined his feelings regarding him to muttered
  • innuendoes and private comminations. I don't pretend to be intimately
  • acquainted with the mode of living customary in those days at Wuthering
  • Heights: I only speak from hearsay; for I saw little. The villagers
  • affirmed Mr. Heathcliff was _near_, and a cruel hard landlord to his
  • tenants; but the house, inside, had regained its ancient aspect of
  • comfort under female management, and the scenes of riot common in
  • Hindley's time were not now enacted within its walls. The master was too
  • gloomy to seek companionship with any people, good or bad; and he is yet.
  • This, however, is not making progress with my story. Miss Cathy rejected
  • the peace-offering of the terrier, and demanded her own dogs, Charlie and
  • Phoenix. They came limping and hanging their heads; and we set out for
  • home, sadly out of sorts, every one of us. I could not wring from my
  • little lady how she had spent the day; except that, as I supposed, the
  • goal of her pilgrimage was Penistone Crags; and she arrived without
  • adventure to the gate of the farm-house, when Hareton happened to issue
  • forth, attended by some canine followers, who attacked her train. They
  • had a smart battle, before their owners could separate them: that formed
  • an introduction. Catherine told Hareton who she was, and where she was
  • going; and asked him to show her the way: finally, beguiling him to
  • accompany her. He opened the mysteries of the Fairy Cave, and twenty
  • other queer places. But, being in disgrace, I was not favoured with a
  • description of the interesting objects she saw. I could gather, however,
  • that her guide had been a favourite till she hurt his feelings by
  • addressing him as a servant; and Heathcliff's housekeeper hurt hers by
  • calling him her cousin. Then the language he had held to her rankled in
  • her heart; she who was always 'love,' and 'darling,' and 'queen,' and
  • 'angel,' with everybody at the Grange, to be insulted so shockingly by a
  • stranger! She did not comprehend it; and hard work I had to obtain a
  • promise that she would not lay the grievance before her father. I
  • explained how he objected to the whole household at the Heights, and how
  • sorry he would be to find she had been there; but I insisted most on the
  • fact, that if she revealed my negligence of his orders, he would perhaps
  • be so angry that I should have to leave; and Cathy couldn't bear that
  • prospect: she pledged her word, and kept it for my sake. After all, she
  • was a sweet little girl.
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • A letter, edged with black, announced the day of my master's return.
  • Isabella was dead; and he wrote to bid me get mourning for his daughter,
  • and arrange a room, and other accommodations, for his youthful nephew.
  • Catherine ran wild with joy at the idea of welcoming her father back; and
  • indulged most sanguine anticipations of the innumerable excellencies of
  • her 'real' cousin. The evening of their expected arrival came. Since
  • early morning she had been busy ordering her own small affairs; and now
  • attired in her new black frock--poor thing! her aunt's death impressed
  • her with no definite sorrow--she obliged me, by constant worrying, to
  • walk with her down through the grounds to meet them.
  • 'Linton is just six months younger than I am,' she chattered, as we
  • strolled leisurely over the swells and hollows of mossy turf, under
  • shadow of the trees. 'How delightful it will be to have him for a
  • playfellow! Aunt Isabella sent papa a beautiful lock of his hair; it was
  • lighter than mine--more flaxen, and quite as fine. I have it carefully
  • preserved in a little glass box; and I've often thought what a pleasure
  • it would be to see its owner. Oh! I am happy--and papa, dear, dear papa!
  • Come, Ellen, let us run! come, run.'
  • She ran, and returned and ran again, many times before my sober footsteps
  • reached the gate, and then she seated herself on the grassy bank beside
  • the path, and tried to wait patiently; but that was impossible: she
  • couldn't be still a minute.
  • 'How long they are!' she exclaimed. 'Ah, I see, some dust on the
  • road--they are coming! No! When will they be here? May we not go a
  • little way--half a mile, Ellen, only just half a mile? Do say Yes: to
  • that clump of birches at the turn!'
  • I refused staunchly. At length her suspense was ended: the travelling
  • carriage rolled in sight. Miss Cathy shrieked and stretched out her arms
  • as soon as she caught her father's face looking from the window. He
  • descended, nearly as eager as herself; and a considerable interval
  • elapsed ere they had a thought to spare for any but themselves. While
  • they exchanged caresses I took a peep in to see after Linton. He was
  • asleep in a corner, wrapped in a warm, fur-lined cloak, as if it had been
  • winter. A pale, delicate, effeminate boy, who might have been taken for
  • my master's younger brother, so strong was the resemblance: but there was
  • a sickly peevishness in his aspect that Edgar Linton never had. The
  • latter saw me looking; and having shaken hands, advised me to close the
  • door, and leave him undisturbed; for the journey had fatigued him. Cathy
  • would fain have taken one glance, but her father told her to come, and
  • they walked together up the park, while I hastened before to prepare the
  • servants.
  • 'Now, darling,' said Mr. Linton, addressing his daughter, as they halted
  • at the bottom of the front steps: 'your cousin is not so strong or so
  • merry as you are, and he has lost his mother, remember, a very short time
  • since; therefore, don't expect him to play and run about with you
  • directly. And don't harass him much by talking: let him be quiet this
  • evening, at least, will you?'
  • 'Yes, yes, papa,' answered Catherine: 'but I do want to see him; and he
  • hasn't once looked out.'
  • The carriage stopped; and the sleeper being roused, was lifted to the
  • ground by his uncle.
  • 'This is your cousin Cathy, Linton,' he said, putting their little hands
  • together. 'She's fond of you already; and mind you don't grieve her by
  • crying to-night. Try to be cheerful now; the travelling is at an end,
  • and you have nothing to do but rest and amuse yourself as you please.'
  • 'Let me go to bed, then,' answered the boy, shrinking from Catherine's
  • salute; and he put his fingers to remove incipient tears.
  • 'Come, come, there's a good child,' I whispered, leading him in. 'You'll
  • make her weep too--see how sorry she is for you!'
  • I do not know whether it was sorrow for him, but his cousin put on as sad
  • a countenance as himself, and returned to her father. All three entered,
  • and mounted to the library, where tea was laid ready. I proceeded to
  • remove Linton's cap and mantle, and placed him on a chair by the table;
  • but he was no sooner seated than he began to cry afresh. My master
  • inquired what was the matter.
  • 'I can't sit on a chair,' sobbed the boy.
  • 'Go to the sofa, then, and Ellen shall bring you some tea,' answered his
  • uncle patiently.
  • He had been greatly tried, during the journey, I felt convinced, by his
  • fretful ailing charge. Linton slowly trailed himself off, and lay down.
  • Cathy carried a footstool and her cup to his side. At first she sat
  • silent; but that could not last: she had resolved to make a pet of her
  • little cousin, as she would have him to be; and she commenced stroking
  • his curls, and kissing his cheek, and offering him tea in her saucer,
  • like a baby. This pleased him, for he was not much better: he dried his
  • eyes, and lightened into a faint smile.
  • 'Oh, he'll do very well,' said the master to me, after watching them a
  • minute. 'Very well, if we can keep him, Ellen. The company of a child
  • of his own age will instil new spirit into him soon, and by wishing for
  • strength he'll gain it.'
  • 'Ay, if we can keep him!' I mused to myself; and sore misgivings came
  • over me that there was slight hope of that. And then, I thought, how
  • ever will that weakling live at Wuthering Heights? Between his father
  • and Hareton, what playmates and instructors they'll be. Our doubts were
  • presently decided--even earlier than I expected. I had just taken the
  • children up-stairs, after tea was finished, and seen Linton asleep--he
  • would not suffer me to leave him till that was the case--I had come down,
  • and was standing by the table in the hall, lighting a bedroom candle for
  • Mr. Edgar, when a maid stepped out of the kitchen and informed me that
  • Mr. Heathcliff's servant Joseph was at the door, and wished to speak with
  • the master.
  • 'I shall ask him what he wants first,' I said, in considerable
  • trepidation. 'A very unlikely hour to be troubling people, and the
  • instant they have returned from a long journey. I don't think the master
  • can see him.'
  • Joseph had advanced through the kitchen as I uttered these words, and now
  • presented himself in the hall. He was donned in his Sunday garments,
  • with his most sanctimonious and sourest face, and, holding his hat in one
  • hand, and his stick in the other, he proceeded to clean his shoes on the
  • mat.
  • 'Good-evening, Joseph,' I said, coldly. 'What business brings you here
  • to-night?'
  • 'It's Maister Linton I mun spake to,' he answered, waving me disdainfully
  • aside.
  • 'Mr. Linton is going to bed; unless you have something particular to say,
  • I'm sure he won't hear it now,' I continued. 'You had better sit down in
  • there, and entrust your message to me.'
  • 'Which is his rahm?' pursued the fellow, surveying the range of closed
  • doors.
  • I perceived he was bent on refusing my mediation, so very reluctantly I
  • went up to the library, and announced the unseasonable visitor, advising
  • that he should be dismissed till next day. Mr. Linton had no time to
  • empower me to do so, for Joseph mounted close at my heels, and, pushing
  • into the apartment, planted himself at the far side of the table, with
  • his two fists clapped on the head of his stick, and began in an elevated
  • tone, as if anticipating opposition--
  • 'Hathecliff has sent me for his lad, and I munn't goa back 'bout him.'
  • Edgar Linton was silent a minute; an expression of exceeding sorrow
  • overcast his features: he would have pitied the child on his own account;
  • but, recalling Isabella's hopes and fears, and anxious wishes for her
  • son, and her commendations of him to his care, he grieved bitterly at the
  • prospect of yielding him up, and searched in his heart how it might be
  • avoided. No plan offered itself: the very exhibition of any desire to
  • keep him would have rendered the claimant more peremptory: there was
  • nothing left but to resign him. However, he was not going to rouse him
  • from his sleep.
  • 'Tell Mr. Heathcliff,' he answered calmly, 'that his son shall come to
  • Wuthering Heights to-morrow. He is in bed, and too tired to go the
  • distance now. You may also tell him that the mother of Linton desired
  • him to remain under my guardianship; and, at present, his health is very
  • precarious.'
  • 'Noa!' said Joseph, giving a thud with his prop on the floor, and
  • assuming an authoritative air. 'Noa! that means naught. Hathecliff maks
  • noa 'count o' t' mother, nor ye norther; but he'll heu' his lad; und I
  • mun tak' him--soa now ye knaw!'
  • 'You shall not to-night!' answered Linton decisively. 'Walk down stairs
  • at once, and repeat to your master what I have said. Ellen, show him
  • down. Go--'
  • And, aiding the indignant elder with a lift by the arm, he rid the room
  • of him and closed the door.
  • 'Varrah weell!' shouted Joseph, as he slowly drew off. 'To-morn, he's
  • come hisseln, and thrust _him_ out, if ye darr!'
  • CHAPTER XX
  • To obviate the danger of this threat being fulfilled, Mr. Linton
  • commissioned me to take the boy home early, on Catherine's pony; and,
  • said he--'As we shall now have no influence over his destiny, good or
  • bad, you must say nothing of where he is gone to my daughter: she cannot
  • associate with him hereafter, and it is better for her to remain in
  • ignorance of his proximity; lest she should be restless, and anxious to
  • visit the Heights. Merely tell her his father sent for him suddenly, and
  • he has been obliged to leave us.'
  • Linton was very reluctant to be roused from his bed at five o'clock, and
  • astonished to be informed that he must prepare for further travelling;
  • but I softened off the matter by stating that he was going to spend some
  • time with his father, Mr. Heathcliff, who wished to see him so much, he
  • did not like to defer the pleasure till he should recover from his late
  • journey.
  • 'My father!' he cried, in strange perplexity. 'Mamma never told me I had
  • a father. Where does he live? I'd rather stay with uncle.'
  • 'He lives a little distance from the Grange,' I replied; 'just beyond
  • those hills: not so far, but you may walk over here when you get hearty.
  • And you should be glad to go home, and to see him. You must try to love
  • him, as you did your mother, and then he will love you.'
  • 'But why have I not heard of him before?' asked Linton. 'Why didn't
  • mamma and he live together, as other people do?'
  • 'He had business to keep him in the north,' I answered, 'and your
  • mother's health required her to reside in the south.'
  • 'And why didn't mamma speak to me about him?' persevered the child. 'She
  • often talked of uncle, and I learnt to love him long ago. How am I to
  • love papa? I don't know him.'
  • 'Oh, all children love their parents,' I said. 'Your mother, perhaps,
  • thought you would want to be with him if she mentioned him often to you.
  • Let us make haste. An early ride on such a beautiful morning is much
  • preferable to an hour's more sleep.'
  • 'Is _she_ to go with us,' he demanded, 'the little girl I saw yesterday?'
  • 'Not now,' replied I.
  • 'Is uncle?' he continued.
  • 'No, I shall be your companion there,' I said.
  • Linton sank back on his pillow and fell into a brown study.
  • 'I won't go without uncle,' he cried at length: 'I can't tell where you
  • mean to take me.'
  • I attempted to persuade him of the naughtiness of showing reluctance to
  • meet his father; still he obstinately resisted any progress towards
  • dressing, and I had to call for my master's assistance in coaxing him out
  • of bed. The poor thing was finally got off, with several delusive
  • assurances that his absence should be short: that Mr. Edgar and Cathy
  • would visit him, and other promises, equally ill-founded, which I
  • invented and reiterated at intervals throughout the way. The pure
  • heather-scented air, the bright sunshine, and the gentle canter of Minny,
  • relieved his despondency after a while. He began to put questions
  • concerning his new home, and its inhabitants, with greater interest and
  • liveliness.
  • 'Is Wuthering Heights as pleasant a place as Thrushcross Grange?' he
  • inquired, turning to take a last glance into the valley, whence a light
  • mist mounted and formed a fleecy cloud on the skirts of the blue.
  • 'It is not so buried in trees,' I replied, 'and it is not quite so large,
  • but you can see the country beautifully all round; and the air is
  • healthier for you--fresher and drier. You will, perhaps, think the
  • building old and dark at first; though it is a respectable house: the
  • next best in the neighbourhood. And you will have such nice rambles on
  • the moors. Hareton Earnshaw--that is, Miss Cathy's other cousin, and so
  • yours in a manner--will show you all the sweetest spots; and you can
  • bring a book in fine weather, and make a green hollow your study; and,
  • now and then, your uncle may join you in a walk: he does, frequently,
  • walk out on the hills.'
  • 'And what is my father like?' he asked. 'Is he as young and handsome as
  • uncle?'
  • 'He's as young,' said I; 'but he has black hair and eyes, and looks
  • sterner; and he is taller and bigger altogether. He'll not seem to you
  • so gentle and kind at first, perhaps, because it is not his way: still,
  • mind you, be frank and cordial with him; and naturally he'll be fonder of
  • you than any uncle, for you are his own.'
  • 'Black hair and eyes!' mused Linton. 'I can't fancy him. Then I am not
  • like him, am I?'
  • 'Not much,' I answered: not a morsel, I thought, surveying with regret
  • the white complexion and slim frame of my companion, and his large
  • languid eyes--his mother's eyes, save that, unless a morbid touchiness
  • kindled them a moment, they had not a vestige of her sparkling spirit.
  • 'How strange that he should never come to see mamma and me!' he murmured.
  • 'Has he ever seen me? If he has, I must have been a baby. I remember
  • not a single thing about him!'
  • 'Why, Master Linton,' said I, 'three hundred miles is a great distance;
  • and ten years seem very different in length to a grown-up person compared
  • with what they do to you. It is probable Mr. Heathcliff proposed going
  • from summer to summer, but never found a convenient opportunity; and now
  • it is too late. Don't trouble him with questions on the subject: it will
  • disturb him, for no good.'
  • The boy was fully occupied with his own cogitations for the remainder of
  • the ride, till we halted before the farmhouse garden-gate. I watched to
  • catch his impressions in his countenance. He surveyed the carved front
  • and low-browed lattices, the straggling gooseberry-bushes and crooked
  • firs, with solemn intentness, and then shook his head: his private
  • feelings entirely disapproved of the exterior of his new abode. But he
  • had sense to postpone complaining: there might be compensation within.
  • Before he dismounted, I went and opened the door. It was half-past six;
  • the family had just finished breakfast: the servant was clearing and
  • wiping down the table. Joseph stood by his master's chair telling some
  • tale concerning a lame horse; and Hareton was preparing for the hayfield.
  • 'Hallo, Nelly!' said Mr. Heathcliff, when he saw me. 'I feared I should
  • have to come down and fetch my property myself. You've brought it, have
  • you? Let us see what we can make of it.'
  • He got up and strode to the door: Hareton and Joseph followed in gaping
  • curiosity. Poor Linton ran a frightened eye over the faces of the three.
  • 'Sure-ly,' said Joseph after a grave inspection, 'he's swopped wi' ye,
  • Maister, an' yon's his lass!'
  • Heathcliff, having stared his son into an ague of confusion, uttered a
  • scornful laugh.
  • 'God! what a beauty! what a lovely, charming thing!' he exclaimed.
  • 'Hav'n't they reared it on snails and sour milk, Nelly? Oh, damn my
  • soul! but that's worse than I expected--and the devil knows I was not
  • sanguine!'
  • I bid the trembling and bewildered child get down, and enter. He did not
  • thoroughly comprehend the meaning of his father's speech, or whether it
  • were intended for him: indeed, he was not yet certain that the grim,
  • sneering stranger was his father. But he clung to me with growing
  • trepidation; and on Mr. Heathcliff's taking a seat and bidding him 'come
  • hither' he hid his face on my shoulder and wept.
  • 'Tut, tut!' said Heathcliff, stretching out a hand and dragging him
  • roughly between his knees, and then holding up his head by the chin.
  • 'None of that nonsense! We're not going to hurt thee, Linton--isn't that
  • thy name? Thou art thy mother's child, entirely! Where is my share in
  • thee, puling chicken?'
  • He took off the boy's cap and pushed back his thick flaxen curls, felt
  • his slender arms and his small fingers; during which examination Linton
  • ceased crying, and lifted his great blue eyes to inspect the inspector.
  • 'Do you know me?' asked Heathcliff, having satisfied himself that the
  • limbs were all equally frail and feeble.
  • 'No,' said Linton, with a gaze of vacant fear.
  • 'You've heard of me, I daresay?'
  • 'No,' he replied again.
  • 'No! What a shame of your mother, never to waken your filial regard for
  • me! You are my son, then, I'll tell you; and your mother was a wicked
  • slut to leave you in ignorance of the sort of father you possessed. Now,
  • don't wince, and colour up! Though it is something to see you have not
  • white blood. Be a good lad; and I'll do for you. Nelly, if you be tired
  • you may sit down; if not, get home again. I guess you'll report what you
  • hear and see to the cipher at the Grange; and this thing won't be settled
  • while you linger about it.'
  • 'Well,' replied I, 'I hope you'll be kind to the boy, Mr. Heathcliff, or
  • you'll not keep him long; and he's all you have akin in the wide world,
  • that you will ever know--remember.'
  • 'I'll be very kind to him, you needn't fear,' he said, laughing. 'Only
  • nobody else must be kind to him: I'm jealous of monopolising his
  • affection. And, to begin my kindness, Joseph, bring the lad some
  • breakfast. Hareton, you infernal calf, begone to your work. Yes, Nell,'
  • he added, when they had departed, 'my son is prospective owner of your
  • place, and I should not wish him to die till I was certain of being his
  • successor. Besides, he's _mine_, and I want the triumph of seeing _my_
  • descendant fairly lord of their estates; my child hiring their children
  • to till their fathers' lands for wages. That is the sole consideration
  • which can make me endure the whelp: I despise him for himself, and hate
  • him for the memories he revives! But that consideration is sufficient:
  • he's as safe with me, and shall be tended as carefully as your master
  • tends his own. I have a room up-stairs, furnished for him in handsome
  • style; I've engaged a tutor, also, to come three times a week, from
  • twenty miles' distance, to teach him what he pleases to learn. I've
  • ordered Hareton to obey him: and in fact I've arranged everything with a
  • view to preserve the superior and the gentleman in him, above his
  • associates. I do regret, however, that he so little deserves the
  • trouble: if I wished any blessing in the world, it was to find him a
  • worthy object of pride; and I'm bitterly disappointed with the
  • whey-faced, whining wretch!'
  • While he was speaking, Joseph returned bearing a basin of milk-porridge,
  • and placed it before Linton: who stirred round the homely mess with a
  • look of aversion, and affirmed he could not eat it. I saw the old
  • man-servant shared largely in his master's scorn of the child; though he
  • was compelled to retain the sentiment in his heart, because Heathcliff
  • plainly meant his underlings to hold him in honour.
  • 'Cannot ate it?' repeated he, peering in Linton's face, and subduing his
  • voice to a whisper, for fear of being overheard. 'But Maister Hareton
  • nivir ate naught else, when he wer a little 'un; and what wer gooid
  • enough for him's gooid enough for ye, I's rayther think!'
  • 'I _sha'n't_ eat it!' answered Linton, snappishly. 'Take it away.'
  • Joseph snatched up the food indignantly, and brought it to us.
  • 'Is there aught ails th' victuals?' he asked, thrusting the tray under
  • Heathcliff's nose.
  • 'What should ail them?' he said.
  • 'Wah!' answered Joseph, 'yon dainty chap says he cannut ate 'em. But I
  • guess it's raight! His mother wer just soa--we wer a'most too mucky to
  • sow t' corn for makking her breead.'
  • 'Don't mention his mother to me,' said the master, angrily. 'Get him
  • something that he can eat, that's all. What is his usual food, Nelly?'
  • I suggested boiled milk or tea; and the housekeeper received instructions
  • to prepare some. Come, I reflected, his father's selfishness may
  • contribute to his comfort. He perceives his delicate constitution, and
  • the necessity of treating him tolerably. I'll console Mr. Edgar by
  • acquainting him with the turn Heathcliff's humour has taken. Having no
  • excuse for lingering longer, I slipped out, while Linton was engaged in
  • timidly rebuffing the advances of a friendly sheep-dog. But he was too
  • much on the alert to be cheated: as I closed the door, I heard a cry, and
  • a frantic repetition of the words--
  • 'Don't leave me! I'll not stay here! I'll not stay here!'
  • Then the latch was raised and fell: they did not suffer him to come
  • forth. I mounted Minny, and urged her to a trot; and so my brief
  • guardianship ended.
  • CHAPTER XXI
  • We had sad work with little Cathy that day: she rose in high glee, eager
  • to join her cousin, and such passionate tears and lamentations followed
  • the news of his departure that Edgar himself was obliged to soothe her,
  • by affirming he should come back soon: he added, however, 'if I can get
  • him'; and there were no hopes of that. This promise poorly pacified her;
  • but time was more potent; and though still at intervals she inquired of
  • her father when Linton would return, before she did see him again his
  • features had waxed so dim in her memory that she did not recognise him.
  • When I chanced to encounter the housekeeper of Wuthering Heights, in
  • paying business visits to Gimmerton, I used to ask how the young master
  • got on; for he lived almost as secluded as Catherine herself, and was
  • never to be seen. I could gather from her that he continued in weak
  • health, and was a tiresome inmate. She said Mr. Heathcliff seemed to
  • dislike him ever longer and worse, though he took some trouble to conceal
  • it: he had an antipathy to the sound of his voice, and could not do at
  • all with his sitting in the same room with him many minutes together.
  • There seldom passed much talk between them: Linton learnt his lessons and
  • spent his evenings in a small apartment they called the parlour: or else
  • lay in bed all day: for he was constantly getting coughs, and colds, and
  • aches, and pains of some sort.
  • 'And I never know such a fainthearted creature,' added the woman; 'nor
  • one so careful of hisseln. He _will_ go on, if I leave the window open a
  • bit late in the evening. Oh! it's killing, a breath of night air! And he
  • must have a fire in the middle of summer; and Joseph's bacca-pipe is
  • poison; and he must always have sweets and dainties, and always milk,
  • milk for ever--heeding naught how the rest of us are pinched in winter;
  • and there he'll sit, wrapped in his furred cloak in his chair by the
  • fire, with some toast and water or other slop on the hob to sip at; and
  • if Hareton, for pity, comes to amuse him--Hareton is not bad-natured,
  • though he's rough--they're sure to part, one swearing and the other
  • crying. I believe the master would relish Earnshaw's thrashing him to a
  • mummy, if he were not his son; and I'm certain he would be fit to turn
  • him out of doors, if he knew half the nursing he gives hisseln. But then
  • he won't go into danger of temptation: he never enters the parlour, and
  • should Linton show those ways in the house where he is, he sends him
  • up-stairs directly.'
  • I divined, from this account, that utter lack of sympathy had rendered
  • young Heathcliff selfish and disagreeable, if he were not so originally;
  • and my interest in him, consequently, decayed: though still I was moved
  • with a sense of grief at his lot, and a wish that he had been left with
  • us. Mr. Edgar encouraged me to gain information: he thought a great deal
  • about him, I fancy, and would have run some risk to see him; and he told
  • me once to ask the housekeeper whether he ever came into the village? She
  • said he had only been twice, on horseback, accompanying his father; and
  • both times he pretended to be quite knocked up for three or four days
  • afterwards. That housekeeper left, if I recollect rightly, two years
  • after he came; and another, whom I did not know, was her successor; she
  • lives there still.
  • Time wore on at the Grange in its former pleasant way till Miss Cathy
  • reached sixteen. On the anniversary of her birth we never manifested any
  • signs of rejoicing, because it was also the anniversary of my late
  • mistress's death. Her father invariably spent that day alone in the
  • library; and walked, at dusk, as far as Gimmerton kirkyard, where he
  • would frequently prolong his stay beyond midnight. Therefore Catherine
  • was thrown on her own resources for amusement. This twentieth of March
  • was a beautiful spring day, and when her father had retired, my young
  • lady came down dressed for going out, and said she asked to have a ramble
  • on the edge of the moor with me: Mr. Linton had given her leave, if we
  • went only a short distance and were back within the hour.
  • 'So make haste, Ellen!' she cried. 'I know where I wish to go; where a
  • colony of moor-game are settled: I want to see whether they have made
  • their nests yet.'
  • 'That must be a good distance up,' I answered; 'they don't breed on the
  • edge of the moor.'
  • 'No, it's not,' she said. 'I've gone very near with papa.'
  • I put on my bonnet and sallied out, thinking nothing more of the matter.
  • She bounded before me, and returned to my side, and was off again like a
  • young greyhound; and, at first, I found plenty of entertainment in
  • listening to the larks singing far and near, and enjoying the sweet, warm
  • sunshine; and watching her, my pet and my delight, with her golden
  • ringlets flying loose behind, and her bright cheek, as soft and pure in
  • its bloom as a wild rose, and her eyes radiant with cloudless pleasure.
  • She was a happy creature, and an angel, in those days. It's a pity she
  • could not be content.
  • 'Well,' said I, 'where are your moor-game, Miss Cathy? We should be at
  • them: the Grange park-fence is a great way off now.'
  • 'Oh, a little further--only a little further, Ellen,' was her answer,
  • continually. 'Climb to that hillock, pass that bank, and by the time you
  • reach the other side I shall have raised the birds.'
  • But there were so many hillocks and banks to climb and pass, that, at
  • length, I began to be weary, and told her we must halt, and retrace our
  • steps. I shouted to her, as she had outstripped me a long way; she
  • either did not hear or did not regard, for she still sprang on, and I was
  • compelled to follow. Finally, she dived into a hollow; and before I came
  • in sight of her again, she was two miles nearer Wuthering Heights than
  • her own home; and I beheld a couple of persons arrest her, one of whom I
  • felt convinced was Mr. Heathcliff himself.
  • Cathy had been caught in the fact of plundering, or, at least, hunting
  • out the nests of the grouse. The Heights were Heathcliff's land, and he
  • was reproving the poacher.
  • 'I've neither taken any nor found any,' she said, as I toiled to them,
  • expanding her hands in corroboration of the statement. 'I didn't mean to
  • take them; but papa told me there were quantities up here, and I wished
  • to see the eggs.'
  • Heathcliff glanced at me with an ill-meaning smile, expressing his
  • acquaintance with the party, and, consequently, his malevolence towards
  • it, and demanded who 'papa' was?
  • 'Mr. Linton of Thrushcross Grange,' she replied. 'I thought you did not
  • know me, or you wouldn't have spoken in that way.'
  • 'You suppose papa is highly esteemed and respected, then?' he said,
  • sarcastically.
  • 'And what are you?' inquired Catherine, gazing curiously on the speaker.
  • 'That man I've seen before. Is he your son?'
  • She pointed to Hareton, the other individual, who had gained nothing but
  • increased bulk and strength by the addition of two years to his age: he
  • seemed as awkward and rough as ever.
  • 'Miss Cathy,' I interrupted, 'it will be three hours instead of one that
  • we are out, presently. We really must go back.'
  • 'No, that man is not my son,' answered Heathcliff, pushing me aside. 'But
  • I have one, and you have seen him before too; and, though your nurse is
  • in a hurry, I think both you and she would be the better for a little
  • rest. Will you just turn this nab of heath, and walk into my house?
  • You'll get home earlier for the ease; and you shall receive a kind
  • welcome.'
  • I whispered Catherine that she mustn't, on any account, accede to the
  • proposal: it was entirely out of the question.
  • 'Why?' she asked, aloud. 'I'm tired of running, and the ground is dewy:
  • I can't sit here. Let us go, Ellen. Besides, he says I have seen his
  • son. He's mistaken, I think; but I guess where he lives: at the
  • farmhouse I visited in coming from Penistone Crags. Don't you?'
  • 'I do. Come, Nelly, hold your tongue--it will be a treat for her to look
  • in on us. Hareton, get forwards with the lass. You shall walk with me,
  • Nelly.'
  • 'No, she's not going to any such place,' I cried, struggling to release
  • my arm, which he had seized: but she was almost at the door-stones
  • already, scampering round the brow at full speed. Her appointed
  • companion did not pretend to escort her: he shied off by the road-side,
  • and vanished.
  • 'Mr. Heathcliff, it's very wrong,' I continued: 'you know you mean no
  • good. And there she'll see Linton, and all will be told as soon as ever
  • we return; and I shall have the blame.'
  • 'I want her to see Linton,' he answered; 'he's looking better these few
  • days; it's not often he's fit to be seen. And we'll soon persuade her to
  • keep the visit secret: where is the harm of it?'
  • 'The harm of it is, that her father would hate me if he found I suffered
  • her to enter your house; and I am convinced you have a bad design in
  • encouraging her to do so,' I replied.
  • 'My design is as honest as possible. I'll inform you of its whole
  • scope,' he said. 'That the two cousins may fall in love, and get
  • married. I'm acting generously to your master: his young chit has no
  • expectations, and should she second my wishes she'll be provided for at
  • once as joint successor with Linton.'
  • 'If Linton died,' I answered, 'and his life is quite uncertain, Catherine
  • would be the heir.'
  • 'No, she would not,' he said. 'There is no clause in the will to secure
  • it so: his property would go to me; but, to prevent disputes, I desire
  • their union, and am resolved to bring it about.'
  • 'And I'm resolved she shall never approach your house with me again,' I
  • returned, as we reached the gate, where Miss Cathy waited our coming.
  • Heathcliff bade me be quiet; and, preceding us up the path, hastened to
  • open the door. My young lady gave him several looks, as if she could not
  • exactly make up her mind what to think of him; but now he smiled when he
  • met her eye, and softened his voice in addressing her; and I was foolish
  • enough to imagine the memory of her mother might disarm him from desiring
  • her injury. Linton stood on the hearth. He had been out walking in the
  • fields, for his cap was on, and he was calling to Joseph to bring him dry
  • shoes. He had grown tall of his age, still wanting some months of
  • sixteen. His features were pretty yet, and his eye and complexion
  • brighter than I remembered them, though with merely temporary lustre
  • borrowed from the salubrious air and genial sun.
  • 'Now, who is that?' asked Mr. Heathcliff, turning to Cathy. 'Can you
  • tell?'
  • 'Your son?' she said, having doubtfully surveyed, first one and then the
  • other.
  • 'Yes, yes,' answered he: 'but is this the only time you have beheld him?
  • Think! Ah! you have a short memory. Linton, don't you recall your
  • cousin, that you used to tease us so with wishing to see?'
  • 'What, Linton!' cried Cathy, kindling into joyful surprise at the name.
  • 'Is that little Linton? He's taller than I am! Are you Linton?'
  • The youth stepped forward, and acknowledged himself: she kissed him
  • fervently, and they gazed with wonder at the change time had wrought in
  • the appearance of each. Catherine had reached her full height; her
  • figure was both plump and slender, elastic as steel, and her whole aspect
  • sparkling with health and spirits. Linton's looks and movements were
  • very languid, and his form extremely slight; but there was a grace in his
  • manner that mitigated these defects, and rendered him not unpleasing.
  • After exchanging numerous marks of fondness with him, his cousin went to
  • Mr. Heathcliff, who lingered by the door, dividing his attention between
  • the objects inside and those that lay without: pretending, that is, to
  • observe the latter, and really noting the former alone.
  • 'And you are my uncle, then!' she cried, reaching up to salute him. 'I
  • thought I liked you, though you were cross at first. Why don't you visit
  • at the Grange with Linton? To live all these years such close
  • neighbours, and never see us, is odd: what have you done so for?'
  • 'I visited it once or twice too often before you were born,' he answered.
  • 'There--damn it! If you have any kisses to spare, give them to Linton:
  • they are thrown away on me.'
  • 'Naughty Ellen!' exclaimed Catherine, flying to attack me next with her
  • lavish caresses. 'Wicked Ellen! to try to hinder me from entering. But
  • I'll take this walk every morning in future: may I, uncle? and sometimes
  • bring papa. Won't you be glad to see us?'
  • 'Of course,' replied the uncle, with a hardly suppressed grimace,
  • resulting from his deep aversion to both the proposed visitors. 'But
  • stay,' he continued, turning towards the young lady. 'Now I think of it,
  • I'd better tell you. Mr. Linton has a prejudice against me: we
  • quarrelled at one time of our lives, with unchristian ferocity; and, if
  • you mention coming here to him, he'll put a veto on your visits
  • altogether. Therefore, you must not mention it, unless you be careless
  • of seeing your cousin hereafter: you may come, if you will, but you must
  • not mention it.'
  • 'Why did you quarrel?' asked Catherine, considerably crestfallen.
  • 'He thought me too poor to wed his sister,' answered Heathcliff, 'and was
  • grieved that I got her: his pride was hurt, and he'll never forgive it.'
  • 'That's wrong!' said the young lady: 'some time I'll tell him so. But
  • Linton and I have no share in your quarrel. I'll not come here, then; he
  • shall come to the Grange.'
  • 'It will be too far for me,' murmured her cousin: 'to walk four miles
  • would kill me. No, come here, Miss Catherine, now and then: not every
  • morning, but once or twice a week.'
  • The father launched towards his son a glance of bitter contempt.
  • 'I am afraid, Nelly, I shall lose my labour,' he muttered to me. 'Miss
  • Catherine, as the ninny calls her, will discover his value, and send him
  • to the devil. Now, if it had been Hareton!--Do you know that, twenty
  • times a day, I covet Hareton, with all his degradation? I'd have loved
  • the lad had he been some one else. But I think he's safe from _her_
  • love. I'll pit him against that paltry creature, unless it bestir itself
  • briskly. We calculate it will scarcely last till it is eighteen. Oh,
  • confound the vapid thing! He's absorbed in drying his feet, and never
  • looks at her.--Linton!'
  • 'Yes, father,' answered the boy.
  • 'Have you nothing to show your cousin anywhere about, not even a rabbit
  • or a weasel's nest? Take her into the garden, before you change your
  • shoes; and into the stable to see your horse.'
  • 'Wouldn't you rather sit here?' asked Linton, addressing Cathy in a tone
  • which expressed reluctance to move again.
  • 'I don't know,' she replied, casting a longing look to the door, and
  • evidently eager to be active.
  • He kept his seat, and shrank closer to the fire. Heathcliff rose, and
  • went into the kitchen, and from thence to the yard, calling out for
  • Hareton. Hareton responded, and presently the two re-entered. The young
  • man had been washing himself, as was visible by the glow on his cheeks
  • and his wetted hair.
  • 'Oh, I'll ask _you_, uncle,' cried Miss Cathy, recollecting the
  • housekeeper's assertion. 'That is not my cousin, is he?'
  • 'Yes,' he, replied, 'your mother's nephew. Don't you like him!'
  • Catherine looked queer.
  • 'Is he not a handsome lad?' he continued.
  • The uncivil little thing stood on tiptoe, and whispered a sentence in
  • Heathcliff's ear. He laughed; Hareton darkened: I perceived he was very
  • sensitive to suspected slights, and had obviously a dim notion of his
  • inferiority. But his master or guardian chased the frown by exclaiming--
  • 'You'll be the favourite among us, Hareton! She says you are a--What was
  • it? Well, something very flattering. Here! you go with her round the
  • farm. And behave like a gentleman, mind! Don't use any bad words; and
  • don't stare when the young lady is not looking at you, and be ready to
  • hide your face when she is; and, when you speak, say your words slowly,
  • and keep your hands out of your pockets. Be off, and entertain her as
  • nicely as you can.'
  • He watched the couple walking past the window. Earnshaw had his
  • countenance completely averted from his companion. He seemed studying
  • the familiar landscape with a stranger's and an artist's interest.
  • Catherine took a sly look at him, expressing small admiration. She then
  • turned her attention to seeking out objects of amusement for herself, and
  • tripped merrily on, lilting a tune to supply the lack of conversation.
  • 'I've tied his tongue,' observed Heathcliff. 'He'll not venture a single
  • syllable all the time! Nelly, you recollect me at his age--nay, some
  • years younger. Did I ever look so stupid: so "gaumless," as Joseph calls
  • it?'
  • 'Worse,' I replied, 'because more sullen with it.'
  • 'I've a pleasure in him,' he continued, reflecting aloud. 'He has
  • satisfied my expectations. If he were a born fool I should not enjoy it
  • half so much. But he's no fool; and I can sympathise with all his
  • feelings, having felt them myself. I know what he suffers now, for
  • instance, exactly: it is merely a beginning of what he shall suffer,
  • though. And he'll never be able to emerge from his bathos of coarseness
  • and ignorance. I've got him faster than his scoundrel of a father
  • secured me, and lower; for he takes a pride in his brutishness. I've
  • taught him to scorn everything extra-animal as silly and weak. Don't you
  • think Hindley would be proud of his son, if he could see him? almost as
  • proud as I am of mine. But there's this difference; one is gold put to
  • the use of paving-stones, and the other is tin polished to ape a service
  • of silver. _Mine_ has nothing valuable about it; yet I shall have the
  • merit of making it go as far as such poor stuff can go. _His_ had
  • first-rate qualities, and they are lost: rendered worse than unavailing.
  • I have nothing to regret; he would have more than any but I are aware
  • of. And the best of it is, Hareton is damnably fond of me! You'll own
  • that I've outmatched Hindley there. If the dead villain could rise from
  • his grave to abuse me for his offspring's wrongs, I should have the fun
  • of seeing the said offspring fight him back again, indignant that he
  • should dare to rail at the one friend he has in the world!'
  • Heathcliff chuckled a fiendish laugh at the idea. I made no reply,
  • because I saw that he expected none. Meantime, our young companion, who
  • sat too removed from us to hear what was said, began to evince symptoms
  • of uneasiness, probably repenting that he had denied himself the treat of
  • Catherine's society for fear of a little fatigue. His father remarked
  • the restless glances wandering to the window, and the hand irresolutely
  • extended towards his cap.
  • 'Get up, you idle boy!' he exclaimed, with assumed heartiness.
  • 'Away after them! they are just at the corner, by the stand of hives.'
  • Linton gathered his energies, and left the hearth. The lattice was open,
  • and, as he stepped out, I heard Cathy inquiring of her unsociable
  • attendant what was that inscription over the door? Hareton stared up, and
  • scratched his head like a true clown.
  • 'It's some damnable writing,' he answered. 'I cannot read it.'
  • 'Can't read it?' cried Catherine; 'I can read it: it's English. But I
  • want to know why it is there.'
  • Linton giggled: the first appearance of mirth he had exhibited.
  • 'He does not know his letters,' he said to his cousin. 'Could you
  • believe in the existence of such a colossal dunce?'
  • 'Is he all as he should be?' asked Miss Cathy, seriously; 'or is he
  • simple: not right? I've questioned him twice now, and each time he
  • looked so stupid I think he does not understand me. I can hardly
  • understand him, I'm sure!'
  • Linton repeated his laugh, and glanced at Hareton tauntingly; who
  • certainly did not seem quite clear of comprehension at that moment.
  • 'There's nothing the matter but laziness; is there, Earnshaw?' he said.
  • 'My cousin fancies you are an idiot. There you experience the
  • consequence of scorning "book-larning," as you would say. Have you
  • noticed, Catherine, his frightful Yorkshire pronunciation?'
  • 'Why, where the devil is the use on't?' growled Hareton, more ready in
  • answering his daily companion. He was about to enlarge further, but the
  • two youngsters broke into a noisy fit of merriment: my giddy miss being
  • delighted to discover that she might turn his strange talk to matter of
  • amusement.
  • 'Where is the use of the devil in that sentence?' tittered Linton. 'Papa
  • told you not to say any bad words, and you can't open your mouth without
  • one. Do try to behave like a gentleman, now do!'
  • 'If thou weren't more a lass than a lad, I'd fell thee this minute, I
  • would; pitiful lath of a crater!' retorted the angry boor, retreating,
  • while his face burnt with mingled rage and mortification! for he was
  • conscious of being insulted, and embarrassed how to resent it.
  • Mr. Heathcliff having overheard the conversation, as well as I, smiled
  • when he saw him go; but immediately afterwards cast a look of singular
  • aversion on the flippant pair, who remained chattering in the door-way:
  • the boy finding animation enough while discussing Hareton's faults and
  • deficiencies, and relating anecdotes of his goings on; and the girl
  • relishing his pert and spiteful sayings, without considering the
  • ill-nature they evinced. I began to dislike, more than to compassionate
  • Linton, and to excuse his father in some measure for holding him cheap.
  • We stayed till afternoon: I could not tear Miss Cathy away sooner; but
  • happily my master had not quitted his apartment, and remained ignorant of
  • our prolonged absence. As we walked home, I would fain have enlightened
  • my charge on the characters of the people we had quitted: but she got it
  • into her head that I was prejudiced against them.
  • 'Aha!' she cried, 'you take papa's side, Ellen: you are partial I know;
  • or else you wouldn't have cheated me so many years into the notion that
  • Linton lived a long way from here. I'm really extremely angry; only I'm
  • so pleased I can't show it! But you must hold your tongue about _my_
  • uncle; he's my uncle, remember; and I'll scold papa for quarrelling with
  • him.'
  • And so she ran on, till I relinquished the endeavour to convince her of
  • her mistake. She did not mention the visit that night, because she did
  • not see Mr. Linton. Next day it all came out, sadly to my chagrin; and
  • still I was not altogether sorry: I thought the burden of directing and
  • warning would be more efficiently borne by him than me. But he was too
  • timid in giving satisfactory reasons for his wish that she should shun
  • connection with the household of the Heights, and Catherine liked good
  • reasons for every restraint that harassed her petted will.
  • 'Papa!' she exclaimed, after the morning's salutations, 'guess whom I saw
  • yesterday, in my walk on the moors. Ah, papa, you started! you've not
  • done right, have you, now? I saw--but listen, and you shall hear how I
  • found you out; and Ellen, who is in league with you, and yet pretended to
  • pity me so, when I kept hoping, and was always disappointed about
  • Linton's coming back!'
  • She gave a faithful account of her excursion and its consequences; and my
  • master, though he cast more than one reproachful look at me, said nothing
  • till she had concluded. Then he drew her to him, and asked if she knew
  • why he had concealed Linton's near neighbourhood from her? Could she
  • think it was to deny her a pleasure that she might harmlessly enjoy?
  • 'It was because you disliked Mr. Heathcliff,' she answered.
  • 'Then you believe I care more for my own feelings than yours, Cathy?' he
  • said. 'No, it was not because I disliked Mr. Heathcliff, but because Mr.
  • Heathcliff dislikes me; and is a most diabolical man, delighting to wrong
  • and ruin those he hates, if they give him the slightest opportunity. I
  • knew that you could not keep up an acquaintance with your cousin without
  • being brought into contact with him; and I knew he would detest you on my
  • account; so for your own good, and nothing else, I took precautions that
  • you should not see Linton again. I meant to explain this some time as
  • you grew older, and I'm sorry I delayed it.'
  • 'But Mr. Heathcliff was quite cordial, papa,' observed Catherine, not at
  • all convinced; 'and he didn't object to our seeing each other: he said I
  • might come to his house when I pleased; only I must not tell you, because
  • you had quarrelled with him, and would not forgive him for marrying aunt
  • Isabella. And you won't. _You_ are the one to be blamed: he is willing
  • to let us be friends, at least; Linton and I; and you are not.'
  • My master, perceiving that she would not take his word for her
  • uncle-in-law's evil disposition, gave a hasty sketch of his conduct to
  • Isabella, and the manner in which Wuthering Heights became his property.
  • He could not bear to discourse long upon the topic; for though he spoke
  • little of it, he still felt the same horror and detestation of his
  • ancient enemy that had occupied his heart ever since Mrs. Linton's
  • death. 'She might have been living yet, if it had not been for him!' was
  • his constant bitter reflection; and, in his eyes, Heathcliff seemed a
  • murderer. Miss Cathy--conversant with no bad deeds except her own slight
  • acts of disobedience, injustice, and passion, arising from hot temper
  • and thoughtlessness, and repented of on the day they were committed--was
  • amazed at the blackness of spirit that could brood on and cover revenge
  • for years, and deliberately prosecute its plans without a visitation of
  • remorse. She appeared so deeply impressed and shocked at this new view
  • of human nature--excluded from all her studies and all her ideas till
  • now--that Mr. Edgar deemed it unnecessary to pursue the subject. He
  • merely added: 'You will know hereafter, darling, why I wish you to avoid
  • his house and family; now return to your old employments and amusements,
  • and think no more about them.'
  • Catherine kissed her father, and sat down quietly to her lessons for a
  • couple of hours, according to custom; then she accompanied him into the
  • grounds, and the whole day passed as usual: but in the evening, when she
  • had retired to her room, and I went to help her to undress, I found her
  • crying, on her knees by the bedside.
  • 'Oh, fie, silly child!' I exclaimed. 'If you had any real griefs you'd
  • be ashamed to waste a tear on this little contrariety. You never had one
  • shadow of substantial sorrow, Miss Catherine. Suppose, for a minute,
  • that master and I were dead, and you were by yourself in the world: how
  • would you feel, then? Compare the present occasion with such an
  • affliction as that, and be thankful for the friends you have, instead of
  • coveting more.'
  • 'I'm not crying for myself, Ellen,' she answered, 'it's for him. He
  • expected to see me again to-morrow, and there he'll be so disappointed:
  • and he'll wait for me, and I sha'n't come!'
  • 'Nonsense!' said I, 'do you imagine he has thought as much of you as you
  • have of him? Hasn't he Hareton for a companion? Not one in a hundred
  • would weep at losing a relation they had just seen twice, for two
  • afternoons. Linton will conjecture how it is, and trouble himself no
  • further about you.'
  • 'But may I not write a note to tell him why I cannot come?' she asked,
  • rising to her feet. 'And just send those books I promised to lend him?
  • His books are not as nice as mine, and he wanted to have them extremely,
  • when I told him how interesting they were. May I not, Ellen?'
  • 'No, indeed! no, indeed!' replied I with decision. 'Then he would write
  • to you, and there'd never be an end of it. No, Miss Catherine, the
  • acquaintance must be dropped entirely: so papa expects, and I shall see
  • that it is done.'
  • 'But how can one little note--?' she recommenced, putting on an imploring
  • countenance.
  • 'Silence!' I interrupted. 'We'll not begin with your little notes. Get
  • into bed.'
  • She threw at me a very naughty look, so naughty that I would not kiss her
  • good-night at first: I covered her up, and shut her door, in great
  • displeasure; but, repenting half-way, I returned softly, and lo! there
  • was Miss standing at the table with a bit of blank paper before her and a
  • pencil in her hand, which she guiltily slipped out of sight on my
  • entrance.
  • 'You'll get nobody to take that, Catherine,' I said, 'if you write it;
  • and at present I shall put out your candle.'
  • I set the extinguisher on the flame, receiving as I did so a slap on my
  • hand and a petulant 'cross thing!' I then quitted her again, and she
  • drew the bolt in one of her worst, most peevish humours. The letter was
  • finished and forwarded to its destination by a milk-fetcher who came from
  • the village; but that I didn't learn till some time afterwards. Weeks
  • passed on, and Cathy recovered her temper; though she grew wondrous fond
  • of stealing off to corners by herself and often, if I came near her
  • suddenly while reading, she would start and bend over the book, evidently
  • desirous to hide it; and I detected edges of loose paper sticking out
  • beyond the leaves. She also got a trick of coming down early in the
  • morning and lingering about the kitchen, as if she were expecting the
  • arrival of something; and she had a small drawer in a cabinet in the
  • library, which she would trifle over for hours, and whose key she took
  • special care to remove when she left it.
  • One day, as she inspected this drawer, I observed that the playthings and
  • trinkets which recently formed its contents were transmuted into bits of
  • folded paper. My curiosity and suspicions were roused; I determined to
  • take a peep at her mysterious treasures; so, at night, as soon as she and
  • my master were safe upstairs, I searched, and readily found among my
  • house keys one that would fit the lock. Having opened, I emptied the
  • whole contents into my apron, and took them with me to examine at leisure
  • in my own chamber. Though I could not but suspect, I was still surprised
  • to discover that they were a mass of correspondence--daily almost, it
  • must have been--from Linton Heathcliff: answers to documents forwarded by
  • her. The earlier dated were embarrassed and short; gradually, however,
  • they expanded into copious love-letters, foolish, as the age of the
  • writer rendered natural, yet with touches here and there which I thought
  • were borrowed from a more experienced source. Some of them struck me as
  • singularly odd compounds of ardour and flatness; commencing in strong
  • feeling, and concluding in the affected, wordy style that a schoolboy
  • might use to a fancied, incorporeal sweetheart. Whether they satisfied
  • Cathy I don't know; but they appeared very worthless trash to me. After
  • turning over as many as I thought proper, I tied them in a handkerchief
  • and set them aside, relocking the vacant drawer.
  • Following her habit, my young lady descended early, and visited the
  • kitchen: I watched her go to the door, on the arrival of a certain little
  • boy; and, while the dairymaid filled his can, she tucked something into
  • his jacket pocket, and plucked something out. I went round by the
  • garden, and laid wait for the messenger; who fought valorously to defend
  • his trust, and we spilt the milk between us; but I succeeded in
  • abstracting the epistle; and, threatening serious consequences if he did
  • not look sharp home, I remained under the wall and perused Miss Cathy's
  • affectionate composition. It was more simple and more eloquent than her
  • cousin's: very pretty and very silly. I shook my head, and went
  • meditating into the house. The day being wet, she could not divert
  • herself with rambling about the park; so, at the conclusion of her
  • morning studies, she resorted to the solace of the drawer. Her father
  • sat reading at the table; and I, on purpose, had sought a bit of work in
  • some unripped fringes of the window-curtain, keeping my eye steadily
  • fixed on her proceedings. Never did any bird flying back to a plundered
  • nest, which it had left brimful of chirping young ones, express more
  • complete despair, in its anguished cries and flutterings, than she by her
  • single 'Oh!' and the change that transfigured her late happy countenance.
  • Mr. Linton looked up.
  • 'What is the matter, love? Have you hurt yourself?' he said.
  • His tone and look assured her _he_ had not been the discoverer of the
  • hoard.
  • 'No, papa!' she gasped. 'Ellen! Ellen! come up-stairs--I'm sick!'
  • I obeyed her summons, and accompanied her out.
  • 'Oh, Ellen! you have got them,' she commenced immediately, dropping on
  • her knees, when we were enclosed alone. 'Oh, give them to me, and I'll
  • never, never do so again! Don't tell papa. You have not told papa,
  • Ellen? say you have not? I've been exceedingly naughty, but I won't do
  • it any more!'
  • With a grave severity in my manner I bade her stand up.
  • 'So,' I exclaimed, 'Miss Catherine, you are tolerably far on, it seems:
  • you may well be ashamed of them! A fine bundle of trash you study in
  • your leisure hours, to be sure: why, it's good enough to be printed! And
  • what do you suppose the master will think when I display it before him? I
  • hav'n't shown it yet, but you needn't imagine I shall keep your
  • ridiculous secrets. For shame! and you must have led the way in writing
  • such absurdities: he would not have thought of beginning, I'm certain.'
  • 'I didn't! I didn't!' sobbed Cathy, fit to break her heart. 'I didn't
  • once think of loving him till--'
  • '_Loving_!' cried I, as scornfully as I could utter the word. '_Loving_!
  • Did anybody ever hear the like! I might just as well talk of loving the
  • miller who comes once a year to buy our corn. Pretty loving, indeed! and
  • both times together you have seen Linton hardly four hours in your life!
  • Now here is the babyish trash. I'm going with it to the library; and
  • we'll see what your father says to such _loving_.'
  • She sprang at her precious epistles, but I held them above my head; and
  • then she poured out further frantic entreaties that I would burn them--do
  • anything rather than show them. And being really fully as much inclined
  • to laugh as scold--for I esteemed it all girlish vanity--I at length
  • relented in a measure, and asked,--'If I consent to burn them, will you
  • promise faithfully neither to send nor receive a letter again, nor a book
  • (for I perceive you have sent him books), nor locks of hair, nor rings,
  • nor playthings?'
  • 'We don't send playthings,' cried Catherine, her pride overcoming her
  • shame.
  • 'Nor anything at all, then, my lady?' I said. 'Unless you will, here I
  • go.'
  • 'I promise, Ellen!' she cried, catching my dress. 'Oh, put them in the
  • fire, do, do!'
  • But when I proceeded to open a place with the poker the sacrifice was too
  • painful to be borne. She earnestly supplicated that I would spare her
  • one or two.
  • 'One or two, Ellen, to keep for Linton's sake!'
  • I unknotted the handkerchief, and commenced dropping them in from an
  • angle, and the flame curled up the chimney.
  • 'I will have one, you cruel wretch!' she screamed, darting her hand into
  • the fire, and drawing forth some half-consumed fragments, at the expense
  • of her fingers.
  • 'Very well--and I will have some to exhibit to papa!' I answered,
  • shaking back the rest into the bundle, and turning anew to the door.
  • She emptied her blackened pieces into the flames, and motioned me to
  • finish the immolation. It was done; I stirred up the ashes, and interred
  • them under a shovelful of coals; and she mutely, and with a sense of
  • intense injury, retired to her private apartment. I descended to tell my
  • master that the young lady's qualm of sickness was almost gone, but I
  • judged it best for her to lie down a while. She wouldn't dine; but she
  • reappeared at tea, pale, and red about the eyes, and marvellously subdued
  • in outward aspect. Next morning I answered the letter by a slip of
  • paper, inscribed, 'Master Heathcliff is requested to send no more notes
  • to Miss Linton, as she will not receive them.' And, henceforth, the
  • little boy came with vacant pockets.
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • Summer drew to an end, and early autumn: it was past Michaelmas, but the
  • harvest was late that year, and a few of our fields were still uncleared.
  • Mr. Linton and his daughter would frequently walk out among the reapers;
  • at the carrying of the last sheaves they stayed till dusk, and the
  • evening happening to be chill and damp, my master caught a bad cold, that
  • settled obstinately on his lungs, and confined him indoors throughout the
  • whole of the winter, nearly without intermission.
  • Poor Cathy, frightened from her little romance, had been considerably
  • sadder and duller since its abandonment; and her father insisted on her
  • reading less, and taking more exercise. She had his companionship no
  • longer; I esteemed it a duty to supply its lack, as much as possible,
  • with mine: an inefficient substitute; for I could only spare two or three
  • hours, from my numerous diurnal occupations, to follow her footsteps, and
  • then my society was obviously less desirable than his.
  • On an afternoon in October, or the beginning of November--a fresh watery
  • afternoon, when the turf and paths were rustling with moist, withered
  • leaves, and the cold blue sky was half hidden by clouds--dark grey
  • streamers, rapidly mounting from the west, and boding abundant rain--I
  • requested my young lady to forego her ramble, because I was certain of
  • showers. She refused; and I unwillingly donned a cloak, and took my
  • umbrella to accompany her on a stroll to the bottom of the park: a formal
  • walk which she generally affected if low-spirited--and that she
  • invariably was when Mr. Edgar had been worse than ordinary, a thing never
  • known from his confession, but guessed both by her and me from his
  • increased silence and the melancholy of his countenance. She went sadly
  • on: there was no running or bounding now, though the chill wind might
  • well have tempted her to race. And often, from the side of my eye, I
  • could detect her raising a hand, and brushing something off her cheek. I
  • gazed round for a means of diverting her thoughts. On one side of the
  • road rose a high, rough bank, where hazels and stunted oaks, with their
  • roots half exposed, held uncertain tenure: the soil was too loose for the
  • latter; and strong winds had blown some nearly horizontal. In summer
  • Miss Catherine delighted to climb along these trunks, and sit in the
  • branches, swinging twenty feet above the ground; and I, pleased with her
  • agility and her light, childish heart, still considered it proper to
  • scold every time I caught her at such an elevation, but so that she knew
  • there was no necessity for descending. From dinner to tea she would lie
  • in her breeze-rocked cradle, doing nothing except singing old songs--my
  • nursery lore--to herself, or watching the birds, joint tenants, feed and
  • entice their young ones to fly: or nestling with closed lids, half
  • thinking, half dreaming, happier than words can express.
  • 'Look, Miss!' I exclaimed, pointing to a nook under the roots of one
  • twisted tree. 'Winter is not here yet. There's a little flower up
  • yonder, the last bud from the multitude of bluebells that clouded those
  • turf steps in July with a lilac mist. Will you clamber up, and pluck it
  • to show to papa?' Cathy stared a long time at the lonely blossom
  • trembling in its earthy shelter, and replied, at length--'No, I'll not
  • touch it: but it looks melancholy, does it not, Ellen?'
  • 'Yes,' I observed, 'about as starved and suckless as you: your cheeks are
  • bloodless; let us take hold of hands and run. You're so low, I daresay I
  • shall keep up with you.'
  • 'No,' she repeated, and continued sauntering on, pausing at intervals to
  • muse over a bit of moss, or a tuft of blanched grass, or a fungus
  • spreading its bright orange among the heaps of brown foliage; and, ever
  • and anon, her hand was lifted to her averted face.
  • 'Catherine, why are you crying, love?' I asked, approaching and putting
  • my arm over her shoulder. 'You mustn't cry because papa has a cold; be
  • thankful it is nothing worse.'
  • She now put no further restraint on her tears; her breath was stifled by
  • sobs.
  • 'Oh, it will be something worse,' she said. 'And what shall I do when
  • papa and you leave me, and I am by myself? I can't forget your words,
  • Ellen; they are always in my ear. How life will be changed, how dreary
  • the world will be, when papa and you are dead.'
  • 'None can tell whether you won't die before us,' I replied. 'It's wrong
  • to anticipate evil. We'll hope there are years and years to come before
  • any of us go: master is young, and I am strong, and hardly forty-five. My
  • mother lived till eighty, a canty dame to the last. And suppose Mr.
  • Linton were spared till he saw sixty, that would be more years than you
  • have counted, Miss. And would it not be foolish to mourn a calamity
  • above twenty years beforehand?'
  • 'But Aunt Isabella was younger than papa,' she remarked, gazing up with
  • timid hope to seek further consolation.
  • 'Aunt Isabella had not you and me to nurse her,' I replied. 'She wasn't
  • as happy as Master: she hadn't as much to live for. All you need do, is
  • to wait well on your father, and cheer him by letting him see you
  • cheerful; and avoid giving him anxiety on any subject: mind that, Cathy!
  • I'll not disguise but you might kill him if you were wild and reckless,
  • and cherished a foolish, fanciful affection for the son of a person who
  • would be glad to have him in his grave; and allowed him to discover that
  • you fretted over the separation he has judged it expedient to make.'
  • 'I fret about nothing on earth except papa's illness,' answered my
  • companion. 'I care for nothing in comparison with papa. And I'll
  • never--never--oh, never, while I have my senses, do an act or say a word
  • to vex him. I love him better than myself, Ellen; and I know it by this:
  • I pray every night that I may live after him; because I would rather be
  • miserable than that he should be: that proves I love him better than
  • myself.'
  • 'Good words,' I replied. 'But deeds must prove it also; and after he is
  • well, remember you don't forget resolutions formed in the hour of fear.'
  • As we talked, we neared a door that opened on the road; and my young
  • lady, lightening into sunshine again, climbed up and seated herself on
  • the top of the wall, reaching over to gather some hips that bloomed
  • scarlet on the summit branches of the wild-rose trees shadowing the
  • highway side: the lower fruit had disappeared, but only birds could touch
  • the upper, except from Cathy's present station. In stretching to pull
  • them, her hat fell off; and as the door was locked, she proposed
  • scrambling down to recover it. I bid her be cautious lest she got a
  • fall, and she nimbly disappeared. But the return was no such easy
  • matter: the stones were smooth and neatly cemented, and the rose-bushes
  • and black-berry stragglers could yield no assistance in re-ascending. I,
  • like a fool, didn't recollect that, till I heard her laughing and
  • exclaiming--'Ellen! you'll have to fetch the key, or else I must run
  • round to the porter's lodge. I can't scale the ramparts on this side!'
  • 'Stay where you are,' I answered; 'I have my bundle of keys in my pocket:
  • perhaps I may manage to open it; if not, I'll go.'
  • Catherine amused herself with dancing to and fro before the door, while I
  • tried all the large keys in succession. I had applied the last, and
  • found that none would do; so, repeating my desire that she would remain
  • there, I was about to hurry home as fast as I could, when an approaching
  • sound arrested me. It was the trot of a horse; Cathy's dance stopped
  • also.
  • 'Who is that?' I whispered.
  • 'Ellen, I wish you could open the door,' whispered back my companion,
  • anxiously.
  • 'Ho, Miss Linton!' cried a deep voice (the rider's), 'I'm glad to meet
  • you. Don't be in haste to enter, for I have an explanation to ask and
  • obtain.'
  • 'I sha'n't speak to you, Mr. Heathcliff,' answered Catherine. 'Papa says
  • you are a wicked man, and you hate both him and me; and Ellen says the
  • same.'
  • 'That is nothing to the purpose,' said Heathcliff. (He it was.) 'I
  • don't hate my son, I suppose; and it is concerning him that I demand your
  • attention. Yes; you have cause to blush. Two or three months since,
  • were you not in the habit of writing to Linton? making love in play, eh?
  • You deserved, both of you, flogging for that! You especially, the elder;
  • and less sensitive, as it turns out. I've got your letters, and if you
  • give me any pertness I'll send them to your father. I presume you grew
  • weary of the amusement and dropped it, didn't you? Well, you dropped
  • Linton with it into a Slough of Despond. He was in earnest: in love,
  • really. As true as I live, he's dying for you; breaking his heart at
  • your fickleness: not figuratively, but actually. Though Hareton has made
  • him a standing jest for six weeks, and I have used more serious measures,
  • and attempted to frighten him out of his idiotcy, he gets worse daily;
  • and he'll be under the sod before summer, unless you restore him!'
  • 'How can you lie so glaringly to the poor child?' I called from the
  • inside. 'Pray ride on! How can you deliberately get up such paltry
  • falsehoods? Miss Cathy, I'll knock the lock off with a stone: you won't
  • believe that vile nonsense. You can feel in yourself it is impossible
  • that a person should die for love of a stranger.'
  • 'I was not aware there were eavesdroppers,' muttered the detected
  • villain. 'Worthy Mrs. Dean, I like you, but I don't like your
  • double-dealing,' he added aloud. 'How could _you_ lie so glaringly as to
  • affirm I hated the "poor child"? and invent bugbear stories to terrify
  • her from my door-stones? Catherine Linton (the very name warms me), my
  • bonny lass, I shall be from home all this week; go and see if have not
  • spoken truth: do, there's a darling! Just imagine your father in my
  • place, and Linton in yours; then think how you would value your careless
  • lover if he refused to stir a step to comfort you, when your father
  • himself entreated him; and don't, from pure stupidity, fall into the
  • same error. I swear, on my salvation, he's going to his grave, and none
  • but you can save him!'
  • The lock gave way and I issued out.
  • 'I swear Linton is dying,' repeated Heathcliff, looking hard at me. 'And
  • grief and disappointment are hastening his death. Nelly, if you won't
  • let her go, you can walk over yourself. But I shall not return till this
  • time next week; and I think your master himself would scarcely object to
  • her visiting her cousin.'
  • 'Come in,' said I, taking Cathy by the arm and half forcing her to
  • re-enter; for she lingered, viewing with troubled eyes the features of
  • the speaker, too stern to express his inward deceit.
  • He pushed his horse close, and, bending down, observed--'Miss Catherine,
  • I'll own to you that I have little patience with Linton; and Hareton and
  • Joseph have less. I'll own that he's with a harsh set. He pines for
  • kindness, as well as love; and a kind word from you would be his best
  • medicine. Don't mind Mrs. Dean's cruel cautions; but be generous, and
  • contrive to see him. He dreams of you day and night, and cannot be
  • persuaded that you don't hate him, since you neither write nor call.'
  • I closed the door, and rolled a stone to assist the loosened lock in
  • holding it; and spreading my umbrella, I drew my charge underneath: for
  • the rain began to drive through the moaning branches of the trees, and
  • warned us to avoid delay. Our hurry prevented any comment on the
  • encounter with Heathcliff, as we stretched towards home; but I divined
  • instinctively that Catherine's heart was clouded now in double darkness.
  • Her features were so sad, they did not seem hers: she evidently regarded
  • what she had heard as every syllable true.
  • The master had retired to rest before we came in. Cathy stole to his
  • room to inquire how he was; he had fallen asleep. She returned, and
  • asked me to sit with her in the library. We took our tea together; and
  • afterwards she lay down on the rug, and told me not to talk, for she was
  • weary. I got a book, and pretended to read. As soon as she supposed me
  • absorbed in my occupation, she recommenced her silent weeping: it
  • appeared, at present, her favourite diversion. I suffered her to enjoy
  • it a while; then I expostulated: deriding and ridiculing all Mr.
  • Heathcliff's assertions about his son, as if I were certain she would
  • coincide. Alas! I hadn't skill to counteract the effect his account had
  • produced: it was just what he intended.
  • 'You may be right, Ellen,' she answered; 'but I shall never feel at ease
  • till I know. And I must tell Linton it is not my fault that I don't
  • write, and convince him that I shall not change.'
  • What use were anger and protestations against her silly credulity? We
  • parted that night--hostile; but next day beheld me on the road to
  • Wuthering Heights, by the side of my wilful young mistress's pony. I
  • couldn't bear to witness her sorrow: to see her pale, dejected
  • countenance, and heavy eyes: and I yielded, in the faint hope that Linton
  • himself might prove, by his reception of us, how little of the tale was
  • founded on fact.
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • The rainy night had ushered in a misty morning--half frost, half
  • drizzle--and temporary brooks crossed our path--gurgling from the
  • uplands. My feet were thoroughly wetted; I was cross and low; exactly
  • the humour suited for making the most of these disagreeable things. We
  • entered the farm-house by the kitchen way, to ascertain whether Mr.
  • Heathcliff were really absent: because I put slight faith in his own
  • affirmation.
  • Joseph seemed sitting in a sort of elysium alone, beside a roaring fire;
  • a quart of ale on the table near him, bristling with large pieces of
  • toasted oat-cake; and his black, short pipe in his mouth. Catherine ran
  • to the hearth to warm herself. I asked if the master was in? My
  • question remained so long unanswered, that I thought the old man had
  • grown deaf, and repeated it louder.
  • 'Na--ay!' he snarled, or rather screamed through his nose. 'Na--ay! yah
  • muh goa back whear yah coom frough.'
  • 'Joseph!' cried a peevish voice, simultaneously with me, from the inner
  • room. 'How often am I to call you? There are only a few red ashes now.
  • Joseph! come this moment.'
  • Vigorous puffs, and a resolute stare into the grate, declared he had no
  • ear for this appeal. The housekeeper and Hareton were invisible; one
  • gone on an errand, and the other at his work, probably. We knew Linton's
  • tones, and entered.
  • 'Oh, I hope you'll die in a garret, starved to death!' said the boy,
  • mistaking our approach for that of his negligent attendant.
  • He stopped on observing his error: his cousin flew to him.
  • 'Is that you, Miss Linton?' he said, raising his head from the arm of the
  • great chair, in which he reclined. 'No--don't kiss me: it takes my
  • breath. Dear me! Papa said you would call,' continued he, after
  • recovering a little from Catherine's embrace; while she stood by looking
  • very contrite. 'Will you shut the door, if you please? you left it open;
  • and those--those _detestable_ creatures won't bring coals to the fire.
  • It's so cold!'
  • I stirred up the cinders, and fetched a scuttleful myself. The invalid
  • complained of being covered with ashes; but he had a tiresome cough, and
  • looked feverish and ill, so I did not rebuke his temper.
  • 'Well, Linton,' murmured Catherine, when his corrugated brow relaxed,
  • 'are you glad to see me? Can I do you any good?'
  • 'Why didn't you come before?' he asked. 'You should have come, instead
  • of writing. It tired me dreadfully writing those long letters. I'd far
  • rather have talked to you. Now, I can neither bear to talk, nor anything
  • else. I wonder where Zillah is! Will you' (looking at me) 'step into
  • the kitchen and see?'
  • I had received no thanks for my other service; and being unwilling to run
  • to and fro at his behest, I replied--'Nobody is out there but Joseph.'
  • 'I want to drink,' he exclaimed fretfully, turning away. 'Zillah is
  • constantly gadding off to Gimmerton since papa went: it's miserable! And
  • I'm obliged to come down here--they resolved never to hear me up-stairs.'
  • 'Is your father attentive to you, Master Heathcliff?' I asked, perceiving
  • Catherine to be checked in her friendly advances.
  • 'Attentive? He makes them a little more attentive at least,' he cried.
  • 'The wretches! Do you know, Miss Linton, that brute Hareton laughs at
  • me! I hate him! indeed, I hate them all: they are odious beings.'
  • Cathy began searching for some water; she lighted on a pitcher in the
  • dresser, filled a tumbler, and brought it. He bid her add a spoonful of
  • wine from a bottle on the table; and having swallowed a small portion,
  • appeared more tranquil, and said she was very kind.
  • 'And are you glad to see me?' asked she, reiterating her former question
  • and pleased to detect the faint dawn of a smile.
  • 'Yes, I am. It's something new to hear a voice like yours!' he replied.
  • 'But I have been vexed, because you wouldn't come. And papa swore it was
  • owing to me: he called me a pitiful, shuffling, worthless thing; and said
  • you despised me; and if he had been in my place, he would be more the
  • master of the Grange than your father by this time. But you don't
  • despise me, do you, Miss--?'
  • 'I wish you would say Catherine, or Cathy,' interrupted my young lady.
  • 'Despise you? No! Next to papa and Ellen, I love you better than
  • anybody living. I don't love Mr. Heathcliff, though; and I dare not come
  • when he returns: will he stay away many days?'
  • 'Not many,' answered Linton; 'but he goes on to the moors frequently,
  • since the shooting season commenced; and you might spend an hour or two
  • with me in his absence. Do say you will. I think I should not be
  • peevish with you: you'd not provoke me, and you'd always be ready to help
  • me, wouldn't you?'
  • 'Yes,' said Catherine, stroking his long soft hair: 'if I could only get
  • papa's consent, I'd spend half my time with you. Pretty Linton! I wish
  • you were my brother.'
  • 'And then you would like me as well as your father?' observed he, more
  • cheerfully. 'But papa says you would love me better than him and all the
  • world, if you were my wife; so I'd rather you were that.'
  • 'No, I should never love anybody better than papa,' she returned gravely.
  • 'And people hate their wives, sometimes; but not their sisters and
  • brothers: and if you were the latter, you would live with us, and papa
  • would be as fond of you as he is of me.'
  • Linton denied that people ever hated their wives; but Cathy affirmed they
  • did, and, in her wisdom, instanced his own father's aversion to her aunt.
  • I endeavoured to stop her thoughtless tongue. I couldn't succeed till
  • everything she knew was out. Master Heathcliff, much irritated, asserted
  • her relation was false.
  • 'Papa told me; and papa does not tell falsehoods,' she answered pertly.
  • '_My_ papa scorns yours!' cried Linton. 'He calls him a sneaking fool.'
  • 'Yours is a wicked man,' retorted Catherine; 'and you are very naughty to
  • dare to repeat what he says. He must be wicked to have made Aunt
  • Isabella leave him as she did.'
  • 'She didn't leave him,' said the boy; 'you sha'n't contradict me.'
  • 'She did,' cried my young lady.
  • 'Well, I'll tell you something!' said Linton. 'Your mother hated your
  • father: now then.'
  • 'Oh!' exclaimed Catherine, too enraged to continue.
  • 'And she loved mine,' added he.
  • 'You little liar! I hate you now!' she panted, and her face grew red
  • with passion.
  • 'She did! she did!' sang Linton, sinking into the recess of his chair,
  • and leaning back his head to enjoy the agitation of the other disputant,
  • who stood behind.
  • 'Hush, Master Heathcliff!' I said; 'that's your father's tale, too, I
  • suppose.'
  • 'It isn't: you hold your tongue!' he answered. 'She did, she did,
  • Catherine! she did, she did!'
  • Cathy, beside herself, gave the chair a violent push, and caused him to
  • fall against one arm. He was immediately seized by a suffocating cough
  • that soon ended his triumph. It lasted so long that it frightened even
  • me. As to his cousin, she wept with all her might, aghast at the
  • mischief she had done: though she said nothing. I held him till the fit
  • exhausted itself. Then he thrust me away, and leant his head down
  • silently. Catherine quelled her lamentations also, took a seat opposite,
  • and looked solemnly into the fire.
  • 'How do you feel now, Master Heathcliff?' I inquired, after waiting ten
  • minutes.
  • 'I wish _she_ felt as I do,' he replied: 'spiteful, cruel thing! Hareton
  • never touches me: he never struck me in his life. And I was better
  • to-day: and there--' his voice died in a whimper.
  • '_I_ didn't strike you!' muttered Cathy, chewing her lip to prevent
  • another burst of emotion.
  • He sighed and moaned like one under great suffering, and kept it up for a
  • quarter of an hour; on purpose to distress his cousin apparently, for
  • whenever he caught a stifled sob from her he put renewed pain and pathos
  • into the inflexions of his voice.
  • 'I'm sorry I hurt you, Linton,' she said at length, racked beyond
  • endurance. 'But I couldn't have been hurt by that little push, and I had
  • no idea that you could, either: you're not much, are you, Linton? Don't
  • let me go home thinking I've done you harm. Answer! speak to me.'
  • 'I can't speak to you,' he murmured; 'you've hurt me so that I shall lie
  • awake all night choking with this cough. If you had it you'd know what
  • it was; but _you'll_ be comfortably asleep while I'm in agony, and nobody
  • near me. I wonder how you would like to pass those fearful nights!' And
  • he began to wail aloud, for very pity of himself.
  • 'Since you are in the habit of passing dreadful nights,' I said, 'it
  • won't be Miss who spoils your ease: you'd be the same had she never come.
  • However, she shall not disturb you again; and perhaps you'll get quieter
  • when we leave you.'
  • 'Must I go?' asked Catherine dolefully, bending over him. 'Do you want
  • me to go, Linton?'
  • 'You can't alter what you've done,' he replied pettishly, shrinking from
  • her, 'unless you alter it for the worse by teasing me into a fever.'
  • 'Well, then, I must go?' she repeated.
  • 'Let me alone, at least,' said he; 'I can't bear your talking.'
  • She lingered, and resisted my persuasions to departure a tiresome while;
  • but as he neither looked up nor spoke, she finally made a movement to the
  • door, and I followed. We were recalled by a scream. Linton had slid
  • from his seat on to the hearthstone, and lay writhing in the mere
  • perverseness of an indulged plague of a child, determined to be as
  • grievous and harassing as it can. I thoroughly gauged his disposition
  • from his behaviour, and saw at once it would be folly to attempt
  • humouring him. Not so my companion: she ran back in terror, knelt down,
  • and cried, and soothed, and entreated, till he grew quiet from lack of
  • breath: by no means from compunction at distressing her.
  • 'I shall lift him on to the settle,' I said, 'and he may roll about as he
  • pleases: we can't stop to watch him. I hope you are satisfied, Miss
  • Cathy, that you are not the person to benefit him; and that his condition
  • of health is not occasioned by attachment to you. Now, then, there he
  • is! Come away: as soon as he knows there is nobody by to care for his
  • nonsense, he'll be glad to lie still.'
  • She placed a cushion under his head, and offered him some water; he
  • rejected the latter, and tossed uneasily on the former, as if it were a
  • stone or a block of wood. She tried to put it more comfortably.
  • 'I can't do with that,' he said; 'it's not high enough.'
  • Catherine brought another to lay above it.
  • 'That's too high,' murmured the provoking thing.
  • 'How must I arrange it, then?' she asked despairingly.
  • He twined himself up to her, as she half knelt by the settle, and
  • converted her shoulder into a support.
  • 'No, that won't do,' I said. 'You'll be content with the cushion, Master
  • Heathcliff. Miss has wasted too much time on you already: we cannot
  • remain five minutes longer.'
  • 'Yes, yes, we can!' replied Cathy. 'He's good and patient now. He's
  • beginning to think I shall have far greater misery than he will to-night,
  • if I believe he is the worse for my visit: and then I dare not come
  • again. Tell the truth about it, Linton; for I musn't come, if I have
  • hurt you.'
  • 'You must come, to cure me,' he answered. 'You ought to come, because
  • you have hurt me: you know you have extremely! I was not as ill when you
  • entered as I am at present--was I?'
  • 'But you've made yourself ill by crying and being in a passion.--I didn't
  • do it all,' said his cousin. 'However, we'll be friends now. And you
  • want me: you would wish to see me sometimes, really?'
  • 'I told you I did,' he replied impatiently. 'Sit on the settle and let
  • me lean on your knee. That's as mamma used to do, whole afternoons
  • together. Sit quite still and don't talk: but you may sing a song, if
  • you can sing; or you may say a nice long interesting ballad--one of those
  • you promised to teach me; or a story. I'd rather have a ballad, though:
  • begin.'
  • Catherine repeated the longest she could remember. The employment
  • pleased both mightily. Linton would have another, and after that
  • another, notwithstanding my strenuous objections; and so they went on
  • until the clock struck twelve, and we heard Hareton in the court,
  • returning for his dinner.
  • 'And to-morrow, Catherine, will you be here to-morrow?' asked young
  • Heathcliff, holding her frock as she rose reluctantly.
  • 'No,' I answered, 'nor next day neither.' She, however, gave a different
  • response evidently, for his forehead cleared as she stooped and whispered
  • in his ear.
  • 'You won't go to-morrow, recollect, Miss!' I commenced, when we were out
  • of the house. 'You are not dreaming of it, are you?'
  • She smiled.
  • 'Oh, I'll take good care,' I continued: 'I'll have that lock mended, and
  • you can escape by no way else.'
  • 'I can get over the wall,' she said laughing. 'The Grange is not a
  • prison, Ellen, and you are not my gaoler. And besides, I'm almost
  • seventeen: I'm a woman. And I'm certain Linton would recover quickly if
  • he had me to look after him. I'm older than he is, you know, and wiser:
  • less childish, am I not? And he'll soon do as I direct him, with some
  • slight coaxing. He's a pretty little darling when he's good. I'd make
  • such a pet of him, if he were mine. We should never quarrel, should we
  • after we were used to each other? Don't you like him, Ellen?'
  • 'Like him!' I exclaimed. 'The worst-tempered bit of a sickly slip that
  • ever struggled into its teens. Happily, as Mr. Heathcliff conjectured,
  • he'll not win twenty. I doubt whether he'll see spring, indeed. And
  • small loss to his family whenever he drops off. And lucky it is for us
  • that his father took him: the kinder he was treated, the more tedious and
  • selfish he'd be. I'm glad you have no chance of having him for a
  • husband, Miss Catherine.'
  • My companion waxed serious at hearing this speech. To speak of his death
  • so regardlessly wounded her feelings.
  • 'He's younger than I,' she answered, after a protracted pause of
  • meditation, 'and he ought to live the longest: he will--he must live as
  • long as I do. He's as strong now as when he first came into the north;
  • I'm positive of that. It's only a cold that ails him, the same as papa
  • has. You say papa will get better, and why shouldn't he?'
  • 'Well, well,' I cried, 'after all, we needn't trouble ourselves; for
  • listen, Miss,--and mind, I'll keep my word,--if you attempt going to
  • Wuthering Heights again, with or without me, I shall inform Mr. Linton,
  • and, unless he allow it, the intimacy with your cousin must not be
  • revived.'
  • 'It has been revived,' muttered Cathy, sulkily.
  • 'Must not be continued, then,' I said.
  • 'We'll see,' was her reply, and she set off at a gallop, leaving me to
  • toil in the rear.
  • We both reached home before our dinner-time; my master supposed we had
  • been wandering through the park, and therefore he demanded no explanation
  • of our absence. As soon as I entered I hastened to change my soaked
  • shoes and stockings; but sitting such awhile at the Heights had done the
  • mischief. On the succeeding morning I was laid up, and during three
  • weeks I remained incapacitated for attending to my duties: a calamity
  • never experienced prior to that period, and never, I am thankful to say,
  • since.
  • My little mistress behaved like an angel in coming to wait on me, and
  • cheer my solitude; the confinement brought me exceedingly low. It is
  • wearisome, to a stirring active body: but few have slighter reasons for
  • complaint than I had. The moment Catherine left Mr. Linton's room she
  • appeared at my bedside. Her day was divided between us; no amusement
  • usurped a minute: she neglected her meals, her studies, and her play; and
  • she was the fondest nurse that ever watched. She must have had a warm
  • heart, when she loved her father so, to give so much to me. I said her
  • days were divided between us; but the master retired early, and I
  • generally needed nothing after six o'clock, thus the evening was her own.
  • Poor thing! I never considered what she did with herself after tea. And
  • though frequently, when she looked in to bid me good-night, I remarked a
  • fresh colour in her cheeks and a pinkness over her slender fingers,
  • instead of fancying the line borrowed from a cold ride across the moors,
  • I laid it to the charge of a hot fire in the library.
  • CHAPTER XXIV
  • At the close of three weeks I was able to quit my chamber and move about
  • the house. And on the first occasion of my sitting up in the evening I
  • asked Catherine to read to me, because my eyes were weak. We were in the
  • library, the master having gone to bed: she consented, rather
  • unwillingly, I fancied; and imagining my sort of books did not suit her,
  • I bid her please herself in the choice of what she perused. She selected
  • one of her own favourites, and got forward steadily about an hour; then
  • came frequent questions.
  • 'Ellen, are not you tired? Hadn't you better lie down now? You'll be
  • sick, keeping up so long, Ellen.'
  • 'No, no, dear, I'm not tired,' I returned, continually.
  • Perceiving me immovable, she essayed another method of showing her
  • disrelish for her occupation. It changed to yawning, and stretching,
  • and--
  • 'Ellen, I'm tired.'
  • 'Give over then and talk,' I answered.
  • That was worse: she fretted and sighed, and looked at her watch till
  • eight, and finally went to her room, completely overdone with sleep;
  • judging by her peevish, heavy look, and the constant rubbing she
  • inflicted on her eyes. The following night she seemed more impatient
  • still; and on the third from recovering my company she complained of a
  • headache, and left me. I thought her conduct odd; and having remained
  • alone a long while, I resolved on going and inquiring whether she were
  • better, and asking her to come and lie on the sofa, instead of up-stairs
  • in the dark. No Catherine could I discover up-stairs, and none below.
  • The servants affirmed they had not seen her. I listened at Mr. Edgar's
  • door; all was silence. I returned to her apartment, extinguished my
  • candle, and seated myself in the window.
  • The moon shone bright; a sprinkling of snow covered the ground, and I
  • reflected that she might, possibly, have taken it into her head to walk
  • about the garden, for refreshment. I did detect a figure creeping along
  • the inner fence of the park; but it was not my young mistress: on its
  • emerging into the light, I recognised one of the grooms. He stood a
  • considerable period, viewing the carriage-road through the grounds; then
  • started off at a brisk pace, as if he had detected something, and
  • reappeared presently, leading Miss's pony; and there she was, just
  • dismounted, and walking by its side. The man took his charge stealthily
  • across the grass towards the stable. Cathy entered by the
  • casement-window of the drawing-room, and glided noiselessly up to where I
  • awaited her. She put the door gently too, slipped off her snowy shoes,
  • untied her hat, and was proceeding, unconscious of my espionage, to lay
  • aside her mantle, when I suddenly rose and revealed myself. The surprise
  • petrified her an instant: she uttered an inarticulate exclamation, and
  • stood fixed.
  • 'My dear Miss Catherine,' I began, too vividly impressed by her recent
  • kindness to break into a scold, 'where have you been riding out at this
  • hour? And why should you try to deceive me by telling a tale? Where
  • have you been? Speak!'
  • 'To the bottom of the park,' she stammered. 'I didn't tell a tale.'
  • 'And nowhere else?' I demanded.
  • 'No,' was the muttered reply.
  • 'Oh, Catherine!' I cried, sorrowfully. 'You know you have been doing
  • wrong, or you wouldn't be driven to uttering an untruth to me. That does
  • grieve me. I'd rather be three months ill, than hear you frame a
  • deliberate lie.'
  • She sprang forward, and bursting into tears, threw her arms round my
  • neck.
  • 'Well, Ellen, I'm so afraid of you being angry,' she said. 'Promise not
  • to be angry, and you shall know the very truth: I hate to hide it.'
  • We sat down in the window-seat; I assured her I would not scold, whatever
  • her secret might be, and I guessed it, of course; so she commenced--
  • 'I've been to Wuthering Heights, Ellen, and I've never missed going a day
  • since you fell ill; except thrice before, and twice after you left your
  • room. I gave Michael books and pictures to prepare Minny every evening,
  • and to put her back in the stable: you mustn't scold him either, mind. I
  • was at the Heights by half-past six, and generally stayed till half-past
  • eight, and then galloped home. It was not to amuse myself that I went: I
  • was often wretched all the time. Now and then I was happy: once in a
  • week perhaps. At first, I expected there would be sad work persuading
  • you to let me keep my word to Linton: for I had engaged to call again
  • next day, when we quitted him; but, as you stayed up-stairs on the
  • morrow, I escaped that trouble. While Michael was refastening the lock
  • of the park door in the afternoon, I got possession of the key, and told
  • him how my cousin wished me to visit him, because he was sick, and
  • couldn't come to the Grange; and how papa would object to my going: and
  • then I negotiated with him about the pony. He is fond of reading, and he
  • thinks of leaving soon to get married; so he offered, if I would lend him
  • books out of the library, to do what I wished: but I preferred giving him
  • my own, and that satisfied him better.
  • 'On my second visit Linton seemed in lively spirits; and Zillah (that is
  • their housekeeper) made us a clean room and a good fire, and told us
  • that, as Joseph was out at a prayer-meeting and Hareton Earnshaw was off
  • with his dogs--robbing our woods of pheasants, as I heard afterwards--we
  • might do what we liked. She brought me some warm wine and gingerbread,
  • and appeared exceedingly good-natured, and Linton sat in the arm-chair,
  • and I in the little rocking chair on the hearth-stone, and we laughed and
  • talked so merrily, and found so much to say: we planned where we would
  • go, and what we would do in summer. I needn't repeat that, because you
  • would call it silly.
  • 'One time, however, we were near quarrelling. He said the pleasantest
  • manner of spending a hot July day was lying from morning till evening on
  • a bank of heath in the middle of the moors, with the bees humming
  • dreamily about among the bloom, and the larks singing high up overhead,
  • and the blue sky and bright sun shining steadily and cloudlessly. That
  • was his most perfect idea of heaven's happiness: mine was rocking in a
  • rustling green tree, with a west wind blowing, and bright white clouds
  • flitting rapidly above; and not only larks, but throstles, and
  • blackbirds, and linnets, and cuckoos pouring out music on every side, and
  • the moors seen at a distance, broken into cool dusky dells; but close by
  • great swells of long grass undulating in waves to the breeze; and woods
  • and sounding water, and the whole world awake and wild with joy. He
  • wanted all to lie in an ecstasy of peace; I wanted all to sparkle and
  • dance in a glorious jubilee. I said his heaven would be only half alive;
  • and he said mine would be drunk: I said I should fall asleep in his; and
  • he said he could not breathe in mine, and began to grow very snappish. At
  • last, we agreed to try both, as soon as the right weather came; and then
  • we kissed each other and were friends.
  • 'After sitting still an hour, I looked at the great room with its smooth
  • uncarpeted floor, and thought how nice it would be to play in, if we
  • removed the table; and I asked Linton to call Zillah in to help us, and
  • we'd have a game at blindman's-buff; she should try to catch us: you used
  • to, you know, Ellen. He wouldn't: there was no pleasure in it, he said;
  • but he consented to play at ball with me. We found two in a cupboard,
  • among a heap of old toys, tops, and hoops, and battledores and
  • shuttlecocks. One was marked C., and the other H.; I wished to have the
  • C., because that stood for Catherine, and the H. might be for Heathcliff,
  • his name; but the bran came out of H., and Linton didn't like it. I beat
  • him constantly: and he got cross again, and coughed, and returned to his
  • chair. That night, though, he easily recovered his good humour: he was
  • charmed with two or three pretty songs--_your_ songs, Ellen; and when I
  • was obliged to go, he begged and entreated me to come the following
  • evening; and I promised. Minny and I went flying home as light as air;
  • and I dreamt of Wuthering Heights and my sweet, darling cousin, till
  • morning.
  • 'On the morrow I was sad; partly because you were poorly, and partly that
  • I wished my father knew, and approved of my excursions: but it was
  • beautiful moonlight after tea; and, as I rode on, the gloom cleared. I
  • shall have another happy evening, I thought to myself; and what delights
  • me more, my pretty Linton will. I trotted up their garden, and was
  • turning round to the back, when that fellow Earnshaw met me, took my
  • bridle, and bid me go in by the front entrance. He patted Minny's neck,
  • and said she was a bonny beast, and appeared as if he wanted me to speak
  • to him. I only told him to leave my horse alone, or else it would kick
  • him. He answered in his vulgar accent, "It wouldn't do mitch hurt if it
  • did;" and surveyed its legs with a smile. I was half inclined to make it
  • try; however, he moved off to open the door, and, as he raised the latch,
  • he looked up to the inscription above, and said, with a stupid mixture of
  • awkwardness and elation: "Miss Catherine! I can read yon, now."
  • '"Wonderful," I exclaimed. "Pray let us hear you--you _are_ grown
  • clever!"
  • 'He spelt, and drawled over by syllables, the name--"Hareton Earnshaw."
  • '"And the figures?" I cried, encouragingly, perceiving that he came to a
  • dead halt.
  • '"I cannot tell them yet," he answered.
  • '"Oh, you dunce!" I said, laughing heartily at his failure.
  • 'The fool stared, with a grin hovering about his lips, and a scowl
  • gathering over his eyes, as if uncertain whether he might not join in my
  • mirth: whether it were not pleasant familiarity, or what it really was,
  • contempt. I settled his doubts, by suddenly retrieving my gravity and
  • desiring him to walk away, for I came to see Linton, not him. He
  • reddened--I saw that by the moonlight--dropped his hand from the latch,
  • and skulked off, a picture of mortified vanity. He imagined himself to
  • be as accomplished as Linton, I suppose, because he could spell his own
  • name; and was marvellously discomfited that I didn't think the same.'
  • 'Stop, Miss Catherine, dear!'--I interrupted. 'I shall not scold, but I
  • don't like your conduct there. If you had remembered that Hareton was
  • your cousin as much as Master Heathcliff, you would have felt how
  • improper it was to behave in that way. At least, it was praiseworthy
  • ambition for him to desire to be as accomplished as Linton; and probably
  • he did not learn merely to show off: you had made him ashamed of his
  • ignorance before, I have no doubt; and he wished to remedy it and please
  • you. To sneer at his imperfect attempt was very bad breeding. Had you
  • been brought up in his circumstances, would you be less rude? He was as
  • quick and as intelligent a child as ever you were; and I'm hurt that he
  • should be despised now, because that base Heathcliff has treated him so
  • unjustly.'
  • 'Well, Ellen, you won't cry about it, will you?' she exclaimed, surprised
  • at my earnestness. 'But wait, and you shall hear if he conned his A B C
  • to please me; and if it were worth while being civil to the brute. I
  • entered; Linton was lying on the settle, and half got up to welcome me.
  • '"I'm ill to-night, Catherine, love," he said; "and you must have all the
  • talk, and let me listen. Come, and sit by me. I was sure you wouldn't
  • break your word, and I'll make you promise again, before you go."
  • 'I knew now that I mustn't tease him, as he was ill; and I spoke softly
  • and put no questions, and avoided irritating him in any way. I had
  • brought some of my nicest books for him: he asked me to read a little of
  • one, and I was about to comply, when Earnshaw burst the door open: having
  • gathered venom with reflection. He advanced direct to us, seized Linton
  • by the arm, and swung him off the seat.
  • '"Get to thy own room!" he said, in a voice almost inarticulate with
  • passion; and his face looked swelled and furious. "Take her there if she
  • comes to see thee: thou shalln't keep me out of this. Begone wi' ye
  • both!"
  • 'He swore at us, and left Linton no time to answer, nearly throwing him
  • into the kitchen; and he clenched his fist as I followed, seemingly
  • longing to knock me down. I was afraid for a moment, and I let one
  • volume fall; he kicked it after me, and shut us out. I heard a
  • malignant, crackly laugh by the fire, and turning, beheld that odious
  • Joseph standing rubbing his bony hands, and quivering.
  • '"I wer sure he'd sarve ye out! He's a grand lad! He's getten t' raight
  • sperrit in him! _He_ knaws--ay, he knaws, as weel as I do, who sud be t'
  • maister yonder--Ech, ech, ech! He made ye skift properly! Ech, ech,
  • ech!"
  • '"Where must we go?" I asked of my cousin, disregarding the old wretch's
  • mockery.
  • 'Linton was white and trembling. He was not pretty then, Ellen: oh, no!
  • he looked frightful; for his thin face and large eyes were wrought into
  • an expression of frantic, powerless fury. He grasped the handle of the
  • door, and shook it: it was fastened inside.
  • '"If you don't let me in, I'll kill you!--If you don't let me in, I'll
  • kill you!" he rather shrieked than said. "Devil! devil!--I'll kill
  • you--I'll kill you!"
  • Joseph uttered his croaking laugh again.
  • '"Thear, that's t' father!" he cried. "That's father! We've allas
  • summut o' either side in us. Niver heed, Hareton, lad--dunnut be
  • 'feard--he cannot get at thee!"
  • 'I took hold of Linton's hands, and tried to pull him away; but he
  • shrieked so shockingly that I dared not proceed. At last his cries were
  • choked by a dreadful fit of coughing; blood gushed from his mouth, and he
  • fell on the ground. I ran into the yard, sick with terror; and called
  • for Zillah, as loud as I could. She soon heard me: she was milking the
  • cows in a shed behind the barn, and hurrying from her work, she inquired
  • what there was to do? I hadn't breath to explain; dragging her in, I
  • looked about for Linton. Earnshaw had come out to examine the mischief
  • he had caused, and he was then conveying the poor thing up-stairs. Zillah
  • and I ascended after him; but he stopped me at the top of the steps, and
  • said I shouldn't go in: I must go home. I exclaimed that he had killed
  • Linton, and I _would_ enter. Joseph locked the door, and declared I
  • should do "no sich stuff," and asked me whether I were "bahn to be as mad
  • as him." I stood crying till the housekeeper reappeared. She affirmed
  • he would be better in a bit, but he couldn't do with that shrieking and
  • din; and she took me, and nearly carried me into the house.
  • 'Ellen, I was ready to tear my hair off my head! I sobbed and wept so
  • that my eyes were almost blind; and the ruffian you have such sympathy
  • with stood opposite: presuming every now and then to bid me "wisht," and
  • denying that it was his fault; and, finally, frightened by my assertions
  • that I would tell papa, and that he should be put in prison and hanged,
  • he commenced blubbering himself, and hurried out to hide his cowardly
  • agitation. Still, I was not rid of him: when at length they compelled me
  • to depart, and I had got some hundred yards off the premises, he suddenly
  • issued from the shadow of the road-side, and checked Minny and took hold
  • of me.
  • '"Miss Catherine, I'm ill grieved," he began, "but it's rayther too bad--"
  • 'I gave him a cut with my whip, thinking perhaps he would murder me. He
  • let go, thundering one of his horrid curses, and I galloped home more
  • than half out of my senses.
  • 'I didn't bid you good-night that evening, and I didn't go to Wuthering
  • Heights the next: I wished to go exceedingly; but I was strangely
  • excited, and dreaded to hear that Linton was dead, sometimes; and
  • sometimes shuddered at the thought of encountering Hareton. On the third
  • day I took courage: at least, I couldn't bear longer suspense, and stole
  • off once more. I went at five o'clock, and walked; fancying I might
  • manage to creep into the house, and up to Linton's room, unobserved.
  • However, the dogs gave notice of my approach. Zillah received me, and
  • saying "the lad was mending nicely," showed me into a small, tidy,
  • carpeted apartment, where, to my inexpressible joy, I beheld Linton laid
  • on a little sofa, reading one of my books. But he would neither speak to
  • me nor look at me, through a whole hour, Ellen: he has such an unhappy
  • temper. And what quite confounded me, when he did open his mouth, it was
  • to utter the falsehood that I had occasioned the uproar, and Hareton was
  • not to blame! Unable to reply, except passionately, I got up and walked
  • from the room. He sent after me a faint "Catherine!" He did not reckon
  • on being answered so: but I wouldn't turn back; and the morrow was the
  • second day on which I stayed at home, nearly determined to visit him no
  • more. But it was so miserable going to bed and getting up, and never
  • hearing anything about him, that my resolution melted into air before it
  • was properly formed. It had appeared wrong to take the journey once; now
  • it seemed wrong to refrain. Michael came to ask if he must saddle Minny;
  • I said "Yes," and considered myself doing a duty as she bore me over the
  • hills. I was forced to pass the front windows to get to the court: it
  • was no use trying to conceal my presence.
  • '"Young master is in the house," said Zillah, as she saw me making for
  • the parlour. I went in; Earnshaw was there also, but he quitted the room
  • directly. Linton sat in the great arm-chair half asleep; walking up to
  • the fire, I began in a serious tone, partly meaning it to be true--
  • '"As you don't like me, Linton, and as you think I come on purpose to
  • hurt you, and pretend that I do so every time, this is our last meeting:
  • let us say good-bye; and tell Mr. Heathcliff that you have no wish to see
  • me, and that he mustn't invent any more falsehoods on the subject."
  • '"Sit down and take your hat off, Catherine," he answered. "You are so
  • much happier than I am, you ought to be better. Papa talks enough of my
  • defects, and shows enough scorn of me, to make it natural I should doubt
  • myself. I doubt whether I am not altogether as worthless as he calls me,
  • frequently; and then I feel so cross and bitter, I hate everybody! I am
  • worthless, and bad in temper, and bad in spirit, almost always; and, if
  • you choose, you may say good-bye: you'll get rid of an annoyance. Only,
  • Catherine, do me this justice: believe that if I might be as sweet, and
  • as kind, and as good as you are, I would be; as willingly, and more so,
  • than as happy and as healthy. And believe that your kindness has made me
  • love you deeper than if I deserved your love: and though I couldn't, and
  • cannot help showing my nature to you, I regret it and repent it; and
  • shall regret and repent it till I die!"
  • 'I felt he spoke the truth; and I felt I must forgive him: and, though we
  • should quarrel the next moment, I must forgive him again. We were
  • reconciled; but we cried, both of us, the whole time I stayed: not
  • entirely for sorrow; yet I _was_ sorry Linton had that distorted nature.
  • He'll never let his friends be at ease, and he'll never be at ease
  • himself! I have always gone to his little parlour, since that night;
  • because his father returned the day after.
  • 'About three times, I think, we have been merry and hopeful, as we were
  • the first evening; the rest of my visits were dreary and troubled: now
  • with his selfishness and spite, and now with his sufferings: but I've
  • learned to endure the former with nearly as little resentment as the
  • latter. Mr. Heathcliff purposely avoids me: I have hardly seen him at
  • all. Last Sunday, indeed, coming earlier than usual, I heard him abusing
  • poor Linton cruelly for his conduct of the night before. I can't tell
  • how he knew of it, unless he listened. Linton had certainly behaved
  • provokingly: however, it was the business of nobody but me, and I
  • interrupted Mr. Heathcliff's lecture by entering and telling him so. He
  • burst into a laugh, and went away, saying he was glad I took that view of
  • the matter. Since then, I've told Linton he must whisper his bitter
  • things. Now, Ellen, you have heard all. I can't be prevented from going
  • to Wuthering Heights, except by inflicting misery on two people; whereas,
  • if you'll only not tell papa, my going need disturb the tranquillity of
  • none. You'll not tell, will you? It will be very heartless, if you do.'
  • 'I'll make up my mind on that point by to-morrow, Miss Catherine,' I
  • replied. 'It requires some study; and so I'll leave you to your rest,
  • and go think it over.'
  • I thought it over aloud, in my master's presence; walking straight from
  • her room to his, and relating the whole story: with the exception of her
  • conversations with her cousin, and any mention of Hareton. Mr. Linton
  • was alarmed and distressed, more than he would acknowledge to me. In the
  • morning, Catherine learnt my betrayal of her confidence, and she learnt
  • also that her secret visits were to end. In vain she wept and writhed
  • against the interdict, and implored her father to have pity on Linton:
  • all she got to comfort her was a promise that he would write and give him
  • leave to come to the Grange when he pleased; but explaining that he must
  • no longer expect to see Catherine at Wuthering Heights. Perhaps, had he
  • been aware of his nephew's disposition and state of health, he would have
  • seen fit to withhold even that slight consolation.
  • CHAPTER XXV
  • 'These things happened last winter, sir,' said Mrs. Dean; 'hardly more
  • than a year ago. Last winter, I did not think, at another twelve months'
  • end, I should be amusing a stranger to the family with relating them!
  • Yet, who knows how long you'll be a stranger? You're too young to rest
  • always contented, living by yourself; and I some way fancy no one could
  • see Catherine Linton and not love her. You smile; but why do you look so
  • lively and interested when I talk about her? and why have you asked me to
  • hang her picture over your fireplace? and why--?'
  • 'Stop, my good friend!' I cried. 'It may be very possible that _I_
  • should love her; but would she love me? I doubt it too much to venture
  • my tranquillity by running into temptation: and then my home is not here.
  • I'm of the busy world, and to its arms I must return. Go on. Was
  • Catherine obedient to her father's commands?'
  • 'She was,' continued the housekeeper. 'Her affection for him was still
  • the chief sentiment in her heart; and he spoke without anger: he spoke in
  • the deep tenderness of one about to leave his treasure amid perils and
  • foes, where his remembered words would be the only aid that he could
  • bequeath to guide her. He said to me, a few days afterwards, "I wish my
  • nephew would write, Ellen, or call. Tell me, sincerely, what you think
  • of him: is he changed for the better, or is there a prospect of
  • improvement, as he grows a man?"
  • '"He's very delicate, sir," I replied; "and scarcely likely to reach
  • manhood: but this I can say, he does not resemble his father; and if Miss
  • Catherine had the misfortune to marry him, he would not be beyond her
  • control: unless she were extremely and foolishly indulgent. However,
  • master, you'll have plenty of time to get acquainted with him and see
  • whether he would suit her: it wants four years and more to his being of
  • age."'
  • Edgar sighed; and, walking to the window, looked out towards Gimmerton
  • Kirk. It was a misty afternoon, but the February sun shone dimly, and we
  • could just distinguish the two fir-trees in the yard, and the
  • sparely-scattered gravestones.
  • 'I've prayed often,' he half soliloquised, 'for the approach of what is
  • coming; and now I begin to shrink, and fear it. I thought the memory of
  • the hour I came down that glen a bridegroom would be less sweet than the
  • anticipation that I was soon, in a few months, or, possibly, weeks, to be
  • carried up, and laid in its lonely hollow! Ellen, I've been very happy
  • with my little Cathy: through winter nights and summer days she was a
  • living hope at my side. But I've been as happy musing by myself among
  • those stones, under that old church: lying, through the long June
  • evenings, on the green mound of her mother's grave, and wishing--yearning
  • for the time when I might lie beneath it. What can I do for Cathy? How
  • must I quit her? I'd not care one moment for Linton being Heathcliff's
  • son; nor for his taking her from me, if he could console her for my loss.
  • I'd not care that Heathcliff gained his ends, and triumphed in robbing me
  • of my last blessing! But should Linton be unworthy--only a feeble tool
  • to his father--I cannot abandon her to him! And, hard though it be to
  • crush her buoyant spirit, I must persevere in making her sad while I
  • live, and leaving her solitary when I die. Darling! I'd rather resign
  • her to God, and lay her in the earth before me.'
  • 'Resign her to God as it is, sir,' I answered, 'and if we should lose
  • you--which may He forbid--under His providence, I'll stand her friend and
  • counsellor to the last. Miss Catherine is a good girl: I don't fear that
  • she will go wilfully wrong; and people who do their duty are always
  • finally rewarded.'
  • Spring advanced; yet my master gathered no real strength, though he
  • resumed his walks in the grounds with his daughter. To her inexperienced
  • notions, this itself was a sign of convalescence; and then his cheek was
  • often flushed, and his eyes were bright; she felt sure of his recovering.
  • On her seventeenth birthday, he did not visit the churchyard: it was
  • raining, and I observed--'You'll surely not go out to-night, sir?'
  • He answered,--'No, I'll defer it this year a little longer.' He wrote
  • again to Linton, expressing his great desire to see him; and, had the
  • invalid been presentable, I've no doubt his father would have permitted
  • him to come. As it was, being instructed, he returned an answer,
  • intimating that Mr. Heathcliff objected to his calling at the Grange; but
  • his uncle's kind remembrance delighted him, and he hoped to meet him
  • sometimes in his rambles, and personally to petition that his cousin and
  • he might not remain long so utterly divided.
  • That part of his letter was simple, and probably his own. Heathcliff
  • knew he could plead eloquently for Catherine's company, then.
  • 'I do not ask,' he said, 'that she may visit here; but am I never to see
  • her, because my father forbids me to go to her home, and you forbid her
  • to come to mine? Do, now and then, ride with her towards the Heights;
  • and let us exchange a few words, in your presence! We have done nothing
  • to deserve this separation; and you are not angry with me: you have no
  • reason to dislike me, you allow, yourself. Dear uncle! send me a kind
  • note to-morrow, and leave to join you anywhere you please, except at
  • Thrushcross Grange. I believe an interview would convince you that my
  • father's character is not mine: he affirms I am more your nephew than his
  • son; and though I have faults which render me unworthy of Catherine, she
  • has excused them, and for her sake, you should also. You inquire after
  • my health--it is better; but while I remain cut off from all hope, and
  • doomed to solitude, or the society of those who never did and never will
  • like me, how can I be cheerful and well?'
  • Edgar, though he felt for the boy, could not consent to grant his
  • request; because he could not accompany Catherine. He said, in summer,
  • perhaps, they might meet: meantime, he wished him to continue writing at
  • intervals, and engaged to give him what advice and comfort he was able by
  • letter; being well aware of his hard position in his family. Linton
  • complied; and had he been unrestrained, would probably have spoiled all
  • by filling his epistles with complaints and lamentations: but his father
  • kept a sharp watch over him; and, of course, insisted on every line that
  • my master sent being shown; so, instead of penning his peculiar personal
  • sufferings and distresses, the themes constantly uppermost in his
  • thoughts, he harped on the cruel obligation of being held asunder from
  • his friend and love; and gently intimated that Mr. Linton must allow an
  • interview soon, or he should fear he was purposely deceiving him with
  • empty promises.
  • Cathy was a powerful ally at home; and between them they at length
  • persuaded my master to acquiesce in their having a ride or a walk
  • together about once a week, under my guardianship, and on the moors
  • nearest the Grange: for June found him still declining. Though he had
  • set aside yearly a portion of his income for my young lady's fortune, he
  • had a natural desire that she might retain--or at least return in a short
  • time to--the house of her ancestors; and he considered her only prospect
  • of doing that was by a union with his heir; he had no idea that the
  • latter was failing almost as fast as himself; nor had any one, I believe:
  • no doctor visited the Heights, and no one saw Master Heathcliff to make
  • report of his condition among us. I, for my part, began to fancy my
  • forebodings were false, and that he must be actually rallying, when he
  • mentioned riding and walking on the moors, and seemed so earnest in
  • pursuing his object. I could not picture a father treating a dying child
  • as tyrannically and wickedly as I afterwards learned Heathcliff had
  • treated him, to compel this apparent eagerness: his efforts redoubling
  • the more imminently his avaricious and unfeeling plans were threatened
  • with defeat by death.
  • CHAPTER XXVI
  • Summer was already past its prime, when Edgar reluctantly yielded his
  • assent to their entreaties, and Catherine and I set out on our first ride
  • to join her cousin. It was a close, sultry day: devoid of sunshine, but
  • with a sky too dappled and hazy to threaten rain: and our place of
  • meeting had been fixed at the guide-stone, by the cross-roads. On
  • arriving there, however, a little herd-boy, despatched as a messenger,
  • told us that,--'Maister Linton wer just o' this side th' Heights: and
  • he'd be mitch obleeged to us to gang on a bit further.'
  • 'Then Master Linton has forgot the first injunction of his uncle,' I
  • observed: 'he bid us keep on the Grange land, and here we are off at
  • once.'
  • 'Well, we'll turn our horses' heads round when we reach him,' answered my
  • companion; 'our excursion shall lie towards home.'
  • But when we reached him, and that was scarcely a quarter of a mile from
  • his own door, we found he had no horse; and we were forced to dismount,
  • and leave ours to graze. He lay on the heath, awaiting our approach, and
  • did not rise till we came within a few yards. Then he walked so feebly,
  • and looked so pale, that I immediately exclaimed,--'Why, Master
  • Heathcliff, you are not fit for enjoying a ramble this morning. How ill
  • you do look!'
  • Catherine surveyed him with grief and astonishment: she changed the
  • ejaculation of joy on her lips to one of alarm; and the congratulation on
  • their long-postponed meeting to an anxious inquiry, whether he were worse
  • than usual?
  • 'No--better--better!' he panted, trembling, and retaining her hand as if
  • he needed its support, while his large blue eyes wandered timidly over
  • her; the hollowness round them transforming to haggard wildness the
  • languid expression they once possessed.
  • 'But you have been worse,' persisted his cousin; 'worse than when I saw
  • you last; you are thinner, and--'
  • 'I'm tired,' he interrupted, hurriedly. 'It is too hot for walking, let
  • us rest here. And, in the morning, I often feel sick--papa says I grow
  • so fast.'
  • Badly satisfied, Cathy sat down, and he reclined beside her.
  • 'This is something like your paradise,' said she, making an effort at
  • cheerfulness. 'You recollect the two days we agreed to spend in the
  • place and way each thought pleasantest? This is nearly yours, only there
  • are clouds; but then they are so soft and mellow: it is nicer than
  • sunshine. Next week, if you can, we'll ride down to the Grange Park, and
  • try mine.'
  • Linton did not appear to remember what she talked of and he had evidently
  • great difficulty in sustaining any kind of conversation. His lack of
  • interest in the subjects she started, and his equal incapacity to
  • contribute to her entertainment, were so obvious that she could not
  • conceal her disappointment. An indefinite alteration had come over his
  • whole person and manner. The pettishness that might be caressed into
  • fondness, had yielded to a listless apathy; there was less of the peevish
  • temper of a child which frets and teases on purpose to be soothed, and
  • more of the self-absorbed moroseness of a confirmed invalid, repelling
  • consolation, and ready to regard the good-humoured mirth of others as an
  • insult. Catherine perceived, as well as I did, that he held it rather a
  • punishment, than a gratification, to endure our company; and she made no
  • scruple of proposing, presently, to depart. That proposal, unexpectedly,
  • roused Linton from his lethargy, and threw him into a strange state of
  • agitation. He glanced fearfully towards the Heights, begging she would
  • remain another half-hour, at least.
  • 'But I think,' said Cathy, 'you'd be more comfortable at home than
  • sitting here; and I cannot amuse you to-day, I see, by my tales, and
  • songs, and chatter: you have grown wiser than I, in these six months; you
  • have little taste for my diversions now: or else, if I could amuse you,
  • I'd willingly stay.'
  • 'Stay to rest yourself,' he replied. 'And, Catherine, don't think or say
  • that I'm _very_ unwell: it is the heavy weather and heat that make me
  • dull; and I walked about, before you came, a great deal for me. Tell
  • uncle I'm in tolerable health, will you?'
  • 'I'll tell him that _you_ say so, Linton. I couldn't affirm that you
  • are,' observed my young lady, wondering at his pertinacious assertion of
  • what was evidently an untruth.
  • 'And be here again next Thursday,' continued he, shunning her puzzled
  • gaze. 'And give him my thanks for permitting you to come--my best
  • thanks, Catherine. And--and, if you _did_ meet my father, and he asked
  • you about me, don't lead him to suppose that I've been extremely silent
  • and stupid: don't look sad and downcast, as you are doing--he'll be
  • angry.'
  • 'I care nothing for his anger,' exclaimed Cathy, imagining she would be
  • its object.
  • 'But I do,' said her cousin, shuddering. '_Don't_ provoke him against
  • me, Catherine, for he is very hard.'
  • 'Is he severe to you, Master Heathcliff?' I inquired. 'Has he grown
  • weary of indulgence, and passed from passive to active hatred?'
  • Linton looked at me, but did not answer; and, after keeping her seat by
  • his side another ten minutes, during which his head fell drowsily on his
  • breast, and he uttered nothing except suppressed moans of exhaustion or
  • pain, Cathy began to seek solace in looking for bilberries, and sharing
  • the produce of her researches with me: she did not offer them to him, for
  • she saw further notice would only weary and annoy.
  • 'Is it half-an-hour now, Ellen?' she whispered in my ear, at last. 'I
  • can't tell why we should stay. He's asleep, and papa will be wanting us
  • back.'
  • 'Well, we must not leave him asleep,' I answered; 'wait till he wakes,
  • and be patient. You were mighty eager to set off, but your longing to
  • see poor Linton has soon evaporated!'
  • 'Why did _he_ wish to see me?' returned Catherine. 'In his crossest
  • humours, formerly, I liked him better than I do in his present curious
  • mood. It's just as if it were a task he was compelled to perform--this
  • interview--for fear his father should scold him. But I'm hardly going to
  • come to give Mr. Heathcliff pleasure; whatever reason he may have for
  • ordering Linton to undergo this penance. And, though I'm glad he's
  • better in health, I'm sorry he's so much less pleasant, and so much less
  • affectionate to me.'
  • 'You think _he is_ better in health, then?' I said.
  • 'Yes,' she answered; 'because he always made such a great deal of his
  • sufferings, you know. He is not tolerably well, as he told me to tell
  • papa; but he's better, very likely.'
  • 'There you differ with me, Miss Cathy,' I remarked; 'I should conjecture
  • him to be far worse.'
  • Linton here started from his slumber in bewildered terror, and asked if
  • any one had called his name.
  • 'No,' said Catherine; 'unless in dreams. I cannot conceive how you
  • manage to doze out of doors, in the morning.'
  • 'I thought I heard my father,' he gasped, glancing up to the frowning nab
  • above us. 'You are sure nobody spoke?'
  • 'Quite sure,' replied his cousin. 'Only Ellen and I were disputing
  • concerning your health. Are you truly stronger, Linton, than when we
  • separated in winter? If you be, I'm certain one thing is not
  • stronger--your regard for me: speak,--are you?'
  • The tears gushed from Linton's eyes as he answered, 'Yes, yes, I am!'
  • And, still under the spell of the imaginary voice, his gaze wandered up
  • and down to detect its owner.
  • Cathy rose. 'For to-day we must part,' she said. 'And I won't conceal
  • that I have been sadly disappointed with our meeting; though I'll mention
  • it to nobody but you: not that I stand in awe of Mr. Heathcliff.'
  • 'Hush,' murmured Linton; 'for God's sake, hush! He's coming.' And he
  • clung to Catherine's arm, striving to detain her; but at that
  • announcement she hastily disengaged herself, and whistled to Minny, who
  • obeyed her like a dog.
  • 'I'll be here next Thursday,' she cried, springing to the saddle.
  • 'Good-bye. Quick, Ellen!'
  • And so we left him, scarcely conscious of our departure, so absorbed was
  • he in anticipating his father's approach.
  • Before we reached home, Catherine's displeasure softened into a perplexed
  • sensation of pity and regret, largely blended with vague, uneasy doubts
  • about Linton's actual circumstances, physical and social: in which I
  • partook, though I counselled her not to say much; for a second journey
  • would make us better judges. My master requested an account of our
  • ongoings. His nephew's offering of thanks was duly delivered, Miss Cathy
  • gently touching on the rest: I also threw little light on his inquiries,
  • for I hardly knew what to hide and what to reveal.
  • CHAPTER XXVII
  • Seven days glided away, every one marking its course by the henceforth
  • rapid alteration of Edgar Linton's state. The havoc that months had
  • previously wrought was now emulated by the inroads of hours. Catherine
  • we would fain have deluded yet; but her own quick spirit refused to
  • delude her: it divined in secret, and brooded on the dreadful
  • probability, gradually ripening into certainty. She had not the heart to
  • mention her ride, when Thursday came round; I mentioned it for her, and
  • obtained permission to order her out of doors: for the library, where her
  • father stopped a short time daily--the brief period he could bear to sit
  • up--and his chamber, had become her whole world. She grudged each moment
  • that did not find her bending over his pillow, or seated by his side. Her
  • countenance grew wan with watching and sorrow, and my master gladly
  • dismissed her to what he flattered himself would be a happy change of
  • scene and society; drawing comfort from the hope that she would not now
  • be left entirely alone after his death.
  • He had a fixed idea, I guessed by several observations he let fall, that,
  • as his nephew resembled him in person, he would resemble him in mind; for
  • Linton's letters bore few or no indications of his defective character.
  • And I, through pardonable weakness, refrained from correcting the error;
  • asking myself what good there would be in disturbing his last moments
  • with information that he had neither power nor opportunity to turn to
  • account.
  • We deferred our excursion till the afternoon; a golden afternoon of
  • August: every breath from the hills so full of life, that it seemed
  • whoever respired it, though dying, might revive. Catherine's face was
  • just like the landscape--shadows and sunshine flitting over it in rapid
  • succession; but the shadows rested longer, and the sunshine was more
  • transient; and her poor little heart reproached itself for even that
  • passing forgetfulness of its cares.
  • We discerned Linton watching at the same spot he had selected before. My
  • young mistress alighted, and told me that, as she was resolved to stay a
  • very little while, I had better hold the pony and remain on horseback;
  • but I dissented: I wouldn't risk losing sight of the charge committed to
  • me a minute; so we climbed the slope of heath together. Master
  • Heathcliff received us with greater animation on this occasion: not the
  • animation of high spirits though, nor yet of joy; it looked more like
  • fear.
  • 'It is late!' he said, speaking short and with difficulty. 'Is not your
  • father very ill? I thought you wouldn't come.'
  • '_Why_ won't you be candid?' cried Catherine, swallowing her greeting.
  • 'Why cannot you say at once you don't want me? It is strange, Linton,
  • that for the second time you have brought me here on purpose, apparently
  • to distress us both, and for no reason besides!'
  • Linton shivered, and glanced at her, half supplicating, half ashamed; but
  • his cousin's patience was not sufficient to endure this enigmatical
  • behaviour.
  • 'My father _is_ very ill,' she said; 'and why am I called from his
  • bedside? Why didn't you send to absolve me from my promise, when you
  • wished I wouldn't keep it? Come! I desire an explanation: playing and
  • trifling are completely banished out of my mind; and I can't dance
  • attendance on your affectations now!'
  • 'My affectations!' he murmured; 'what are they? For heaven's sake,
  • Catherine, don't look so angry! Despise me as much as you please; I am a
  • worthless, cowardly wretch: I can't be scorned enough; but I'm too mean
  • for your anger. Hate my father, and spare me for contempt.'
  • 'Nonsense!' cried Catherine in a passion. 'Foolish, silly boy! And
  • there! he trembles: as if I were really going to touch him! You needn't
  • bespeak contempt, Linton: anybody will have it spontaneously at your
  • service. Get off! I shall return home: it is folly dragging you from
  • the hearth-stone, and pretending--what do we pretend? Let go my frock!
  • If I pitied you for crying and looking so very frightened, you should
  • spurn such pity. Ellen, tell him how disgraceful this conduct is. Rise,
  • and don't degrade yourself into an abject reptile--_don't_!'
  • With streaming face and an expression of agony, Linton had thrown his
  • nerveless frame along the ground: he seemed convulsed with exquisite
  • terror.
  • 'Oh!' he sobbed, 'I cannot bear it! Catherine, Catherine, I'm a traitor,
  • too, and I dare not tell you! But leave me, and I shall be killed!
  • _Dear_ Catherine, my life is in your hands: and you have said you loved
  • me, and if you did, it wouldn't harm you. You'll not go, then? kind,
  • sweet, good Catherine! And perhaps you _will_ consent--and he'll let me
  • die with you!'
  • My young lady, on witnessing his intense anguish, stooped to raise him.
  • The old feeling of indulgent tenderness overcame her vexation, and she
  • grew thoroughly moved and alarmed.
  • 'Consent to what?' she asked. 'To stay! tell me the meaning of this
  • strange talk, and I will. You contradict your own words, and distract
  • me! Be calm and frank, and confess at once all that weighs on your
  • heart. You wouldn't injure me, Linton, would you? You wouldn't let any
  • enemy hurt me, if you could prevent it? I'll believe you are a coward,
  • for yourself, but not a cowardly betrayer of your best friend.'
  • 'But my father threatened me,' gasped the boy, clasping his attenuated
  • fingers, 'and I dread him--I dread him! I _dare_ not tell!'
  • 'Oh, well!' said Catherine, with scornful compassion, 'keep your secret:
  • _I'm_ no coward. Save yourself: I'm not afraid!'
  • Her magnanimity provoked his tears: he wept wildly, kissing her
  • supporting hands, and yet could not summon courage to speak out. I was
  • cogitating what the mystery might be, and determined Catherine should
  • never suffer to benefit him or any one else, by my good will; when,
  • hearing a rustle among the ling, I looked up and saw Mr. Heathcliff
  • almost close upon us, descending the Heights. He didn't cast a glance
  • towards my companions, though they were sufficiently near for Linton's
  • sobs to be audible; but hailing me in the almost hearty tone he assumed
  • to none besides, and the sincerity of which I couldn't avoid doubting, he
  • said--
  • 'It is something to see you so near to my house, Nelly. How are you at
  • the Grange? Let us hear. The rumour goes,' he added, in a lower tone,
  • 'that Edgar Linton is on his death-bed: perhaps they exaggerate his
  • illness?'
  • 'No; my master is dying,' I replied: 'it is true enough. A sad thing it
  • will be for us all, but a blessing for him!'
  • 'How long will he last, do you think?' he asked.
  • 'I don't know,' I said.
  • 'Because,' he continued, looking at the two young people, who were fixed
  • under his eye--Linton appeared as if he could not venture to stir or
  • raise his head, and Catherine could not move, on his account--'because
  • that lad yonder seems determined to beat me; and I'd thank his uncle to
  • be quick, and go before him! Hallo! has the whelp been playing that game
  • long? I _did_ give him some lessons about snivelling. Is he pretty
  • lively with Miss Linton generally?'
  • 'Lively? no--he has shown the greatest distress,' I answered. 'To see
  • him, I should say, that instead of rambling with his sweetheart on the
  • hills, he ought to be in bed, under the hands of a doctor.'
  • 'He shall be, in a day or two,' muttered Heathcliff. 'But first--get up,
  • Linton! Get up!' he shouted. 'Don't grovel on the ground there up, this
  • moment!'
  • Linton had sunk prostrate again in another paroxysm of helpless fear,
  • caused by his father's glance towards him, I suppose: there was nothing
  • else to produce such humiliation. He made several efforts to obey, but
  • his little strength was annihilated for the time, and he fell back again
  • with a moan. Mr. Heathcliff advanced, and lifted him to lean against a
  • ridge of turf.
  • 'Now,' said he, with curbed ferocity, 'I'm getting angry and if you don't
  • command that paltry spirit of yours--_damn_ you! get up directly!'
  • 'I will, father,' he panted. 'Only, let me alone, or I shall faint. I've
  • done as you wished, I'm sure. Catherine will tell you that I--that
  • I--have been cheerful. Ah! keep by me, Catherine; give me your hand.'
  • 'Take mine,' said his father; 'stand on your feet. There now--she'll
  • lend you her arm: that's right, look at her. You would imagine I was the
  • devil himself, Miss Linton, to excite such horror. Be so kind as to walk
  • home with him, will you? He shudders if I touch him.'
  • 'Linton dear!' whispered Catherine, 'I can't go to Wuthering Heights:
  • papa has forbidden me. He'll not harm you: why are you so afraid?'
  • 'I can never re-enter that house,' he answered. 'I'm _not_ to re-enter
  • it without you!'
  • 'Stop!' cried his father. 'We'll respect Catherine's filial scruples.
  • Nelly, take him in, and I'll follow your advice concerning the doctor,
  • without delay.'
  • 'You'll do well,' replied I. 'But I must remain with my mistress: to
  • mind your son is not my business.'
  • 'You are very stiff,' said Heathcliff, 'I know that: but you'll force me
  • to pinch the baby and make it scream before it moves your charity. Come,
  • then, my hero. Are you willing to return, escorted by me?'
  • He approached once more, and made as if he would seize the fragile being;
  • but, shrinking back, Linton clung to his cousin, and implored her to
  • accompany him, with a frantic importunity that admitted no denial.
  • However I disapproved, I couldn't hinder her: indeed, how could she have
  • refused him herself? What was filling him with dread we had no means of
  • discerning; but there he was, powerless under its grip, and any addition
  • seemed capable of shocking him into idiotcy. We reached the threshold;
  • Catherine walked in, and I stood waiting till she had conducted the
  • invalid to a chair, expecting her out immediately; when Mr. Heathcliff,
  • pushing me forward, exclaimed--'My house is not stricken with the plague,
  • Nelly; and I have a mind to be hospitable to-day: sit down, and allow me
  • to shut the door.'
  • He shut and locked it also. I started.
  • 'You shall have tea before you go home,' he added. 'I am by myself.
  • Hareton is gone with some cattle to the Lees, and Zillah and Joseph are
  • off on a journey of pleasure; and, though I'm used to being alone, I'd
  • rather have some interesting company, if I can get it. Miss Linton, take
  • your seat by _him_. I give you what I have: the present is hardly worth
  • accepting; but I have nothing else to offer. It is Linton, I mean. How
  • she does stare! It's odd what a savage feeling I have to anything that
  • seems afraid of me! Had I been born where laws are less strict and
  • tastes less dainty, I should treat myself to a slow vivisection of those
  • two, as an evening's amusement.'
  • He drew in his breath, struck the table, and swore to himself, 'By hell!
  • I hate them.'
  • 'I am not afraid of you!' exclaimed Catherine, who could not hear the
  • latter part of his speech. She stepped close up; her black eyes flashing
  • with passion and resolution. 'Give me that key: I will have it!' she
  • said. 'I wouldn't eat or drink here, if I were starving.'
  • Heathcliff had the key in his hand that remained on the table. He looked
  • up, seized with a sort of surprise at her boldness; or, possibly,
  • reminded, by her voice and glance, of the person from whom she inherited
  • it. She snatched at the instrument, and half succeeded in getting it out
  • of his loosened fingers: but her action recalled him to the present; he
  • recovered it speedily.
  • 'Now, Catherine Linton,' he said, 'stand off, or I shall knock you down;
  • and, that will make Mrs. Dean mad.'
  • Regardless of this warning, she captured his closed hand and its contents
  • again. 'We _will_ go!' she repeated, exerting her utmost efforts to cause
  • the iron muscles to relax; and finding that her nails made no impression,
  • she applied her teeth pretty sharply. Heathcliff glanced at me a glance
  • that kept me from interfering a moment. Catherine was too intent on his
  • fingers to notice his face. He opened them suddenly, and resigned the
  • object of dispute; but, ere she had well secured it, he seized her with
  • the liberated hand, and, pulling her on his knee, administered with the
  • other a shower of terrific slaps on both sides of the head, each
  • sufficient to have fulfilled his threat, had she been able to fall.
  • At this diabolical violence I rushed on him furiously. 'You villain!' I
  • began to cry, 'you villain!' A touch on the chest silenced me: I am
  • stout, and soon put out of breath; and, what with that and the rage, I
  • staggered dizzily back and felt ready to suffocate, or to burst a
  • blood-vessel. The scene was over in two minutes; Catherine, released,
  • put her two hands to her temples, and looked just as if she were not
  • sure whether her ears were off or on. She trembled like a reed, poor
  • thing, and leant against the table perfectly bewildered.
  • 'I know how to chastise children, you see,' said the scoundrel, grimly,
  • as he stooped to repossess himself of the key, which had dropped to the
  • floor. 'Go to Linton now, as I told you; and cry at your ease! I shall
  • be your father, to-morrow--all the father you'll have in a few days--and
  • you shall have plenty of that. You can bear plenty; you're no weakling:
  • you shall have a daily taste, if I catch such a devil of a temper in your
  • eyes again!'
  • Cathy ran to me instead of Linton, and knelt down and put her burning
  • cheek on my lap, weeping aloud. Her cousin had shrunk into a corner of
  • the settle, as quiet as a mouse, congratulating himself, I dare say, that
  • the correction had alighted on another than him. Mr. Heathcliff,
  • perceiving us all confounded, rose, and expeditiously made the tea
  • himself. The cups and saucers were laid ready. He poured it out, and
  • handed me a cup.
  • 'Wash away your spleen,' he said. 'And help your own naughty pet and
  • mine. It is not poisoned, though I prepared it. I'm going out to seek
  • your horses.'
  • Our first thought, on his departure, was to force an exit somewhere. We
  • tried the kitchen door, but that was fastened outside: we looked at the
  • windows--they were too narrow for even Cathy's little figure.
  • 'Master Linton,' I cried, seeing we were regularly imprisoned, 'you know
  • what your diabolical father is after, and you shall tell us, or I'll box
  • your ears, as he has done your cousin's.'
  • 'Yes, Linton, you must tell,' said Catherine. 'It was for your sake I
  • came; and it will be wickedly ungrateful if you refuse.'
  • 'Give me some tea, I'm thirsty, and then I'll tell you,' he answered.
  • 'Mrs. Dean, go away. I don't like you standing over me. Now, Catherine,
  • you are letting your tears fall into my cup. I won't drink that. Give
  • me another.' Catherine pushed another to him, and wiped her face. I
  • felt disgusted at the little wretch's composure, since he was no longer
  • in terror for himself. The anguish he had exhibited on the moor subsided
  • as soon as ever he entered Wuthering Heights; so I guessed he had been
  • menaced with an awful visitation of wrath if he failed in decoying us
  • there; and, that accomplished, he had no further immediate fears.
  • 'Papa wants us to be married,' he continued, after sipping some of the
  • liquid. 'And he knows your papa wouldn't let us marry now; and he's
  • afraid of my dying if we wait; so we are to be married in the morning,
  • and you are to stay here all night; and, if you do as he wishes, you
  • shall return home next day, and take me with you.'
  • 'Take you with her, pitiful changeling!' I exclaimed. '_You_ marry? Why,
  • the man is mad! or he thinks us fools, every one. And do you imagine
  • that beautiful young lady, that healthy, hearty girl, will tie herself to
  • a little perishing monkey like you? Are you cherishing the notion that
  • anybody, let alone Miss Catherine Linton, would have you for a husband?
  • You want whipping for bringing us in here at all, with your dastardly
  • puling tricks: and--don't look so silly, now! I've a very good mind to
  • shake you severely, for your contemptible treachery, and your imbecile
  • conceit.'
  • I did give him a slight shaking; but it brought on the cough, and he took
  • to his ordinary resource of moaning and weeping, and Catherine rebuked
  • me.
  • 'Stay all night? No,' she said, looking slowly round. 'Ellen, I'll burn
  • that door down but I'll get out.'
  • And she would have commenced the execution of her threat directly, but
  • Linton was up in alarm for his dear self again. He clasped her in his
  • two feeble arms sobbing:--'Won't you have me, and save me? not let me
  • come to the Grange? Oh, darling Catherine! you mustn't go and leave,
  • after all. You _must_ obey my father--you _must_!'
  • 'I must obey my own,' she replied, 'and relieve him from this cruel
  • suspense. The whole night! What would he think? He'll be distressed
  • already. I'll either break or burn a way out of the house. Be quiet!
  • You're in no danger; but if you hinder me--Linton, I love papa better
  • than you!' The mortal terror he felt of Mr. Heathcliff's anger restored
  • to the boy his coward's eloquence. Catherine was near distraught: still,
  • she persisted that she must go home, and tried entreaty in her turn,
  • persuading him to subdue his selfish agony. While they were thus
  • occupied, our jailor re-entered.
  • 'Your beasts have trotted off,' he said, 'and--now Linton! snivelling
  • again? What has she been doing to you? Come, come--have done, and get
  • to bed. In a month or two, my lad, you'll be able to pay her back her
  • present tyrannies with a vigorous hand. You're pining for pure love, are
  • you not? nothing else in the world: and she shall have you! There, to
  • bed! Zillah won't be here to-night; you must undress yourself. Hush!
  • hold your noise! Once in your own room, I'll not come near you: you
  • needn't fear. By chance, you've managed tolerably. I'll look to the
  • rest.'
  • He spoke these words, holding the door open for his son to pass, and the
  • latter achieved his exit exactly as a spaniel might which suspected the
  • person who attended on it of designing a spiteful squeeze. The lock was
  • re-secured. Heathcliff approached the fire, where my mistress and I
  • stood silent. Catherine looked up, and instinctively raised her hand to
  • her cheek: his neighbourhood revived a painful sensation. Anybody else
  • would have been incapable of regarding the childish act with sternness,
  • but he scowled on her and muttered--'Oh! you are not afraid of me? Your
  • courage is well disguised: you seem damnably afraid!'
  • 'I _am_ afraid now,' she replied, 'because, if I stay, papa will be
  • miserable: and how can I endure making him miserable--when he--when
  • he--Mr. Heathcliff, let _me_ go home! I promise to marry Linton: papa
  • would like me to: and I love him. Why should you wish to force me to do
  • what I'll willingly do of myself?'
  • 'Let him dare to force you,' I cried. 'There's law in the land, thank
  • God! there is; though we be in an out-of-the-way place. I'd inform if he
  • were my own son: and it's felony without benefit of clergy!'
  • 'Silence!' said the ruffian. 'To the devil with your clamour! I don't
  • want _you_ to speak. Miss Linton, I shall enjoy myself remarkably in
  • thinking your father will be miserable: I shall not sleep for
  • satisfaction. You could have hit on no surer way of fixing your
  • residence under my roof for the next twenty-four hours than informing me
  • that such an event would follow. As to your promise to marry Linton,
  • I'll take care you shall keep it; for you shall not quit this place till
  • it is fulfilled.'
  • 'Send Ellen, then, to let papa know I'm safe!' exclaimed Catherine,
  • weeping bitterly. 'Or marry me now. Poor papa! Ellen, he'll think
  • we're lost. What shall we do?'
  • 'Not he! He'll think you are tired of waiting on him, and run off for a
  • little amusement,' answered Heathcliff. 'You cannot deny that you
  • entered my house of your own accord, in contempt of his injunctions to
  • the contrary. And it is quite natural that you should desire amusement
  • at your age; and that you would weary of nursing a sick man, and that man
  • _only_ your father. Catherine, his happiest days were over when your
  • days began. He cursed you, I dare say, for coming into the world (I did,
  • at least); and it would just do if he cursed you as _he_ went out of it.
  • I'd join him. I don't love you! How should I? Weep away. As far as I
  • can see, it will be your chief diversion hereafter; unless Linton make
  • amends for other losses: and your provident parent appears to fancy he
  • may. His letters of advice and consolation entertained me vastly. In
  • his last he recommended my jewel to be careful of his; and kind to her
  • when he got her. Careful and kind--that's paternal. But Linton requires
  • his whole stock of care and kindness for himself. Linton can play the
  • little tyrant well. He'll undertake to torture any number of cats, if
  • their teeth be drawn and their claws pared. You'll be able to tell his
  • uncle fine tales of his _kindness_, when you get home again, I assure
  • you.'
  • 'You're right there!' I said; 'explain your son's character. Show his
  • resemblance to yourself: and then, I hope, Miss Cathy will think twice
  • before she takes the cockatrice!'
  • 'I don't much mind speaking of his amiable qualities now,' he answered;
  • 'because she must either accept him or remain a prisoner, and you along
  • with her, till your master dies. I can detain you both, quite concealed,
  • here. If you doubt, encourage her to retract her word, and you'll have
  • an opportunity of judging!'
  • 'I'll not retract my word,' said Catherine. 'I'll marry him within this
  • hour, if I may go to Thrushcross Grange afterwards. Mr. Heathcliff,
  • you're a cruel man, but you're not a fiend; and you won't, from _mere_
  • malice, destroy irrevocably all my happiness. If papa thought I had left
  • him on purpose, and if he died before I returned, could I bear to live?
  • I've given over crying: but I'm going to kneel here, at your knee; and
  • I'll not get up, and I'll not take my eyes from your face till you look
  • back at me! No, don't turn away! _do look_! you'll see nothing to
  • provoke you. I don't hate you. I'm not angry that you struck me. Have
  • you never loved _anybody_ in all your life, uncle? _never_? Ah! you must
  • look once. I'm so wretched, you can't help being sorry and pitying me.'
  • 'Keep your eft's fingers off; and move, or I'll kick you!' cried
  • Heathcliff, brutally repulsing her. 'I'd rather be hugged by a snake.
  • How the devil can you dream of fawning on me? I _detest_ you!'
  • He shrugged his shoulders: shook himself, indeed, as if his flesh crept
  • with aversion; and thrust back his chair; while I got up, and opened my
  • mouth, to commence a downright torrent of abuse. But I was rendered dumb
  • in the middle of the first sentence, by a threat that I should be shown
  • into a room by myself the very next syllable I uttered. It was growing
  • dark--we heard a sound of voices at the garden-gate. Our host hurried
  • out instantly: _he_ had his wits about him; _we_ had not. There was a
  • talk of two or three minutes, and he returned alone.
  • 'I thought it had been your cousin Hareton,' I observed to Catherine. 'I
  • wish he would arrive! Who knows but he might take our part?'
  • 'It was three servants sent to seek you from the Grange,' said
  • Heathcliff, overhearing me. 'You should have opened a lattice and called
  • out: but I could swear that chit is glad you didn't. She's glad to be
  • obliged to stay, I'm certain.'
  • At learning the chance we had missed, we both gave vent to our grief
  • without control; and he allowed us to wail on till nine o'clock. Then he
  • bid us go upstairs, through the kitchen, to Zillah's chamber; and I
  • whispered my companion to obey: perhaps we might contrive to get through
  • the window there, or into a garret, and out by its skylight. The window,
  • however, was narrow, like those below, and the garret trap was safe from
  • our attempts; for we were fastened in as before. We neither of us lay
  • down: Catherine took her station by the lattice, and watched anxiously
  • for morning; a deep sigh being the only answer I could obtain to my
  • frequent entreaties that she would try to rest. I seated myself in a
  • chair, and rocked to and fro, passing harsh judgment on my many
  • derelictions of duty; from which, it struck me then, all the misfortunes
  • of my employers sprang. It was not the case, in reality, I am aware; but
  • it was, in my imagination, that dismal night; and I thought Heathcliff
  • himself less guilty than I.
  • At seven o'clock he came, and inquired if Miss Linton had risen. She ran
  • to the door immediately, and answered, 'Yes.' 'Here, then,' he said,
  • opening it, and pulling her out. I rose to follow, but he turned the
  • lock again. I demanded my release.
  • 'Be patient,' he replied; 'I'll send up your breakfast in a while.'
  • I thumped on the panels, and rattled the latch angrily and Catherine
  • asked why I was still shut up? He answered, I must try to endure it
  • another hour, and they went away. I endured it two or three hours; at
  • length, I heard a footstep: not Heathcliff's.
  • 'I've brought you something to eat,' said a voice; 'oppen t' door!'
  • Complying eagerly, I beheld Hareton, laden with food enough to last me
  • all day.
  • 'Tak' it,' he added, thrusting the tray into my hand.
  • 'Stay one minute,' I began.
  • 'Nay,' cried he, and retired, regardless of any prayers I could pour
  • forth to detain him.
  • And there I remained enclosed the whole day, and the whole of the next
  • night; and another, and another. Five nights and four days I remained,
  • altogether, seeing nobody but Hareton once every morning; and he was a
  • model of a jailor: surly, and dumb, and deaf to every attempt at moving
  • his sense of justice or compassion.
  • CHAPTER XXVIII
  • On the fifth morning, or rather afternoon, a different step
  • approached--lighter and shorter; and, this time, the person entered the
  • room. It was Zillah; donned in her scarlet shawl, with a black silk
  • bonnet on her head, and a willow-basket swung to her arm.
  • 'Eh, dear! Mrs. Dean!' she exclaimed. 'Well! there is a talk about you
  • at Gimmerton. I never thought but you were sunk in the Blackhorse marsh,
  • and missy with you, till master told me you'd been found, and he'd lodged
  • you here! What! and you must have got on an island, sure? And how long
  • were you in the hole? Did master save you, Mrs. Dean? But you're not so
  • thin--you've not been so poorly, have you?'
  • 'Your master is a true scoundrel!' I replied. 'But he shall answer for
  • it. He needn't have raised that tale: it shall all be laid bare!'
  • 'What do you mean?' asked Zillah. 'It's not his tale: they tell that in
  • the village--about your being lost in the marsh; and I calls to Earnshaw,
  • when I come in--"Eh, they's queer things, Mr. Hareton, happened since I
  • went off. It's a sad pity of that likely young lass, and cant Nelly
  • Dean." He stared. I thought he had not heard aught, so I told him the
  • rumour. The master listened, and he just smiled to himself, and said,
  • "If they have been in the marsh, they are out now, Zillah. Nelly Dean is
  • lodged, at this minute, in your room. You can tell her to flit, when you
  • go up; here is the key. The bog-water got into her head, and she would
  • have run home quite flighty; but I fixed her till she came round to her
  • senses. You can bid her go to the Grange at once, if she be able, and
  • carry a message from me, that her young lady will follow in time to
  • attend the squire's funeral."'
  • 'Mr. Edgar is not dead?' I gasped. 'Oh! Zillah, Zillah!'
  • 'No, no; sit you down, my good mistress,' she replied; 'you're right
  • sickly yet. He's not dead; Doctor Kenneth thinks he may last another
  • day. I met him on the road and asked.'
  • Instead of sitting down, I snatched my outdoor things, and hastened
  • below, for the way was free. On entering the house, I looked about for
  • some one to give information of Catherine. The place was filled with
  • sunshine, and the door stood wide open; but nobody seemed at hand. As I
  • hesitated whether to go off at once, or return and seek my mistress, a
  • slight cough drew my attention to the hearth. Linton lay on the settle,
  • sole tenant, sucking a stick of sugar-candy, and pursuing my movements
  • with apathetic eyes. 'Where is Miss Catherine?' I demanded sternly,
  • supposing I could frighten him into giving intelligence, by catching him
  • thus, alone. He sucked on like an innocent.
  • 'Is she gone?' I said.
  • 'No,' he replied; 'she's upstairs: she's not to go; we won't let her.'
  • 'You won't let her, little idiot!' I exclaimed. 'Direct me to her room
  • immediately, or I'll make you sing out sharply.'
  • 'Papa would make you sing out, if you attempted to get there,' he
  • answered. 'He says I'm not to be soft with Catherine: she's my wife, and
  • it's shameful that she should wish to leave me. He says she hates me and
  • wants me to die, that she may have my money; but she shan't have it: and
  • she shan't go home! She never shall!--she may cry, and be sick as much
  • as she pleases!'
  • He resumed his former occupation, closing his lids, as if he meant to
  • drop asleep.
  • 'Master Heathcliff,' I resumed, 'have you forgotten all Catherine's
  • kindness to you last winter, when you affirmed you loved her, and when
  • she brought you books and sung you songs, and came many a time through
  • wind and snow to see you? She wept to miss one evening, because you
  • would be disappointed; and you felt then that she was a hundred times too
  • good to you: and now you believe the lies your father tells, though you
  • know he detests you both. And you join him against her. That's fine
  • gratitude, is it not?'
  • The corner of Linton's mouth fell, and he took the sugar-candy from his
  • lips.
  • 'Did she come to Wuthering Heights because she hated you?' I continued.
  • 'Think for yourself! As to your money, she does not even know that you
  • will have any. And you say she's sick; and yet you leave her alone, up
  • there in a strange house! You who have felt what it is to be so
  • neglected! You could pity your own sufferings; and she pitied them, too;
  • but you won't pity hers! I shed tears, Master Heathcliff, you see--an
  • elderly woman, and a servant merely--and you, after pretending such
  • affection, and having reason to worship her almost, store every tear you
  • have for yourself, and lie there quite at ease. Ah! you're a heartless,
  • selfish boy!'
  • 'I can't stay with her,' he answered crossly. 'I'll not stay by myself.
  • She cries so I can't bear it. And she won't give over, though I say I'll
  • call my father. I did call him once, and he threatened to strangle her
  • if she was not quiet; but she began again the instant he left the room,
  • moaning and grieving all night long, though I screamed for vexation that
  • I couldn't sleep.'
  • 'Is Mr. Heathcliff out?' I inquired, perceiving that the wretched
  • creature had no power to sympathize with his cousin's mental tortures.
  • 'He's in the court,' he replied, 'talking to Doctor Kenneth; who says
  • uncle is dying, truly, at last. I'm glad, for I shall be master of the
  • Grange after him. Catherine always spoke of it as her house. It isn't
  • hers! It's mine: papa says everything she has is mine. All her nice
  • books are mine; she offered to give me them, and her pretty birds, and
  • her pony Minny, if I would get the key of our room, and let her out; but
  • I told her she had nothing to give, they were all, all mine. And then
  • she cried, and took a little picture from her neck, and said I should
  • have that; two pictures in a gold case, on one side her mother, and on
  • the other uncle, when they were young. That was yesterday--I said they
  • were mine, too; and tried to get them from her. The spiteful thing
  • wouldn't let me: she pushed me off, and hurt me. I shrieked out--that
  • frightens her--she heard papa coming, and she broke the hinges and
  • divided the case, and gave me her mother's portrait; the other she
  • attempted to hide: but papa asked what was the matter, and I explained
  • it. He took the one I had away, and ordered her to resign hers to me;
  • she refused, and he--he struck her down, and wrenched it off the chain,
  • and crushed it with his foot.'
  • 'And were you pleased to see her struck?' I asked: having my designs in
  • encouraging his talk.
  • 'I winked,' he answered: 'I wink to see my father strike a dog or a
  • horse, he does it so hard. Yet I was glad at first--she deserved
  • punishing for pushing me: but when papa was gone, she made me come to the
  • window and showed me her cheek cut on the inside, against her teeth, and
  • her mouth filling with blood; and then she gathered up the bits of the
  • picture, and went and sat down with her face to the wall, and she has
  • never spoken to me since: and I sometimes think she can't speak for pain.
  • I don't like to think so; but she's a naughty thing for crying
  • continually; and she looks so pale and wild, I'm afraid of her.'
  • 'And you can get the key if you choose?' I said.
  • 'Yes, when I am up-stairs,' he answered; 'but I can't walk up-stairs
  • now.'
  • 'In what apartment is it?' I asked.
  • 'Oh,' he cried, 'I shan't tell _you_ where it is. It is our secret.
  • Nobody, neither Hareton nor Zillah, is to know. There! you've tired
  • me--go away, go away!' And he turned his face on to his arm, and shut
  • his eyes again.
  • I considered it best to depart without seeing Mr. Heathcliff, and bring a
  • rescue for my young lady from the Grange. On reaching it, the
  • astonishment of my fellow-servants to see me, and their joy also, was
  • intense; and when they heard that their little mistress was safe, two or
  • three were about to hurry up and shout the news at Mr. Edgar's door: but
  • I bespoke the announcement of it myself. How changed I found him, even
  • in those few days! He lay an image of sadness and resignation awaiting
  • his death. Very young he looked: though his actual age was thirty-nine,
  • one would have called him ten years younger, at least. He thought of
  • Catherine; for he murmured her name. I touched his hand, and spoke.
  • 'Catherine is coming, dear master!' I whispered; 'she is alive and well;
  • and will be here, I hope, to-night.'
  • I trembled at the first effects of this intelligence: he half rose up,
  • looked eagerly round the apartment, and then sank back in a swoon. As
  • soon as he recovered, I related our compulsory visit, and detention at
  • the Heights. I said Heathcliff forced me to go in: which was not quite
  • true. I uttered as little as possible against Linton; nor did I describe
  • all his father's brutal conduct--my intentions being to add no
  • bitterness, if I could help it, to his already over-flowing cup.
  • He divined that one of his enemy's purposes was to secure the personal
  • property, as well as the estate, to his son: or rather himself; yet why
  • he did not wait till his decease was a puzzle to my master, because
  • ignorant how nearly he and his nephew would quit the world together.
  • However, he felt that his will had better be altered: instead of leaving
  • Catherine's fortune at her own disposal, he determined to put it in the
  • hands of trustees for her use during life, and for her children, if she
  • had any, after her. By that means, it could not fall to Mr. Heathcliff
  • should Linton die.
  • Having received his orders, I despatched a man to fetch the attorney, and
  • four more, provided with serviceable weapons, to demand my young lady of
  • her jailor. Both parties were delayed very late. The single servant
  • returned first. He said Mr. Green, the lawyer, was out when he arrived
  • at his house, and he had to wait two hours for his re-entrance; and then
  • Mr. Green told him he had a little business in the village that must be
  • done; but he would be at Thrushcross Grange before morning. The four men
  • came back unaccompanied also. They brought word that Catherine was ill:
  • too ill to quit her room; and Heathcliff would not suffer them to see
  • her. I scolded the stupid fellows well for listening to that tale, which
  • I would not carry to my master; resolving to take a whole bevy up to the
  • Heights, at day-light, and storm it literally, unless the prisoner were
  • quietly surrendered to us. Her father _shall_ see her, I vowed, and
  • vowed again, if that devil be killed on his own doorstones in trying to
  • prevent it!
  • Happily, I was spared the journey and the trouble. I had gone
  • down-stairs at three o'clock to fetch a jug of water; and was passing
  • through the hall with it in my hand, when a sharp knock at the front door
  • made me jump. 'Oh! it is Green,' I said, recollecting myself--'only
  • Green,' and I went on, intending to send somebody else to open it; but
  • the knock was repeated: not loud, and still importunately. I put the jug
  • on the banister and hastened to admit him myself. The harvest moon shone
  • clear outside. It was not the attorney. My own sweet little mistress
  • sprang on my neck sobbing, 'Ellen, Ellen! Is papa alive?'
  • 'Yes,' I cried: 'yes, my angel, he is, God be thanked, you are safe with
  • us again!'
  • She wanted to run, breathless as she was, up-stairs to Mr. Linton's room;
  • but I compelled her to sit down on a chair, and made her drink, and
  • washed her pale face, chafing it into a faint colour with my apron. Then
  • I said I must go first, and tell of her arrival; imploring her to say,
  • she should be happy with young Heathcliff. She stared, but soon
  • comprehending why I counselled her to utter the falsehood, she assured me
  • she would not complain.
  • I couldn't abide to be present at their meeting. I stood outside the
  • chamber-door a quarter of an hour, and hardly ventured near the bed,
  • then. All was composed, however: Catherine's despair was as silent as
  • her father's joy. She supported him calmly, in appearance; and he fixed
  • on her features his raised eyes that seemed dilating with ecstasy.
  • He died blissfully, Mr. Lockwood: he died so. Kissing her cheek, he
  • murmured,--'I am going to her; and you, darling child, shall come to us!'
  • and never stirred or spoke again; but continued that rapt, radiant gaze,
  • till his pulse imperceptibly stopped and his soul departed. None could
  • have noticed the exact minute of his death, it was so entirely without a
  • struggle.
  • Whether Catherine had spent her tears, or whether the grief were too
  • weighty to let them flow, she sat there dry-eyed till the sun rose: she
  • sat till noon, and would still have remained brooding over that deathbed,
  • but I insisted on her coming away and taking some repose. It was well I
  • succeeded in removing her, for at dinner-time appeared the lawyer, having
  • called at Wuthering Heights to get his instructions how to behave. He
  • had sold himself to Mr. Heathcliff: that was the cause of his delay in
  • obeying my master's summons. Fortunately, no thought of worldly affairs
  • crossed the latter's mind, to disturb him, after his daughter's arrival.
  • Mr. Green took upon himself to order everything and everybody about the
  • place. He gave all the servants but me, notice to quit. He would have
  • carried his delegated authority to the point of insisting that Edgar
  • Linton should not be buried beside his wife, but in the chapel, with his
  • family. There was the will, however, to hinder that, and my loud
  • protestations against any infringement of its directions. The funeral
  • was hurried over; Catherine, Mrs. Linton Heathcliff now, was suffered to
  • stay at the Grange till her father's corpse had quitted it.
  • She told me that her anguish had at last spurred Linton to incur the risk
  • of liberating her. She heard the men I sent disputing at the door, and
  • she gathered the sense of Heathcliff's answer. It drove her desperate.
  • Linton who had been conveyed up to the little parlour soon after I left,
  • was terrified into fetching the key before his father re-ascended. He
  • had the cunning to unlock and re-lock the door, without shutting it; and
  • when he should have gone to bed, he begged to sleep with Hareton, and his
  • petition was granted for once. Catherine stole out before break of day.
  • She dared not try the doors lest the dogs should raise an alarm; she
  • visited the empty chambers and examined their windows; and, luckily,
  • lighting on her mother's, she got easily out of its lattice, and on to
  • the ground, by means of the fir-tree close by. Her accomplice suffered
  • for his share in the escape, notwithstanding his timid contrivances.
  • CHAPTER XXIX
  • The evening after the funeral, my young lady and I were seated in the
  • library; now musing mournfully--one of us despairingly--on our loss, now
  • venturing conjectures as to the gloomy future.
  • We had just agreed the best destiny which could await Catherine would be
  • a permission to continue resident at the Grange; at least during Linton's
  • life: he being allowed to join her there, and I to remain as housekeeper.
  • That seemed rather too favourable an arrangement to be hoped for; and yet
  • I did hope, and began to cheer up under the prospect of retaining my home
  • and my employment, and, above all, my beloved young mistress; when a
  • servant--one of the discarded ones, not yet departed--rushed hastily in,
  • and said 'that devil Heathcliff' was coming through the court: should he
  • fasten the door in his face?
  • If we had been mad enough to order that proceeding, we had not time. He
  • made no ceremony of knocking or announcing his name: he was master, and
  • availed himself of the master's privilege to walk straight in, without
  • saying a word. The sound of our informant's voice directed him to the
  • library; he entered and motioning him out, shut the door.
  • It was the same room into which he had been ushered, as a guest, eighteen
  • years before: the same moon shone through the window; and the same autumn
  • landscape lay outside. We had not yet lighted a candle, but all the
  • apartment was visible, even to the portraits on the wall: the splendid
  • head of Mrs. Linton, and the graceful one of her husband. Heathcliff
  • advanced to the hearth. Time had little altered his person either. There
  • was the same man: his dark face rather sallower and more composed, his
  • frame a stone or two heavier, perhaps, and no other difference. Catherine
  • had risen with an impulse to dash out, when she saw him.
  • 'Stop!' he said, arresting her by the arm. 'No more runnings away! Where
  • would you go? I'm come to fetch you home; and I hope you'll be a dutiful
  • daughter and not encourage my son to further disobedience. I was
  • embarrassed how to punish him when I discovered his part in the business:
  • he's such a cobweb, a pinch would annihilate him; but you'll see by his
  • look that he has received his due! I brought him down one evening, the
  • day before yesterday, and just set him in a chair, and never touched him
  • afterwards. I sent Hareton out, and we had the room to ourselves. In
  • two hours, I called Joseph to carry him up again; and since then my
  • presence is as potent on his nerves as a ghost; and I fancy he sees me
  • often, though I am not near. Hareton says he wakes and shrieks in the
  • night by the hour together, and calls you to protect him from me; and,
  • whether you like your precious mate, or not, you must come: he's your
  • concern now; I yield all my interest in him to you.'
  • 'Why not let Catherine continue here,' I pleaded, 'and send Master Linton
  • to her? As you hate them both, you'd not miss them: they can only be a
  • daily plague to your unnatural heart.'
  • 'I'm seeking a tenant for the Grange,' he answered; 'and I want my
  • children about me, to be sure. Besides, that lass owes me her services
  • for her bread. I'm not going to nurture her in luxury and idleness after
  • Linton is gone. Make haste and get ready, now; and don't oblige me to
  • compel you.'
  • 'I shall,' said Catherine. 'Linton is all I have to love in the world,
  • and though you have done what you could to make him hateful to me, and me
  • to him, you cannot make us hate each other. And I defy you to hurt him
  • when I am by, and I defy you to frighten me!'
  • 'You are a boastful champion,' replied Heathcliff; 'but I don't like you
  • well enough to hurt him: you shall get the full benefit of the torment,
  • as long as it lasts. It is not I who will make him hateful to you--it is
  • his own sweet spirit. He's as bitter as gall at your desertion and its
  • consequences: don't expect thanks for this noble devotion. I heard him
  • draw a pleasant picture to Zillah of what he would do if he were as
  • strong as I: the inclination is there, and his very weakness will sharpen
  • his wits to find a substitute for strength.'
  • 'I know he has a bad nature,' said Catherine: 'he's your son. But I'm
  • glad I've a better, to forgive it; and I know he loves me, and for that
  • reason I love him. Mr. Heathcliff _you_ have _nobody_ to love you; and,
  • however miserable you make us, we shall still have the revenge of
  • thinking that your cruelty arises from your greater misery. You _are_
  • miserable, are you not? Lonely, like the devil, and envious like him?
  • _Nobody_ loves you--_nobody_ will cry for you when you die! I wouldn't
  • be you!'
  • Catherine spoke with a kind of dreary triumph: she seemed to have made up
  • her mind to enter into the spirit of her future family, and draw pleasure
  • from the griefs of her enemies.
  • 'You shall be sorry to be yourself presently,' said her father-in-law,
  • 'if you stand there another minute. Begone, witch, and get your things!'
  • She scornfully withdrew. In her absence I began to beg for Zillah's
  • place at the Heights, offering to resign mine to her; but he would suffer
  • it on no account. He bid me be silent; and then, for the first time,
  • allowed himself a glance round the room and a look at the pictures.
  • Having studied Mrs. Linton's, he said--'I shall have that home. Not
  • because I need it, but--' He turned abruptly to the fire, and continued,
  • with what, for lack of a better word, I must call a smile--'I'll tell you
  • what I did yesterday! I got the sexton, who was digging Linton's grave,
  • to remove the earth off her coffin lid, and I opened it. I thought,
  • once, I would have stayed there: when I saw her face again--it is hers
  • yet!--he had hard work to stir me; but he said it would change if the air
  • blew on it, and so I struck one side of the coffin loose, and covered it
  • up: not Linton's side, damn him! I wish he'd been soldered in lead. And
  • I bribed the sexton to pull it away when I'm laid there, and slide mine
  • out too; I'll have it made so: and then by the time Linton gets to us
  • he'll not know which is which!'
  • 'You were very wicked, Mr. Heathcliff!' I exclaimed; 'were you not
  • ashamed to disturb the dead?'
  • 'I disturbed nobody, Nelly,' he replied; 'and I gave some ease to myself.
  • I shall be a great deal more comfortable now; and you'll have a better
  • chance of keeping me underground, when I get there. Disturbed her? No!
  • she has disturbed me, night and day, through eighteen
  • years--incessantly--remorselessly--till yesternight; and yesternight I
  • was tranquil. I dreamt I was sleeping the last sleep by that sleeper,
  • with my heart stopped and my cheek frozen against hers.'
  • 'And if she had been dissolved into earth, or worse, what would you have
  • dreamt of then?' I said.
  • 'Of dissolving with her, and being more happy still!' he answered. 'Do
  • you suppose I dread any change of that sort? I expected such a
  • transformation on raising the lid--but I'm better pleased that it should
  • not commence till I share it. Besides, unless I had received a distinct
  • impression of her passionless features, that strange feeling would hardly
  • have been removed. It began oddly. You know I was wild after she died;
  • and eternally, from dawn to dawn, praying her to return to me her spirit!
  • I have a strong faith in ghosts: I have a conviction that they can, and
  • do, exist among us! The day she was buried, there came a fall of snow.
  • In the evening I went to the churchyard. It blew bleak as winter--all
  • round was solitary. I didn't fear that her fool of a husband would
  • wander up the glen so late; and no one else had business to bring them
  • there. Being alone, and conscious two yards of loose earth was the sole
  • barrier between us, I said to myself--"I'll have her in my arms again! If
  • she be cold, I'll think it is this north wind that chills _me_; and if
  • she be motionless, it is sleep." I got a spade from the tool-house, and
  • began to delve with all my might--it scraped the coffin; I fell to work
  • with my hands; the wood commenced cracking about the screws; I was on the
  • point of attaining my object, when it seemed that I heard a sigh from
  • some one above, close at the edge of the grave, and bending down. "If I
  • can only get this off," I muttered, "I wish they may shovel in the earth
  • over us both!" and I wrenched at it more desperately still. There was
  • another sigh, close at my ear. I appeared to feel the warm breath of it
  • displacing the sleet-laden wind. I knew no living thing in flesh and
  • blood was by; but, as certainly as you perceive the approach to some
  • substantial body in the dark, though it cannot be discerned, so certainly
  • I felt that Cathy was there: not under me, but on the earth. A sudden
  • sense of relief flowed from my heart through every limb. I relinquished
  • my labour of agony, and turned consoled at once: unspeakably consoled.
  • Her presence was with me: it remained while I re-filled the grave, and
  • led me home. You may laugh, if you will; but I was sure I should see her
  • there. I was sure she was with me, and I could not help talking to her.
  • Having reached the Heights, I rushed eagerly to the door. It was
  • fastened; and, I remember, that accursed Earnshaw and my wife opposed my
  • entrance. I remember stopping to kick the breath out of him, and then
  • hurrying up-stairs, to my room and hers. I looked round impatiently--I
  • felt her by me--I could _almost_ see her, and yet I _could not_! I ought
  • to have sweat blood then, from the anguish of my yearning--from the
  • fervour of my supplications to have but one glimpse! I had not one. She
  • showed herself, as she often was in life, a devil to me! And, since
  • then, sometimes more and sometimes less, I've been the sport of that
  • intolerable torture! Infernal! keeping my nerves at such a stretch that,
  • if they had not resembled catgut, they would long ago have relaxed to the
  • feebleness of Linton's. When I sat in the house with Hareton, it seemed
  • that on going out I should meet her; when I walked on the moors I should
  • meet her coming in. When I went from home I hastened to return; she
  • _must_ be somewhere at the Heights, I was certain! And when I slept in
  • her chamber--I was beaten out of that. I couldn't lie there; for the
  • moment I closed my eyes, she was either outside the window, or sliding
  • back the panels, or entering the room, or even resting her darling head
  • on the same pillow as she did when a child; and I must open my lids to
  • see. And so I opened and closed them a hundred times a night--to be
  • always disappointed! It racked me! I've often groaned aloud, till that
  • old rascal Joseph no doubt believed that my conscience was playing the
  • fiend inside of me. Now, since I've seen her, I'm pacified--a little. It
  • was a strange way of killing: not by inches, but by fractions of
  • hairbreadths, to beguile me with the spectre of a hope through eighteen
  • years!'
  • Mr. Heathcliff paused and wiped his forehead; his hair clung to it, wet
  • with perspiration; his eyes were fixed on the red embers of the fire, the
  • brows not contracted, but raised next the temples; diminishing the grim
  • aspect of his countenance, but imparting a peculiar look of trouble, and
  • a painful appearance of mental tension towards one absorbing subject. He
  • only half addressed me, and I maintained silence. I didn't like to hear
  • him talk! After a short period he resumed his meditation on the picture,
  • took it down and leant it against the sofa to contemplate it at better
  • advantage; and while so occupied Catherine entered, announcing that she
  • was ready, when her pony should be saddled.
  • 'Send that over to-morrow,' said Heathcliff to me; then turning to her,
  • he added: 'You may do without your pony: it is a fine evening, and you'll
  • need no ponies at Wuthering Heights; for what journeys you take, your own
  • feet will serve you. Come along.'
  • 'Good-bye, Ellen!' whispered my dear little mistress.
  • As she kissed me, her lips felt like ice. 'Come and see me, Ellen; don't
  • forget.'
  • 'Take care you do no such thing, Mrs. Dean!' said her new father. 'When
  • I wish to speak to you I'll come here. I want none of your prying at my
  • house!'
  • He signed her to precede him; and casting back a look that cut my heart,
  • she obeyed. I watched them, from the window, walk down the garden.
  • Heathcliff fixed Catherine's arm under his: though she disputed the act
  • at first evidently; and with rapid strides he hurried her into the alley,
  • whose trees concealed them.
  • CHAPTER XXX
  • I have paid a visit to the Heights, but I have not seen her since she
  • left: Joseph held the door in his hand when I called to ask after her,
  • and wouldn't let me pass. He said Mrs. Linton was 'thrang,' and the
  • master was not in. Zillah has told me something of the way they go on,
  • otherwise I should hardly know who was dead and who living. She thinks
  • Catherine haughty, and does not like her, I can guess by her talk. My
  • young lady asked some aid of her when she first came; but Mr. Heathcliff
  • told her to follow her own business, and let his daughter-in-law look
  • after herself; and Zillah willingly acquiesced, being a narrow-minded,
  • selfish woman. Catherine evinced a child's annoyance at this neglect;
  • repaid it with contempt, and thus enlisted my informant among her
  • enemies, as securely as if she had done her some great wrong. I had a
  • long talk with Zillah about six weeks ago, a little before you came, one
  • day when we foregathered on the moor; and this is what she told me.
  • 'The first thing Mrs. Linton did,' she said, 'on her arrival at the
  • Heights, was to run up-stairs, without even wishing good-evening to me
  • and Joseph; she shut herself into Linton's room, and remained till
  • morning. Then, while the master and Earnshaw were at breakfast, she
  • entered the house, and asked all in a quiver if the doctor might be sent
  • for? her cousin was very ill.
  • '"We know that!" answered Heathcliff; "but his life is not worth a
  • farthing, and I won't spend a farthing on him."
  • '"But I cannot tell how to do," she said; "and if nobody will help me,
  • he'll die!"
  • '"Walk out of the room," cried the master, "and let me never hear a word
  • more about him! None here care what becomes of him; if you do, act the
  • nurse; if you do not, lock him up and leave him."
  • 'Then she began to bother me, and I said I'd had enough plague with the
  • tiresome thing; we each had our tasks, and hers was to wait on Linton:
  • Mr. Heathcliff bid me leave that labour to her.
  • 'How they managed together, I can't tell. I fancy he fretted a great
  • deal, and moaned hisseln night and day; and she had precious little rest:
  • one could guess by her white face and heavy eyes. She sometimes came
  • into the kitchen all wildered like, and looked as if she would fain beg
  • assistance; but I was not going to disobey the master: I never dare
  • disobey him, Mrs. Dean; and, though I thought it wrong that Kenneth
  • should not be sent for, it was no concern of mine either to advise or
  • complain, and I always refused to meddle. Once or twice, after we had
  • gone to bed, I've happened to open my door again and seen her sitting
  • crying on the stairs'-top; and then I've shut myself in quick, for fear
  • of being moved to interfere. I did pity her then, I'm sure: still I
  • didn't wish to lose my place, you know.
  • 'At last, one night she came boldly into my chamber, and frightened me
  • out of my wits, by saying, "Tell Mr. Heathcliff that his son is dying--I'm
  • sure he is, this time. Get up, instantly, and tell him."
  • 'Having uttered this speech, she vanished again. I lay a quarter of an
  • hour listening and trembling. Nothing stirred--the house was quiet.
  • 'She's mistaken, I said to myself. He's got over it. I needn't disturb
  • them; and I began to doze. But my sleep was marred a second time by a
  • sharp ringing of the bell--the only bell we have, put up on purpose for
  • Linton; and the master called to me to see what was the matter, and
  • inform them that he wouldn't have that noise repeated.
  • 'I delivered Catherine's message. He cursed to himself, and in a few
  • minutes came out with a lighted candle, and proceeded to their room. I
  • followed. Mrs. Heathcliff was seated by the bedside, with her hands
  • folded on her knees. Her father-in-law went up, held the light to
  • Linton's face, looked at him, and touched him; afterwards he turned to
  • her.
  • '"Now--Catherine," he said, "how do you feel?"
  • 'She was dumb.
  • '"How do you feel, Catherine?" he repeated.
  • '"He's safe, and I'm free," she answered: "I should feel well--but," she
  • continued, with a bitterness she couldn't conceal, "you have left me so
  • long to struggle against death alone, that I feel and see only death! I
  • feel like death!"
  • 'And she looked like it, too! I gave her a little wine. Hareton and
  • Joseph, who had been wakened by the ringing and the sound of feet, and
  • heard our talk from outside, now entered. Joseph was fain, I believe, of
  • the lad's removal; Hareton seemed a thought bothered: though he was more
  • taken up with staring at Catherine than thinking of Linton. But the
  • master bid him get off to bed again: we didn't want his help. He
  • afterwards made Joseph remove the body to his chamber, and told me to
  • return to mine, and Mrs. Heathcliff remained by herself.
  • 'In the morning, he sent me to tell her she must come down to breakfast:
  • she had undressed, and appeared going to sleep, and said she was ill; at
  • which I hardly wondered. I informed Mr. Heathcliff, and he
  • replied,--"Well, let her be till after the funeral; and go up now and
  • then to get her what is needful; and, as soon as she seems better, tell
  • me."'
  • Cathy stayed upstairs a fortnight, according to Zillah; who visited her
  • twice a day, and would have been rather more friendly, but her attempts
  • at increasing kindness were proudly and promptly repelled.
  • Heathcliff went up once, to show her Linton's will. He had bequeathed
  • the whole of his, and what had been her, moveable property, to his
  • father: the poor creature was threatened, or coaxed, into that act during
  • her week's absence, when his uncle died. The lands, being a minor, he
  • could not meddle with. However, Mr. Heathcliff has claimed and kept them
  • in his wife's right and his also: I suppose legally; at any rate,
  • Catherine, destitute of cash and friends, cannot disturb his possession.
  • 'Nobody,' said Zillah, 'ever approached her door, except that once, but
  • I; and nobody asked anything about her. The first occasion of her coming
  • down into the house was on a Sunday afternoon. She had cried out, when I
  • carried up her dinner, that she couldn't bear any longer being in the
  • cold; and I told her the master was going to Thrushcross Grange, and
  • Earnshaw and I needn't hinder her from descending; so, as soon as she
  • heard Heathcliff's horse trot off, she made her appearance, donned in
  • black, and her yellow curls combed back behind her ears as plain as a
  • Quaker: she couldn't comb them out.
  • 'Joseph and I generally go to chapel on Sundays:' the kirk, you know, has
  • no minister now, explained Mrs. Dean; and they call the Methodists' or
  • Baptists' place (I can't say which it is) at Gimmerton, a chapel. 'Joseph
  • had gone,' she continued, 'but I thought proper to bide at home. Young
  • folks are always the better for an elder's over-looking; and Hareton,
  • with all his bashfulness, isn't a model of nice behaviour. I let him
  • know that his cousin would very likely sit with us, and she had been
  • always used to see the Sabbath respected; so he had as good leave his
  • guns and bits of indoor work alone, while she stayed. He coloured up at
  • the news, and cast his eyes over his hands and clothes. The train-oil
  • and gunpowder were shoved out of sight in a minute. I saw he meant to
  • give her his company; and I guessed, by his way, he wanted to be
  • presentable; so, laughing, as I durst not laugh when the master is by, I
  • offered to help him, if he would, and joked at his confusion. He grew
  • sullen, and began to swear.
  • 'Now, Mrs. Dean,' Zillah went on, seeing me not pleased by her manner,
  • 'you happen think your young lady too fine for Mr. Hareton; and happen
  • you're right: but I own I should love well to bring her pride a peg
  • lower. And what will all her learning and her daintiness do for her,
  • now? She's as poor as you or I: poorer, I'll be bound: you're saying,
  • and I'm doing my little all that road.'
  • Hareton allowed Zillah to give him her aid; and she flattered him into a
  • good humour; so, when Catherine came, half forgetting her former insults,
  • he tried to make himself agreeable, by the housekeeper's account.
  • 'Missis walked in,' she said, 'as chill as an icicle, and as high as a
  • princess. I got up and offered her my seat in the arm-chair. No, she
  • turned up her nose at my civility. Earnshaw rose, too, and bid her come
  • to the settle, and sit close by the fire: he was sure she was starved.
  • '"I've been starved a month and more," she answered, resting on the word
  • as scornful as she could.
  • 'And she got a chair for herself, and placed it at a distance from both
  • of us. Having sat till she was warm, she began to look round, and
  • discovered a number of books on the dresser; she was instantly upon her
  • feet again, stretching to reach them: but they were too high up. Her
  • cousin, after watching her endeavours a while, at last summoned courage
  • to help her; she held her frock, and he filled it with the first that
  • came to hand.
  • 'That was a great advance for the lad. She didn't thank him; still, he
  • felt gratified that she had accepted his assistance, and ventured to
  • stand behind as she examined them, and even to stoop and point out what
  • struck his fancy in certain old pictures which they contained; nor was he
  • daunted by the saucy style in which she jerked the page from his finger:
  • he contented himself with going a bit farther back and looking at her
  • instead of the book. She continued reading, or seeking for something to
  • read. His attention became, by degrees, quite centred in the study of
  • her thick silky curls: her face he couldn't see, and she couldn't see
  • him. And, perhaps, not quite awake to what he did, but attracted like a
  • child to a candle, at last he proceeded from staring to touching; he put
  • out his hand and stroked one curl, as gently as if it were a bird. He
  • might have stuck a knife into her neck, she started round in such a
  • taking.
  • '"Get away this moment! How dare you touch me? Why are you stopping
  • there?" she cried, in a tone of disgust. "I can't endure you! I'll go
  • upstairs again, if you come near me."
  • 'Mr. Hareton recoiled, looking as foolish as he could do: he sat down in
  • the settle very quiet, and she continued turning over her volumes another
  • half hour; finally, Earnshaw crossed over, and whispered to me.
  • '"Will you ask her to read to us, Zillah? I'm stalled of doing naught;
  • and I do like--I could like to hear her! Dunnot say I wanted it, but ask
  • of yourseln."
  • '"Mr. Hareton wishes you would read to us, ma'am," I said, immediately.
  • "He'd take it very kind--he'd be much obliged."
  • 'She frowned; and looking up, answered--
  • '"Mr. Hareton, and the whole set of you, will be good enough to
  • understand that I reject any pretence at kindness you have the hypocrisy
  • to offer! I despise you, and will have nothing to say to any of you!
  • When I would have given my life for one kind word, even to see one of
  • your faces, you all kept off. But I won't complain to you! I'm driven
  • down here by the cold; not either to amuse you or enjoy your society."
  • '"What could I ha' done?" began Earnshaw. "How was I to blame?"
  • '"Oh! you are an exception," answered Mrs. Heathcliff. "I never missed
  • such a concern as you."
  • '"But I offered more than once, and asked," he said, kindling up at her
  • pertness, "I asked Mr. Heathcliff to let me wake for you--"
  • '"Be silent! I'll go out of doors, or anywhere, rather than have your
  • disagreeable voice in my ear!" said my lady.
  • 'Hareton muttered she might go to hell, for him! and unslinging his gun,
  • restrained himself from his Sunday occupations no longer. He talked now,
  • freely enough; and she presently saw fit to retreat to her solitude: but
  • the frost had set in, and, in spite of her pride, she was forced to
  • condescend to our company, more and more. However, I took care there
  • should be no further scorning at my good nature: ever since, I've been as
  • stiff as herself; and she has no lover or liker among us: and she does
  • not deserve one; for, let them say the least word to her, and she'll curl
  • back without respect of any one. She'll snap at the master himself, and
  • as good as dares him to thrash her; and the more hurt she gets, the more
  • venomous she grows.'
  • At first, on hearing this account from Zillah, I determined to leave my
  • situation, take a cottage, and get Catherine to come and live with me:
  • but Mr. Heathcliff would as soon permit that as he would set up Hareton
  • in an independent house; and I can see no remedy, at present, unless she
  • could marry again; and that scheme it does not come within my province to
  • arrange.
  • * * * * *
  • Thus ended Mrs. Dean's story. Notwithstanding the doctor's prophecy, I
  • am rapidly recovering strength; and though it be only the second week in
  • January, I propose getting out on horseback in a day or two, and riding
  • over to Wuthering Heights, to inform my landlord that I shall spend the
  • next six months in London; and, if he likes, he may look out for another
  • tenant to take the place after October. I would not pass another winter
  • here for much.
  • CHAPTER XXXI
  • Yesterday was bright, calm, and frosty. I went to the Heights as I
  • proposed: my housekeeper entreated me to bear a little note from her to
  • her young lady, and I did not refuse, for the worthy woman was not
  • conscious of anything odd in her request. The front door stood open, but
  • the jealous gate was fastened, as at my last visit; I knocked and invoked
  • Earnshaw from among the garden-beds; he unchained it, and I entered. The
  • fellow is as handsome a rustic as need be seen. I took particular notice
  • of him this time; but then he does his best apparently to make the least
  • of his advantages.
  • I asked if Mr. Heathcliff were at home? He answered, No; but he would be
  • in at dinner-time. It was eleven o'clock, and I announced my intention
  • of going in and waiting for him; at which he immediately flung down his
  • tools and accompanied me, in the office of watchdog, not as a substitute
  • for the host.
  • We entered together; Catherine was there, making herself useful in
  • preparing some vegetables for the approaching meal; she looked more
  • sulky and less spirited than when I had seen her first. She hardly
  • raised her eyes to notice me, and continued her employment with the same
  • disregard to common forms of politeness as before; never returning my
  • bow and good-morning by the slightest acknowledgment.
  • 'She does not seem so amiable,' I thought, 'as Mrs. Dean would persuade
  • me to believe. She's a beauty, it is true; but not an angel.'
  • Earnshaw surlily bid her remove her things to the kitchen. 'Remove them
  • yourself,' she said, pushing them from her as soon as she had done; and
  • retiring to a stool by the window, where she began to carve figures of
  • birds and beasts out of the turnip-parings in her lap. I approached her,
  • pretending to desire a view of the garden; and, as I fancied, adroitly
  • dropped Mrs. Dean's note on to her knee, unnoticed by Hareton--but she
  • asked aloud, 'What is that?' And chucked it off.
  • 'A letter from your old acquaintance, the housekeeper at the Grange,' I
  • answered; annoyed at her exposing my kind deed, and fearful lest it
  • should be imagined a missive of my own. She would gladly have gathered
  • it up at this information, but Hareton beat her; he seized and put it in
  • his waistcoat, saying Mr. Heathcliff should look at it first. Thereat,
  • Catherine silently turned her face from us, and, very stealthily, drew
  • out her pocket-handkerchief and applied it to her eyes; and her cousin,
  • after struggling awhile to keep down his softer feelings, pulled out the
  • letter and flung it on the floor beside her, as ungraciously as he could.
  • Catherine caught and perused it eagerly; then she put a few questions to
  • me concerning the inmates, rational and irrational, of her former home;
  • and gazing towards the hills, murmured in soliloquy:
  • 'I should like to be riding Minny down there! I should like to be
  • climbing up there! Oh! I'm tired--I'm _stalled_, Hareton!' And she
  • leant her pretty head back against the sill, with half a yawn and half a
  • sigh, and lapsed into an aspect of abstracted sadness: neither caring nor
  • knowing whether we remarked her.
  • 'Mrs. Heathcliff,' I said, after sitting some time mute, 'you are not
  • aware that I am an acquaintance of yours? so intimate that I think it
  • strange you won't come and speak to me. My housekeeper never wearies of
  • talking about and praising you; and she'll be greatly disappointed if I
  • return with no news of or from you, except that you received her letter
  • and said nothing!'
  • She appeared to wonder at this speech, and asked,--
  • 'Does Ellen like you?'
  • 'Yes, very well,' I replied, hesitatingly.
  • 'You must tell her,' she continued, 'that I would answer her letter, but
  • I have no materials for writing: not even a book from which I might tear
  • a leaf.'
  • 'No books!' I exclaimed. 'How do you contrive to live here without them?
  • if I may take the liberty to inquire. Though provided with a large
  • library, I'm frequently very dull at the Grange; take my books away, and
  • I should be desperate!'
  • 'I was always reading, when I had them,' said Catherine; 'and Mr.
  • Heathcliff never reads; so he took it into his head to destroy my books.
  • I have not had a glimpse of one for weeks. Only once, I searched through
  • Joseph's store of theology, to his great irritation; and once, Hareton, I
  • came upon a secret stock in your room--some Latin and Greek, and some
  • tales and poetry: all old friends. I brought the last here--and you
  • gathered them, as a magpie gathers silver spoons, for the mere love of
  • stealing! They are of no use to you; or else you concealed them in the
  • bad spirit that, as you cannot enjoy them, nobody else shall. Perhaps
  • _your_ envy counselled Mr. Heathcliff to rob me of my treasures? But
  • I've most of them written on my brain and printed in my heart, and you
  • cannot deprive me of those!'
  • Earnshaw blushed crimson when his cousin made this revelation of his
  • private literary accumulations, and stammered an indignant denial of her
  • accusations.
  • 'Mr. Hareton is desirous of increasing his amount of knowledge,' I said,
  • coming to his rescue. 'He is not _envious_, but _emulous_ of your
  • attainments. He'll be a clever scholar in a few years.'
  • 'And he wants me to sink into a dunce, meantime,' answered Catherine.
  • 'Yes, I hear him trying to spell and read to himself, and pretty blunders
  • he makes! I wish you would repeat Chevy Chase as you did yesterday: it
  • was extremely funny. I heard you; and I heard you turning over the
  • dictionary to seek out the hard words, and then cursing because you
  • couldn't read their explanations!'
  • The young man evidently thought it too bad that he should be laughed at
  • for his ignorance, and then laughed at for trying to remove it. I had a
  • similar notion; and, remembering Mrs. Dean's anecdote of his first
  • attempt at enlightening the darkness in which he had been reared, I
  • observed,--'But, Mrs. Heathcliff, we have each had a commencement, and
  • each stumbled and tottered on the threshold; had our teachers scorned
  • instead of aiding us, we should stumble and totter yet.'
  • 'Oh!' she replied, 'I don't wish to limit his acquirements: still, he has
  • no right to appropriate what is mine, and make it ridiculous to me with
  • his vile mistakes and mispronunciations! Those books, both prose and
  • verse, are consecrated to me by other associations; and I hate to have
  • them debased and profaned in his mouth! Besides, of all, he has selected
  • my favourite pieces that I love the most to repeat, as if out of
  • deliberate malice.'
  • Hareton's chest heaved in silence a minute: he laboured under a severe
  • sense of mortification and wrath, which it was no easy task to suppress.
  • I rose, and, from a gentlemanly idea of relieving his embarrassment, took
  • up my station in the doorway, surveying the external prospect as I stood.
  • He followed my example, and left the room; but presently reappeared,
  • bearing half a dozen volumes in his hands, which he threw into
  • Catherine's lap, exclaiming,--'Take them! I never want to hear, or read,
  • or think of them again!'
  • 'I won't have them now,' she answered. 'I shall connect them with you,
  • and hate them.'
  • She opened one that had obviously been often turned over, and read a
  • portion in the drawling tone of a beginner; then laughed, and threw it
  • from her. 'And listen,' she continued, provokingly, commencing a verse
  • of an old ballad in the same fashion.
  • But his self-love would endure no further torment: I heard, and not
  • altogether disapprovingly, a manual check given to her saucy tongue. The
  • little wretch had done her utmost to hurt her cousin's sensitive though
  • uncultivated feelings, and a physical argument was the only mode he had
  • of balancing the account, and repaying its effects on the inflictor. He
  • afterwards gathered the books and hurled them on the fire. I read in his
  • countenance what anguish it was to offer that sacrifice to spleen. I
  • fancied that as they consumed, he recalled the pleasure they had already
  • imparted, and the triumph and ever-increasing pleasure he had anticipated
  • from them; and I fancied I guessed the incitement to his secret studies
  • also. He had been content with daily labour and rough animal enjoyments,
  • till Catherine crossed his path. Shame at her scorn, and hope of her
  • approval, were his first prompters to higher pursuits; and instead of
  • guarding him from one and winning him to the other, his endeavours to
  • raise himself had produced just the contrary result.
  • 'Yes that's all the good that such a brute as you can get from them!'
  • cried Catherine, sucking her damaged lip, and watching the conflagration
  • with indignant eyes.
  • 'You'd _better_ hold your tongue, now,' he answered fiercely.
  • And his agitation precluded further speech; he advanced hastily to the
  • entrance, where I made way for him to pass. But ere he had crossed the
  • door-stones, Mr. Heathcliff, coming up the causeway, encountered him, and
  • laying hold of his shoulder asked,--'What's to do now, my lad?'
  • 'Naught, naught,' he said, and broke away to enjoy his grief and anger in
  • solitude.
  • Heathcliff gazed after him, and sighed.
  • 'It will be odd if I thwart myself,' he muttered, unconscious that I was
  • behind him. 'But when I look for his father in his face, I find _her_
  • every day more! How the devil is he so like? I can hardly bear to see
  • him.'
  • He bent his eyes to the ground, and walked moodily in. There was a
  • restless, anxious expression in his countenance. I had never remarked
  • there before; and he looked sparer in person. His daughter-in-law, on
  • perceiving him through the window, immediately escaped to the kitchen, so
  • that I remained alone.
  • 'I'm glad to see you out of doors again, Mr. Lockwood,' he said, in reply
  • to my greeting; 'from selfish motives partly: I don't think I could
  • readily supply your loss in this desolation. I've wondered more than
  • once what brought you here.'
  • 'An idle whim, I fear, sir,' was my answer; 'or else an idle whim is
  • going to spirit me away. I shall set out for London next week; and I
  • must give you warning that I feel no disposition to retain Thrushcross
  • Grange beyond the twelve months I agreed to rent it. I believe I shall
  • not live there any more.'
  • 'Oh, indeed; you're tired of being banished from the world, are you?' he
  • said. 'But if you be coming to plead off paying for a place you won't
  • occupy, your journey is useless: I never relent in exacting my due from
  • any one.'
  • 'I'm coming to plead off nothing about it,' I exclaimed, considerably
  • irritated. 'Should you wish it, I'll settle with you now,' and I drew my
  • note-book from my pocket.
  • 'No, no,' he replied, coolly; 'you'll leave sufficient behind to cover
  • your debts, if you fail to return: I'm not in such a hurry. Sit down and
  • take your dinner with us; a guest that is safe from repeating his visit
  • can generally be made welcome. Catherine! bring the things in: where are
  • you?'
  • Catherine reappeared, bearing a tray of knives and forks.
  • 'You may get your dinner with Joseph,' muttered Heathcliff, aside, 'and
  • remain in the kitchen till he is gone.'
  • She obeyed his directions very punctually: perhaps she had no temptation
  • to transgress. Living among clowns and misanthropists, she probably
  • cannot appreciate a better class of people when she meets them.
  • With Mr. Heathcliff, grim and saturnine, on the one hand, and Hareton,
  • absolutely dumb, on the other, I made a somewhat cheerless meal, and bade
  • adieu early. I would have departed by the back way, to get a last
  • glimpse of Catherine and annoy old Joseph; but Hareton received orders to
  • lead up my horse, and my host himself escorted me to the door, so I could
  • not fulfil my wish.
  • 'How dreary life gets over in that house!' I reflected, while riding down
  • the road. 'What a realisation of something more romantic than a fairy
  • tale it would have been for Mrs. Linton Heathcliff, had she and I struck
  • up an attachment, as her good nurse desired, and migrated together into
  • the stirring atmosphere of the town!'
  • CHAPTER XXXII
  • 1802.--This September I was invited to devastate the moors of a friend in
  • the north, and on my journey to his abode, I unexpectedly came within
  • fifteen miles of Gimmerton. The ostler at a roadside public-house was
  • holding a pail of water to refresh my horses, when a cart of very green
  • oats, newly reaped, passed by, and he remarked,--'Yon's frough Gimmerton,
  • nah! They're allas three wick' after other folk wi' ther harvest.'
  • 'Gimmerton?' I repeated--my residence in that locality had already grown
  • dim and dreamy. 'Ah! I know. How far is it from this?'
  • 'Happen fourteen mile o'er th' hills; and a rough road,' he answered.
  • A sudden impulse seized me to visit Thrushcross Grange. It was scarcely
  • noon, and I conceived that I might as well pass the night under my own
  • roof as in an inn. Besides, I could spare a day easily to arrange
  • matters with my landlord, and thus save myself the trouble of invading
  • the neighbourhood again. Having rested awhile, I directed my servant to
  • inquire the way to the village; and, with great fatigue to our beasts, we
  • managed the distance in some three hours.
  • I left him there, and proceeded down the valley alone. The grey church
  • looked greyer, and the lonely churchyard lonelier. I distinguished a
  • moor-sheep cropping the short turf on the graves. It was sweet, warm
  • weather--too warm for travelling; but the heat did not hinder me from
  • enjoying the delightful scenery above and below: had I seen it nearer
  • August, I'm sure it would have tempted me to waste a month among its
  • solitudes. In winter nothing more dreary, in summer nothing more divine,
  • than those glens shut in by hills, and those bluff, bold swells of heath.
  • I reached the Grange before sunset, and knocked for admittance; but the
  • family had retreated into the back premises, I judged, by one thin, blue
  • wreath, curling from the kitchen chimney, and they did not hear. I rode
  • into the court. Under the porch, a girl of nine or ten sat knitting, and
  • an old woman reclined on the housesteps, smoking a meditative pipe.
  • 'Is Mrs. Dean within?' I demanded of the dame.
  • 'Mistress Dean? Nay!' she answered, 'she doesn't bide here: shoo's up at
  • th' Heights.'
  • 'Are you the housekeeper, then?' I continued.
  • 'Eea, aw keep th' hause,' she replied.
  • 'Well, I'm Mr. Lockwood, the master. Are there any rooms to lodge me in,
  • I wonder? I wish to stay all night.'
  • 'T' maister!' she cried in astonishment. 'Whet, whoiver knew yah wur
  • coming? Yah sud ha' send word. They's nowt norther dry nor mensful
  • abaht t' place: nowt there isn't!'
  • She threw down her pipe and bustled in, the girl followed, and I entered
  • too; soon perceiving that her report was true, and, moreover, that I had
  • almost upset her wits by my unwelcome apparition, I bade her be composed.
  • I would go out for a walk; and, meantime she must try to prepare a corner
  • of a sitting-room for me to sup in, and a bedroom to sleep in. No
  • sweeping and dusting, only good fire and dry sheets were necessary. She
  • seemed willing to do her best; though she thrust the hearth-brush into
  • the grates in mistake for the poker, and malappropriated several other
  • articles of her craft: but I retired, confiding in her energy for a
  • resting-place against my return. Wuthering Heights was the goal of my
  • proposed excursion. An afterthought brought me back, when I had quitted
  • the court.
  • 'All well at the Heights?' I inquired of the woman.
  • 'Eea, f'r owt ee knaw!' she answered, skurrying away with a pan of hot
  • cinders.
  • I would have asked why Mrs. Dean had deserted the Grange, but it was
  • impossible to delay her at such a crisis, so I turned away and made my
  • exit, rambling leisurely along, with the glow of a sinking sun behind,
  • and the mild glory of a rising moon in front--one fading, and the other
  • brightening--as I quitted the park, and climbed the stony by-road
  • branching off to Mr. Heathcliff's dwelling. Before I arrived in sight of
  • it, all that remained of day was a beamless amber light along the west:
  • but I could see every pebble on the path, and every blade of grass, by
  • that splendid moon. I had neither to climb the gate nor to knock--it
  • yielded to my hand. That is an improvement, I thought. And I noticed
  • another, by the aid of my nostrils; a fragrance of stocks and wallflowers
  • wafted on the air from amongst the homely fruit-trees.
  • Both doors and lattices were open; and yet, as is usually the case in a
  • coal-district, a fine red fire illumined the chimney: the comfort which
  • the eye derives from it renders the extra heat endurable. But the house
  • of Wuthering Heights is so large that the inmates have plenty of space
  • for withdrawing out of its influence; and accordingly what inmates there
  • were had stationed themselves not far from one of the windows. I could
  • both see them and hear them talk before I entered, and looked and
  • listened in consequence; being moved thereto by a mingled sense of
  • curiosity and envy, that grew as I lingered.
  • 'Con-_trary_!' said a voice as sweet as a silver bell. 'That for the
  • third time, you dunce! I'm not going to tell you again. Recollect, or
  • I'll pull your hair!'
  • 'Contrary, then,' answered another, in deep but softened tones. 'And now,
  • kiss me, for minding so well.'
  • 'No, read it over first correctly, without a single mistake.'
  • The male speaker began to read: he was a young man, respectably dressed
  • and seated at a table, having a book before him. His handsome features
  • glowed with pleasure, and his eyes kept impatiently wandering from the
  • page to a small white hand over his shoulder, which recalled him by a
  • smart slap on the cheek, whenever its owner detected such signs of
  • inattention. Its owner stood behind; her light, shining ringlets
  • blending, at intervals, with his brown looks, as she bent to superintend
  • his studies; and her face--it was lucky he could not see her face, or he
  • would never have been so steady. I could; and I bit my lip in spite, at
  • having thrown away the chance I might have had of doing something besides
  • staring at its smiting beauty.
  • The task was done, not free from further blunders; but the pupil claimed
  • a reward, and received at least five kisses; which, however, he
  • generously returned. Then they came to the door, and from their
  • conversation I judged they were about to issue out and have a walk on the
  • moors. I supposed I should be condemned in Hareton Earnshaw's heart, if
  • not by his mouth, to the lowest pit in the infernal regions if I showed
  • my unfortunate person in his neighbourhood then; and feeling very mean
  • and malignant, I skulked round to seek refuge in the kitchen. There was
  • unobstructed admittance on that side also; and at the door sat my old
  • friend Nelly Dean, sewing and singing a song; which was often interrupted
  • from within by harsh words of scorn and intolerance, uttered in far from
  • musical accents.
  • 'I'd rayther, by th' haulf, hev' 'em swearing i' my lugs fro'h morn to
  • neeght, nor hearken ye hahsiver!' said the tenant of the kitchen, in
  • answer to an unheard speech of Nelly's. 'It's a blazing shame, that I
  • cannot oppen t' blessed Book, but yah set up them glories to sattan, and
  • all t' flaysome wickednesses that iver were born into th' warld! Oh!
  • ye're a raight nowt; and shoo's another; and that poor lad 'll be lost
  • atween ye. Poor lad!' he added, with a groan; 'he's witched: I'm sartin
  • on't. Oh, Lord, judge 'em, for there's norther law nor justice among wer
  • rullers!'
  • 'No! or we should be sitting in flaming fagots, I suppose,' retorted the
  • singer. 'But wisht, old man, and read your Bible like a Christian, and
  • never mind me. This is "Fairy Annie's Wedding"--a bonny tune--it goes to
  • a dance.'
  • Mrs. Dean was about to recommence, when I advanced; and recognising me
  • directly, she jumped to her feet, crying--'Why, bless you, Mr. Lockwood!
  • How could you think of returning in this way? All's shut up at
  • Thrushcross Grange. You should have given us notice!'
  • 'I've arranged to be accommodated there, for as long as I shall stay,' I
  • answered. 'I depart again to-morrow. And how are you transplanted here,
  • Mrs. Dean? tell me that.'
  • 'Zillah left, and Mr. Heathcliff wished me to come, soon after you went
  • to London, and stay till you returned. But, step in, pray! Have you
  • walked from Gimmerton this evening?'
  • 'From the Grange,' I replied; 'and while they make me lodging room there,
  • I want to finish my business with your master; because I don't think of
  • having another opportunity in a hurry.'
  • 'What business, sir?' said Nelly, conducting me into the house. 'He's
  • gone out at present, and won't return soon.'
  • 'About the rent,' I answered.
  • 'Oh! then it is with Mrs. Heathcliff you must settle,' she observed; 'or
  • rather with me. She has not learnt to manage her affairs yet, and I act
  • for her: there's nobody else.'
  • I looked surprised.
  • 'Ah! you have not heard of Heathcliff's death, I see,' she continued.
  • 'Heathcliff dead!' I exclaimed, astonished. 'How long ago?'
  • 'Three months since: but sit down, and let me take your hat, and I'll
  • tell you all about it. Stop, you have had nothing to eat, have you?'
  • 'I want nothing: I have ordered supper at home. You sit down too. I
  • never dreamt of his dying! Let me hear how it came to pass. You say you
  • don't expect them back for some time--the young people?'
  • 'No--I have to scold them every evening for their late rambles: but they
  • don't care for me. At least, have a drink of our old ale; it will do you
  • good: you seem weary.'
  • She hastened to fetch it before I could refuse, and I heard Joseph asking
  • whether 'it warn't a crying scandal that she should have followers at her
  • time of life? And then, to get them jocks out o' t' maister's cellar! He
  • fair shaamed to 'bide still and see it.'
  • She did not stay to retaliate, but re-entered in a minute, bearing a
  • reaming silver pint, whose contents I lauded with becoming earnestness.
  • And afterwards she furnished me with the sequel of Heathcliff's history.
  • He had a 'queer' end, as she expressed it.
  • I was summoned to Wuthering Heights, within a fortnight of your leaving
  • us, she said; and I obeyed joyfully, for Catherine's sake. My first
  • interview with her grieved and shocked me: she had altered so much since
  • our separation. Mr. Heathcliff did not explain his reasons for taking a
  • new mind about my coming here; he only told me he wanted me, and he was
  • tired of seeing Catherine: I must make the little parlour my
  • sitting-room, and keep her with me. It was enough if he were obliged to
  • see her once or twice a day. She seemed pleased at this arrangement; and,
  • by degrees, I smuggled over a great number of books, and other articles,
  • that had formed her amusement at the Grange; and flattered myself we
  • should get on in tolerable comfort. The delusion did not last long.
  • Catherine, contented at first, in a brief space grew irritable and
  • restless. For one thing, she was forbidden to move out of the garden, and
  • it fretted her sadly to be confined to its narrow bounds as spring drew
  • on; for another, in following the house, I was forced to quit her
  • frequently, and she complained of loneliness: she preferred quarrelling
  • with Joseph in the kitchen to sitting at peace in her solitude. I did
  • not mind their skirmishes: but Hareton was often obliged to seek the
  • kitchen also, when the master wanted to have the house to himself! and
  • though in the beginning she either left it at his approach, or quietly
  • joined in my occupations, and shunned remarking or addressing him--and
  • though he was always as sullen and silent as possible--after a while, she
  • changed her behaviour, and became incapable of letting him alone: talking
  • at him; commenting on his stupidity and idleness; expressing her wonder
  • how he could endure the life he lived--how he could sit a whole evening
  • staring into the fire, and dozing.
  • 'He's just like a dog, is he not, Ellen?' she once observed, 'or a
  • cart-horse? He does his work, eats his food, and sleeps eternally! What
  • a blank, dreary mind he must have! Do you ever dream, Hareton? And, if
  • you do, what is it about? But you can't speak to me!'
  • Then she looked at him; but he would neither open his mouth nor look
  • again.
  • 'He's, perhaps, dreaming now,' she continued. 'He twitched his shoulder
  • as Juno twitches hers. Ask him, Ellen.'
  • 'Mr. Hareton will ask the master to send you up-stairs, if you don't
  • behave!' I said. He had not only twitched his shoulder but clenched his
  • fist, as if tempted to use it.
  • 'I know why Hareton never speaks, when I am in the kitchen,' she
  • exclaimed, on another occasion. 'He is afraid I shall laugh at him.
  • Ellen, what do you think? He began to teach himself to read once; and,
  • because I laughed, he burned his books, and dropped it: was he not a
  • fool?'
  • 'Were not you naughty?' I said; 'answer me that.'
  • 'Perhaps I was,' she went on; 'but I did not expect him to be so silly.
  • Hareton, if I gave you a book, would you take it now? I'll try!'
  • She placed one she had been perusing on his hand; he flung it off, and
  • muttered, if she did not give over, he would break her neck.
  • 'Well, I shall put it here,' she said, 'in the table-drawer; and I'm
  • going to bed.'
  • Then she whispered me to watch whether he touched it, and departed. But
  • he would not come near it; and so I informed her in the morning, to her
  • great disappointment. I saw she was sorry for his persevering sulkiness
  • and indolence: her conscience reproved her for frightening him off
  • improving himself: she had done it effectually. But her ingenuity was at
  • work to remedy the injury: while I ironed, or pursued other such
  • stationary employments as I could not well do in the parlour, she would
  • bring some pleasant volume and read it aloud to me. When Hareton was
  • there, she generally paused in an interesting part, and left the book
  • lying about: that she did repeatedly; but he was as obstinate as a mule,
  • and, instead of snatching at her bait, in wet weather he took to smoking
  • with Joseph; and they sat like automatons, one on each side of the fire,
  • the elder happily too deaf to understand her wicked nonsense, as he would
  • have called it, the younger doing his best to seem to disregard it. On
  • fine evenings the latter followed his shooting expeditions, and Catherine
  • yawned and sighed, and teased me to talk to her, and ran off into the
  • court or garden the moment I began; and, as a last resource, cried, and
  • said she was tired of living: her life was useless.
  • Mr. Heathcliff, who grew more and more disinclined to society, had almost
  • banished Earnshaw from his apartment. Owing to an accident at the
  • commencement of March, he became for some days a fixture in the kitchen.
  • His gun burst while out on the hills by himself; a splinter cut his arm,
  • and he lost a good deal of blood before he could reach home. The
  • consequence was that, perforce, he was condemned to the fireside and
  • tranquillity, till he made it up again. It suited Catherine to have him
  • there: at any rate, it made her hate her room up-stairs more than ever:
  • and she would compel me to find out business below, that she might
  • accompany me.
  • On Easter Monday, Joseph went to Gimmerton fair with some cattle; and, in
  • the afternoon, I was busy getting up linen in the kitchen. Earnshaw sat,
  • morose as usual, at the chimney corner, and my little mistress was
  • beguiling an idle hour with drawing pictures on the window-panes, varying
  • her amusement by smothered bursts of songs, and whispered ejaculations,
  • and quick glances of annoyance and impatience in the direction of her
  • cousin, who steadfastly smoked, and looked into the grate. At a notice
  • that I could do with her no longer intercepting my light, she removed to
  • the hearthstone. I bestowed little attention on her proceedings, but,
  • presently, I heard her begin--'I've found out, Hareton, that I want--that
  • I'm glad--that I should like you to be my cousin now, if you had not
  • grown so cross to me, and so rough.'
  • Hareton returned no answer.
  • 'Hareton, Hareton, Hareton! do you hear?' she continued.
  • 'Get off wi' ye!' he growled, with uncompromising gruffness.
  • 'Let me take that pipe,' she said, cautiously advancing her hand and
  • abstracting it from his mouth.
  • Before he could attempt to recover it, it was broken, and behind the
  • fire. He swore at her and seized another.
  • 'Stop,' she cried, 'you must listen to me first; and I can't speak while
  • those clouds are floating in my face.'
  • 'Will you go to the devil!' he exclaimed, ferociously, 'and let me be!'
  • 'No,' she persisted, 'I won't: I can't tell what to do to make you talk
  • to me; and you are determined not to understand. When I call you stupid,
  • I don't mean anything: I don't mean that I despise you. Come, you shall
  • take notice of me, Hareton: you are my cousin, and you shall own me.'
  • 'I shall have naught to do wi' you and your mucky pride, and your damned
  • mocking tricks!' he answered. 'I'll go to hell, body and soul, before I
  • look sideways after you again. Side out o' t' gate, now, this minute!'
  • Catherine frowned, and retreated to the window-seat chewing her lip, and
  • endeavouring, by humming an eccentric tune, to conceal a growing tendency
  • to sob.
  • 'You should be friends with your cousin, Mr. Hareton,' I interrupted,
  • 'since she repents of her sauciness. It would do you a great deal of
  • good: it would make you another man to have her for a companion.'
  • 'A companion!' he cried; 'when she hates me, and does not think me fit to
  • wipe her shoon! Nay, if it made me a king, I'd not be scorned for
  • seeking her good-will any more.'
  • 'It is not I who hate you, it is you who hate me!' wept Cathy, no longer
  • disguising her trouble. 'You hate me as much as Mr. Heathcliff does, and
  • more.'
  • 'You're a damned liar,' began Earnshaw: 'why have I made him angry, by
  • taking your part, then, a hundred times? and that when you sneered at and
  • despised me, and--Go on plaguing me, and I'll step in yonder, and say you
  • worried me out of the kitchen!'
  • 'I didn't know you took my part,' she answered, drying her eyes; 'and I
  • was miserable and bitter at everybody; but now I thank you, and beg you
  • to forgive me: what can I do besides?'
  • She returned to the hearth, and frankly extended her hand. He blackened
  • and scowled like a thunder-cloud, and kept his fists resolutely clenched,
  • and his gaze fixed on the ground. Catherine, by instinct, must have
  • divined it was obdurate perversity, and not dislike, that prompted this
  • dogged conduct; for, after remaining an instant undecided, she stooped
  • and impressed on his cheek a gentle kiss. The little rogue thought I had
  • not seen her, and, drawing back, she took her former station by the
  • window, quite demurely. I shook my head reprovingly, and then she
  • blushed and whispered--'Well! what should I have done, Ellen? He
  • wouldn't shake hands, and he wouldn't look: I must show him some way that
  • I like him--that I want to be friends.'
  • Whether the kiss convinced Hareton, I cannot tell: he was very careful,
  • for some minutes, that his face should not be seen, and when he did raise
  • it, he was sadly puzzled where to turn his eyes.
  • Catherine employed herself in wrapping a handsome book neatly in white
  • paper, and having tied it with a bit of ribbon, and addressed it to 'Mr.
  • Hareton Earnshaw,' she desired me to be her ambassadress, and convey the
  • present to its destined recipient.
  • 'And tell him, if he'll take it, I'll come and teach him to read it
  • right,' she said; 'and, if he refuse it, I'll go upstairs, and never
  • tease him again.'
  • I carried it, and repeated the message; anxiously watched by my employer.
  • Hareton would not open his fingers, so I laid it on his knee. He did not
  • strike it off, either. I returned to my work. Catherine leaned her head
  • and arms on the table, till she heard the slight rustle of the covering
  • being removed; then she stole away, and quietly seated herself beside her
  • cousin. He trembled, and his face glowed: all his rudeness and all his
  • surly harshness had deserted him: he could not summon courage, at first,
  • to utter a syllable in reply to her questioning look, and her murmured
  • petition.
  • 'Say you forgive me, Hareton, do. You can make me so happy by speaking
  • that little word.'
  • He muttered something inaudible.
  • 'And you'll be my friend?' added Catherine, interrogatively.
  • 'Nay, you'll be ashamed of me every day of your life,' he answered; 'and
  • the more ashamed, the more you know me; and I cannot bide it.'
  • 'So you won't be my friend?' she said, smiling as sweet as honey, and
  • creeping close up.
  • I overheard no further distinguishable talk, but, on looking round again,
  • I perceived two such radiant countenances bent over the page of the
  • accepted book, that I did not doubt the treaty had been ratified on both
  • sides; and the enemies were, thenceforth, sworn allies.
  • The work they studied was full of costly pictures; and those and their
  • position had charm enough to keep them unmoved till Joseph came home. He,
  • poor man, was perfectly aghast at the spectacle of Catherine seated on
  • the same bench with Hareton Earnshaw, leaning her hand on his shoulder;
  • and confounded at his favourite's endurance of her proximity: it affected
  • him too deeply to allow an observation on the subject that night. His
  • emotion was only revealed by the immense sighs he drew, as he solemnly
  • spread his large Bible on the table, and overlaid it with dirty
  • bank-notes from his pocket-book, the produce of the day's transactions.
  • At length he summoned Hareton from his seat.
  • 'Tak' these in to t' maister, lad,' he said, 'and bide there. I's gang
  • up to my own rahm. This hoile's neither mensful nor seemly for us: we
  • mun side out and seearch another.'
  • 'Come, Catherine,' I said, 'we must "side out" too: I've done my ironing.
  • Are you ready to go?'
  • 'It is not eight o'clock!' she answered, rising unwillingly.
  • 'Hareton, I'll leave this book upon the chimney-piece, and I'll bring
  • some more to-morrow.'
  • 'Ony books that yah leave, I shall tak' into th' hahse,' said Joseph,
  • 'and it'll be mitch if yah find 'em agean; soa, yah may plase yerseln!'
  • Cathy threatened that his library should pay for hers; and, smiling as
  • she passed Hareton, went singing up-stairs: lighter of heart, I venture
  • to say, than ever she had been under that roof before; except, perhaps,
  • during her earliest visits to Linton.
  • The intimacy thus commenced grew rapidly; though it encountered temporary
  • interruptions. Earnshaw was not to be civilized with a wish, and my
  • young lady was no philosopher, and no paragon of patience; but both their
  • minds tending to the same point--one loving and desiring to esteem, and
  • the other loving and desiring to be esteemed--they contrived in the end
  • to reach it.
  • You see, Mr. Lockwood, it was easy enough to win Mrs. Heathcliff's heart.
  • But now, I'm glad you did not try. The crown of all my wishes will be
  • the union of those two. I shall envy no one on their wedding day: there
  • won't be a happier woman than myself in England!
  • CHAPTER XXXIII
  • On the morrow of that Monday, Earnshaw being still unable to follow his
  • ordinary employments, and therefore remaining about the house, I speedily
  • found it would be impracticable to retain my charge beside me, as
  • heretofore. She got downstairs before me, and out into the garden, where
  • she had seen her cousin performing some easy work; and when I went to bid
  • them come to breakfast, I saw she had persuaded him to clear a large
  • space of ground from currant and gooseberry bushes, and they were busy
  • planning together an importation of plants from the Grange.
  • I was terrified at the devastation which had been accomplished in a brief
  • half-hour; the black-currant trees were the apple of Joseph's eye, and
  • she had just fixed her choice of a flower-bed in the midst of them.
  • 'There! That will be all shown to the master,' I exclaimed, 'the minute
  • it is discovered. And what excuse have you to offer for taking such
  • liberties with the garden? We shall have a fine explosion on the head of
  • it: see if we don't! Mr. Hareton, I wonder you should have no more wit
  • than to go and make that mess at her bidding!'
  • 'I'd forgotten they were Joseph's,' answered Earnshaw, rather puzzled;
  • 'but I'll tell him I did it.'
  • We always ate our meals with Mr. Heathcliff. I held the mistress's post
  • in making tea and carving; so I was indispensable at table. Catherine
  • usually sat by me, but to-day she stole nearer to Hareton; and I
  • presently saw she would have no more discretion in her friendship than
  • she had in her hostility.
  • 'Now, mind you don't talk with and notice your cousin too much,' were my
  • whispered instructions as we entered the room. 'It will certainly annoy
  • Mr. Heathcliff, and he'll be mad at you both.'
  • 'I'm not going to,' she answered.
  • The minute after, she had sidled to him, and was sticking primroses in
  • his plate of porridge.
  • He dared not speak to her there: he dared hardly look; and yet she went
  • on teasing, till he was twice on the point of being provoked to laugh. I
  • frowned, and then she glanced towards the master: whose mind was occupied
  • on other subjects than his company, as his countenance evinced; and she
  • grew serious for an instant, scrutinizing him with deep gravity.
  • Afterwards she turned, and recommenced her nonsense; at last, Hareton
  • uttered a smothered laugh. Mr. Heathcliff started; his eye rapidly
  • surveyed our faces, Catherine met it with her accustomed look of
  • nervousness and yet defiance, which he abhorred.
  • 'It is well you are out of my reach,' he exclaimed. 'What fiend
  • possesses you to stare back at me, continually, with those infernal eyes?
  • Down with them! and don't remind me of your existence again. I thought I
  • had cured you of laughing.'
  • 'It was me,' muttered Hareton.
  • 'What do you say?' demanded the master.
  • Hareton looked at his plate, and did not repeat the confession. Mr.
  • Heathcliff looked at him a bit, and then silently resumed his breakfast
  • and his interrupted musing. We had nearly finished, and the two young
  • people prudently shifted wider asunder, so I anticipated no further
  • disturbance during that sitting: when Joseph appeared at the door,
  • revealing by his quivering lip and furious eyes that the outrage
  • committed on his precious shrubs was detected. He must have seen Cathy
  • and her cousin about the spot before he examined it, for while his jaws
  • worked like those of a cow chewing its cud, and rendered his speech
  • difficult to understand, he began:--
  • 'I mun hev' my wage, and I mun goa! I _hed_ aimed to dee wheare I'd
  • sarved fur sixty year; and I thowt I'd lug my books up into t' garret,
  • and all my bits o' stuff, and they sud hev' t' kitchen to theirseln; for
  • t' sake o' quietness. It wur hard to gie up my awn hearthstun, but I
  • thowt I _could_ do that! But nah, shoo's taan my garden fro' me, and by
  • th' heart, maister, I cannot stand it! Yah may bend to th' yoak an ye
  • will--I noan used to 't, and an old man doesn't sooin get used to new
  • barthens. I'd rayther arn my bite an' my sup wi' a hammer in th' road!'
  • 'Now, now, idiot!' interrupted Heathcliff, 'cut it short! What's your
  • grievance? I'll interfere in no quarrels between you and Nelly. She may
  • thrust you into the coal-hole for anything I care.'
  • 'It's noan Nelly!' answered Joseph. 'I sudn't shift for Nelly--nasty ill
  • nowt as shoo is. Thank God! _shoo_ cannot stale t' sowl o' nob'dy! Shoo
  • wer niver soa handsome, but what a body mud look at her 'bout winking.
  • It's yon flaysome, graceless quean, that's witched our lad, wi' her bold
  • een and her forrard ways--till--Nay! it fair brusts my heart! He's
  • forgotten all I've done for him, and made on him, and goan and riven up a
  • whole row o' t' grandest currant-trees i' t' garden!' and here he
  • lamented outright; unmanned by a sense of his bitter injuries, and
  • Earnshaw's ingratitude and dangerous condition.
  • 'Is the fool drunk?' asked Mr. Heathcliff. 'Hareton, is it you he's
  • finding fault with?'
  • 'I've pulled up two or three bushes,' replied the young man; 'but I'm
  • going to set 'em again.'
  • 'And why have you pulled them up?' said the master.
  • Catherine wisely put in her tongue.
  • 'We wanted to plant some flowers there,' she cried. 'I'm the only person
  • to blame, for I wished him to do it.'
  • 'And who the devil gave _you_ leave to touch a stick about the place?'
  • demanded her father-in-law, much surprised. 'And who ordered _you_ to
  • obey her?' he added, turning to Hareton.
  • The latter was speechless; his cousin replied--'You shouldn't grudge a
  • few yards of earth for me to ornament, when you have taken all my land!'
  • 'Your land, insolent slut! You never had any,' said Heathcliff.
  • 'And my money,' she continued; returning his angry glare, and meantime
  • biting a piece of crust, the remnant of her breakfast.
  • 'Silence!' he exclaimed. 'Get done, and begone!'
  • 'And Hareton's land, and his money,' pursued the reckless thing. 'Hareton
  • and I are friends now; and I shall tell him all about you!'
  • The master seemed confounded a moment: he grew pale, and rose up, eyeing
  • her all the while, with an expression of mortal hate.
  • 'If you strike me, Hareton will strike you,' she said; 'so you may as
  • well sit down.'
  • 'If Hareton does not turn you out of the room, I'll strike him to hell,'
  • thundered Heathcliff. 'Damnable witch! dare you pretend to rouse him
  • against me? Off with her! Do you hear? Fling her into the kitchen!
  • I'll kill her, Ellen Dean, if you let her come into my sight again!'
  • Hareton tried, under his breath, to persuade her to go.
  • 'Drag her away!' he cried, savagely. 'Are you staying to talk?' And he
  • approached to execute his own command.
  • 'He'll not obey you, wicked man, any more,' said Catherine; 'and he'll
  • soon detest you as much as I do.'
  • 'Wisht! wisht!' muttered the young man, reproachfully; 'I will not hear
  • you speak so to him. Have done.'
  • 'But you won't let him strike me?' she cried.
  • 'Come, then,' he whispered earnestly.
  • It was too late: Heathcliff had caught hold of her.
  • 'Now, _you_ go!' he said to Earnshaw. 'Accursed witch! this time she has
  • provoked me when I could not bear it; and I'll make her repent it for
  • ever!'
  • He had his hand in her hair; Hareton attempted to release her locks,
  • entreating him not to hurt her that once. Heathcliff's black eyes
  • flashed; he seemed ready to tear Catherine in pieces, and I was just
  • worked up to risk coming to the rescue, when of a sudden his fingers
  • relaxed; he shifted his grasp from her head to her arm, and gazed
  • intently in her face. Then he drew his hand over his eyes, stood a
  • moment to collect himself apparently, and turning anew to Catherine,
  • said, with assumed calmness--'You must learn to avoid putting me in a
  • passion, or I shall really murder you some time! Go with Mrs. Dean, and
  • keep with her; and confine your insolence to her ears. As to Hareton
  • Earnshaw, if I see him listen to you, I'll send him seeking his bread
  • where he can get it! Your love will make him an outcast and a beggar.
  • Nelly, take her; and leave me, all of you! Leave me!'
  • I led my young lady out: she was too glad of her escape to resist; the
  • other followed, and Mr. Heathcliff had the room to himself till dinner. I
  • had counselled Catherine to dine up-stairs; but, as soon as he perceived
  • her vacant seat, he sent me to call her. He spoke to none of us, ate
  • very little, and went out directly afterwards, intimating that he should
  • not return before evening.
  • The two new friends established themselves in the house during his
  • absence; where I heard Hareton sternly check his cousin, on her offering
  • a revelation of her father-in-law's conduct to his father. He said he
  • wouldn't suffer a word to be uttered in his disparagement: if he were the
  • devil, it didn't signify; he would stand by him; and he'd rather she
  • would abuse himself, as she used to, than begin on Mr. Heathcliff.
  • Catherine was waxing cross at this; but he found means to make her hold
  • her tongue, by asking how she would like _him_ to speak ill of her
  • father? Then she comprehended that Earnshaw took the master's reputation
  • home to himself; and was attached by ties stronger than reason could
  • break--chains, forged by habit, which it would be cruel to attempt to
  • loosen. She showed a good heart, thenceforth, in avoiding both
  • complaints and expressions of antipathy concerning Heathcliff; and
  • confessed to me her sorrow that she had endeavoured to raise a bad spirit
  • between him and Hareton: indeed, I don't believe she has ever breathed a
  • syllable, in the latter's hearing, against her oppressor since.
  • When this slight disagreement was over, they were friends again, and as
  • busy as possible in their several occupations of pupil and teacher. I
  • came in to sit with them, after I had done my work; and I felt so soothed
  • and comforted to watch them, that I did not notice how time got on. You
  • know, they both appeared in a measure my children: I had long been proud
  • of one; and now, I was sure, the other would be a source of equal
  • satisfaction. His honest, warm, and intelligent nature shook off rapidly
  • the clouds of ignorance and degradation in which it had been bred; and
  • Catherine's sincere commendations acted as a spur to his industry. His
  • brightening mind brightened his features, and added spirit and nobility
  • to their aspect: I could hardly fancy it the same individual I had beheld
  • on the day I discovered my little lady at Wuthering Heights, after her
  • expedition to the Crags. While I admired and they laboured, dusk drew
  • on, and with it returned the master. He came upon us quite unexpectedly,
  • entering by the front way, and had a full view of the whole three, ere we
  • could raise our heads to glance at him. Well, I reflected, there was
  • never a pleasanter, or more harmless sight; and it will be a burning
  • shame to scold them. The red fire-light glowed on their two bonny heads,
  • and revealed their faces animated with the eager interest of children;
  • for, though he was twenty-three and she eighteen, each had so much of
  • novelty to feel and learn, that neither experienced nor evinced the
  • sentiments of sober disenchanted maturity.
  • They lifted their eyes together, to encounter Mr. Heathcliff: perhaps you
  • have never remarked that their eyes are precisely similar, and they are
  • those of Catherine Earnshaw. The present Catherine has no other likeness
  • to her, except a breadth of forehead, and a certain arch of the nostril
  • that makes her appear rather haughty, whether she will or not. With
  • Hareton the resemblance is carried farther: it is singular at all times,
  • _then_ it was particularly striking; because his senses were alert, and
  • his mental faculties wakened to unwonted activity. I suppose this
  • resemblance disarmed Mr. Heathcliff: he walked to the hearth in evident
  • agitation; but it quickly subsided as he looked at the young man: or, I
  • should say, altered its character; for it was there yet. He took the
  • book from his hand, and glanced at the open page, then returned it
  • without any observation; merely signing Catherine away: her companion
  • lingered very little behind her, and I was about to depart also, but he
  • bid me sit still.
  • 'It is a poor conclusion, is it not?' he observed, having brooded awhile
  • on the scene he had just witnessed: 'an absurd termination to my violent
  • exertions? I get levers and mattocks to demolish the two houses, and
  • train myself to be capable of working like Hercules, and when everything
  • is ready and in my power, I find the will to lift a slate off either roof
  • has vanished! My old enemies have not beaten me; now would be the
  • precise time to revenge myself on their representatives: I could do it;
  • and none could hinder me. But where is the use? I don't care for
  • striking: I can't take the trouble to raise my hand! That sounds as if I
  • had been labouring the whole time only to exhibit a fine trait of
  • magnanimity. It is far from being the case: I have lost the faculty of
  • enjoying their destruction, and I am too idle to destroy for nothing.
  • 'Nelly, there is a strange change approaching; I'm in its shadow at
  • present. I take so little interest in my daily life that I hardly
  • remember to eat and drink. Those two who have left the room are the only
  • objects which retain a distinct material appearance to me; and that
  • appearance causes me pain, amounting to agony. About _her_ I won't
  • speak; and I don't desire to think; but I earnestly wish she were
  • invisible: her presence invokes only maddening sensations. _He_ moves me
  • differently: and yet if I could do it without seeming insane, I'd never
  • see him again! You'll perhaps think me rather inclined to become so,' he
  • added, making an effort to smile, 'if I try to describe the thousand
  • forms of past associations and ideas he awakens or embodies. But you'll
  • not talk of what I tell you; and my mind is so eternally secluded in
  • itself, it is tempting at last to turn it out to another.
  • 'Five minutes ago Hareton seemed a personification of my youth, not a
  • human being; I felt to him in such a variety of ways, that it would have
  • been impossible to have accosted him rationally. In the first place, his
  • startling likeness to Catherine connected him fearfully with her. That,
  • however, which you may suppose the most potent to arrest my imagination,
  • is actually the least: for what is not connected with her to me? and what
  • does not recall her? I cannot look down to this floor, but her features
  • are shaped in the flags! In every cloud, in every tree--filling the air
  • at night, and caught by glimpses in every object by day--I am surrounded
  • with her image! The most ordinary faces of men and women--my own
  • features--mock me with a resemblance. The entire world is a dreadful
  • collection of memoranda that she did exist, and that I have lost her!
  • Well, Hareton's aspect was the ghost of my immortal love; of my wild
  • endeavours to hold my right; my degradation, my pride, my happiness, and
  • my anguish--
  • 'But it is frenzy to repeat these thoughts to you: only it will let you
  • know why, with a reluctance to be always alone, his society is no
  • benefit; rather an aggravation of the constant torment I suffer: and it
  • partly contributes to render me regardless how he and his cousin go on
  • together. I can give them no attention any more.'
  • 'But what do you mean by a _change_, Mr. Heathcliff?' I said, alarmed at
  • his manner: though he was neither in danger of losing his senses, nor
  • dying, according to my judgment: he was quite strong and healthy; and, as
  • to his reason, from childhood he had a delight in dwelling on dark
  • things, and entertaining odd fancies. He might have had a monomania on
  • the subject of his departed idol; but on every other point his wits were
  • as sound as mine.
  • 'I shall not know that till it comes,' he said; 'I'm only half conscious
  • of it now.'
  • 'You have no feeling of illness, have you?' I asked.
  • 'No, Nelly, I have not,' he answered.
  • 'Then you are not afraid of death?' I pursued.
  • 'Afraid? No!' he replied. 'I have neither a fear, nor a presentiment,
  • nor a hope of death. Why should I? With my hard constitution and
  • temperate mode of living, and unperilous occupations, I ought to, and
  • probably _shall_, remain above ground till there is scarcely a black hair
  • on my head. And yet I cannot continue in this condition! I have to
  • remind myself to breathe--almost to remind my heart to beat! And it is
  • like bending back a stiff spring: it is by compulsion that I do the
  • slightest act not prompted by one thought; and by compulsion that I
  • notice anything alive or dead, which is not associated with one universal
  • idea. I have a single wish, and my whole being and faculties are
  • yearning to attain it. They have yearned towards it so long, and so
  • unwaveringly, that I'm convinced it will be reached--and soon--because it
  • has devoured my existence: I am swallowed up in the anticipation of its
  • fulfilment. My confessions have not relieved me; but they may account
  • for some otherwise unaccountable phases of humour which I show. O God!
  • It is a long fight; I wish it were over!'
  • He began to pace the room, muttering terrible things to himself, till I
  • was inclined to believe, as he said Joseph did, that conscience had
  • turned his heart to an earthly hell. I wondered greatly how it would
  • end. Though he seldom before had revealed this state of mind, even by
  • looks, it was his habitual mood, I had no doubt: he asserted it himself;
  • but not a soul, from his general bearing, would have conjectured the
  • fact. You did not when you saw him, Mr. Lockwood: and at the period of
  • which I speak, he was just the same as then; only fonder of continued
  • solitude, and perhaps still more laconic in company.
  • CHAPTER XXXIV
  • For some days after that evening Mr. Heathcliff shunned meeting us at
  • meals; yet he would not consent formally to exclude Hareton and Cathy. He
  • had an aversion to yielding so completely to his feelings, choosing
  • rather to absent himself; and eating once in twenty-four hours seemed
  • sufficient sustenance for him.
  • One night, after the family were in bed, I heard him go downstairs, and
  • out at the front door. I did not hear him re-enter, and in the morning I
  • found he was still away. We were in April then: the weather was sweet
  • and warm, the grass as green as showers and sun could make it, and the
  • two dwarf apple-trees near the southern wall in full bloom. After
  • breakfast, Catherine insisted on my bringing a chair and sitting with my
  • work under the fir-trees at the end of the house; and she beguiled
  • Hareton, who had perfectly recovered from his accident, to dig and
  • arrange her little garden, which was shifted to that corner by the
  • influence of Joseph's complaints. I was comfortably revelling in the
  • spring fragrance around, and the beautiful soft blue overhead, when my
  • young lady, who had run down near the gate to procure some primrose roots
  • for a border, returned only half laden, and informed us that Mr.
  • Heathcliff was coming in. 'And he spoke to me,' she added, with a
  • perplexed countenance.
  • 'What did he say?' asked Hareton.
  • 'He told me to begone as fast as I could,' she answered. 'But he looked
  • so different from his usual look that I stopped a moment to stare at
  • him.'
  • 'How?' he inquired.
  • 'Why, almost bright and cheerful. No, _almost_ nothing--_very much_
  • excited, and wild, and glad!' she replied.
  • 'Night-walking amuses him, then,' I remarked, affecting a careless
  • manner: in reality as surprised as she was, and anxious to ascertain the
  • truth of her statement; for to see the master looking glad would not be
  • an every-day spectacle. I framed an excuse to go in. Heathcliff stood
  • at the open door; he was pale, and he trembled: yet, certainly, he had a
  • strange joyful glitter in his eyes, that altered the aspect of his whole
  • face.
  • 'Will you have some breakfast?' I said. 'You must be hungry, rambling
  • about all night!' I wanted to discover where he had been, but I did not
  • like to ask directly.
  • 'No, I'm not hungry,' he answered, averting his head, and speaking rather
  • contemptuously, as if he guessed I was trying to divine the occasion of
  • his good humour.
  • I felt perplexed: I didn't know whether it were not a proper opportunity
  • to offer a bit of admonition.
  • 'I don't think it right to wander out of doors,' I observed, 'instead of
  • being in bed: it is not wise, at any rate this moist season. I daresay
  • you'll catch a bad cold or a fever: you have something the matter with
  • you now!'
  • 'Nothing but what I can bear,' he replied; 'and with the greatest
  • pleasure, provided you'll leave me alone: get in, and don't annoy me.'
  • I obeyed: and, in passing, I noticed he breathed as fast as a cat.
  • 'Yes!' I reflected to myself, 'we shall have a fit of illness. I cannot
  • conceive what he has been doing.'
  • That noon he sat down to dinner with us, and received a heaped-up plate
  • from my hands, as if he intended to make amends for previous fasting.
  • 'I've neither cold nor fever, Nelly,' he remarked, in allusion to my
  • morning's speech; 'and I'm ready to do justice to the food you give me.'
  • He took his knife and fork, and was going to commence eating, when the
  • inclination appeared to become suddenly extinct. He laid them on the
  • table, looked eagerly towards the window, then rose and went out. We saw
  • him walking to and fro in the garden while we concluded our meal, and
  • Earnshaw said he'd go and ask why he would not dine: he thought we had
  • grieved him some way.
  • 'Well, is he coming?' cried Catherine, when her cousin returned.
  • 'Nay,' he answered; 'but he's not angry: he seemed rarely pleased indeed;
  • only I made him impatient by speaking to him twice; and then he bid me be
  • off to you: he wondered how I could want the company of anybody else.'
  • I set his plate to keep warm on the fender; and after an hour or two he
  • re-entered, when the room was clear, in no degree calmer: the same
  • unnatural--it was unnatural--appearance of joy under his black brows; the
  • same bloodless hue, and his teeth visible, now and then, in a kind of
  • smile; his frame shivering, not as one shivers with chill or weakness,
  • but as a tight-stretched cord vibrates--a strong thrilling, rather than
  • trembling.
  • I will ask what is the matter, I thought; or who should? And I
  • exclaimed--'Have you heard any good news, Mr. Heathcliff? You look
  • uncommonly animated.'
  • 'Where should good news come from to me?' he said. 'I'm animated with
  • hunger; and, seemingly, I must not eat.'
  • 'Your dinner is here,' I returned; 'why won't you get it?'
  • 'I don't want it now,' he muttered, hastily: 'I'll wait till supper. And,
  • Nelly, once for all, let me beg you to warn Hareton and the other away
  • from me. I wish to be troubled by nobody: I wish to have this place to
  • myself.'
  • 'Is there some new reason for this banishment?' I inquired. 'Tell me why
  • you are so queer, Mr. Heathcliff? Where were you last night? I'm not
  • putting the question through idle curiosity, but--'
  • 'You are putting the question through very idle curiosity,' he
  • interrupted, with a laugh. 'Yet I'll answer it. Last night I was on the
  • threshold of hell. To-day, I am within sight of my heaven. I have my
  • eyes on it: hardly three feet to sever me! And now you'd better go!
  • You'll neither see nor hear anything to frighten you, if you refrain from
  • prying.'
  • Having swept the hearth and wiped the table, I departed; more perplexed
  • than ever.
  • He did not quit the house again that afternoon, and no one intruded on
  • his solitude; till, at eight o'clock, I deemed it proper, though
  • unsummoned, to carry a candle and his supper to him. He was leaning
  • against the ledge of an open lattice, but not looking out: his face was
  • turned to the interior gloom. The fire had smouldered to ashes; the room
  • was filled with the damp, mild air of the cloudy evening; and so still,
  • that not only the murmur of the beck down Gimmerton was distinguishable,
  • but its ripples and its gurgling over the pebbles, or through the large
  • stones which it could not cover. I uttered an ejaculation of discontent
  • at seeing the dismal grate, and commenced shutting the casements, one
  • after another, till I came to his.
  • 'Must I close this?' I asked, in order to rouse him; for he would not
  • stir.
  • The light flashed on his features as I spoke. Oh, Mr. Lockwood, I cannot
  • express what a terrible start I got by the momentary view! Those deep
  • black eyes! That smile, and ghastly paleness! It appeared to me, not
  • Mr. Heathcliff, but a goblin; and, in my terror, I let the candle bend
  • towards the wall, and it left me in darkness.
  • 'Yes, close it,' he replied, in his familiar voice. 'There, that is pure
  • awkwardness! Why did you hold the candle horizontally? Be quick, and
  • bring another.'
  • I hurried out in a foolish state of dread, and said to Joseph--'The
  • master wishes you to take him a light and rekindle the fire.' For I
  • dared not go in myself again just then.
  • Joseph rattled some fire into the shovel, and went: but he brought it
  • back immediately, with the supper-tray in his other hand, explaining that
  • Mr. Heathcliff was going to bed, and he wanted nothing to eat till
  • morning. We heard him mount the stairs directly; he did not proceed to
  • his ordinary chamber, but turned into that with the panelled bed: its
  • window, as I mentioned before, is wide enough for anybody to get through;
  • and it struck me that he plotted another midnight excursion, of which he
  • had rather we had no suspicion.
  • 'Is he a ghoul or a vampire?' I mused. I had read of such hideous
  • incarnate demons. And then I set myself to reflect how I had tended him
  • in infancy, and watched him grow to youth, and followed him almost
  • through his whole course; and what absurd nonsense it was to yield to
  • that sense of horror. 'But where did he come from, the little dark
  • thing, harboured by a good man to his bane?' muttered Superstition, as I
  • dozed into unconsciousness. And I began, half dreaming, to weary myself
  • with imagining some fit parentage for him; and, repeating my waking
  • meditations, I tracked his existence over again, with grim variations; at
  • last, picturing his death and funeral: of which, all I can remember is,
  • being exceedingly vexed at having the task of dictating an inscription
  • for his monument, and consulting the sexton about it; and, as he had no
  • surname, and we could not tell his age, we were obliged to content
  • ourselves with the single word, 'Heathcliff.' That came true: we were.
  • If you enter the kirkyard, you'll read, on his headstone, only that, and
  • the date of his death.
  • Dawn restored me to common sense. I rose, and went into the garden, as
  • soon as I could see, to ascertain if there were any footmarks under his
  • window. There were none. 'He has stayed at home,' I thought, 'and he'll
  • be all right to-day.' I prepared breakfast for the household, as was my
  • usual custom, but told Hareton and Catherine to get theirs ere the master
  • came down, for he lay late. They preferred taking it out of doors, under
  • the trees, and I set a little table to accommodate them.
  • On my re-entrance, I found Mr. Heathcliff below. He and Joseph were
  • conversing about some farming business; he gave clear, minute directions
  • concerning the matter discussed, but he spoke rapidly, and turned his
  • head continually aside, and had the same excited expression, even more
  • exaggerated. When Joseph quitted the room he took his seat in the place
  • he generally chose, and I put a basin of coffee before him. He drew it
  • nearer, and then rested his arms on the table, and looked at the opposite
  • wall, as I supposed, surveying one particular portion, up and down, with
  • glittering, restless eyes, and with such eager interest that he stopped
  • breathing during half a minute together.
  • 'Come now,' I exclaimed, pushing some bread against his hand, 'eat and
  • drink that, while it is hot: it has been waiting near an hour.'
  • He didn't notice me, and yet he smiled. I'd rather have seen him gnash
  • his teeth than smile so.
  • 'Mr. Heathcliff! master!' I cried, 'don't, for God's sake, stare as if
  • you saw an unearthly vision.'
  • 'Don't, for God's sake, shout so loud,' he replied. 'Turn round, and
  • tell me, are we by ourselves?'
  • 'Of course,' was my answer; 'of course we are.'
  • Still, I involuntarily obeyed him, as if I was not quite sure. With a
  • sweep of his hand he cleared a vacant space in front among the breakfast
  • things, and leant forward to gaze more at his ease.
  • Now, I perceived he was not looking at the wall; for when I regarded him
  • alone, it seemed exactly that he gazed at something within two yards'
  • distance. And whatever it was, it communicated, apparently, both
  • pleasure and pain in exquisite extremes: at least the anguished, yet
  • raptured, expression of his countenance suggested that idea. The fancied
  • object was not fixed, either: his eyes pursued it with unwearied
  • diligence, and, even in speaking to me, were never weaned away. I vainly
  • reminded him of his protracted abstinence from food: if he stirred to
  • touch anything in compliance with my entreaties, if he stretched his hand
  • out to get a piece of bread, his fingers clenched before they reached it,
  • and remained on the table, forgetful of their aim.
  • I sat, a model of patience, trying to attract his absorbed attention from
  • its engrossing speculation; till he grew irritable, and got up, asking
  • why I would not allow him to have his own time in taking his meals? and
  • saying that on the next occasion I needn't wait: I might set the things
  • down and go. Having uttered these words he left the house, slowly
  • sauntered down the garden path, and disappeared through the gate.
  • The hours crept anxiously by: another evening came. I did not retire to
  • rest till late, and when I did, I could not sleep. He returned after
  • midnight, and, instead of going to bed, shut himself into the room
  • beneath. I listened, and tossed about, and, finally, dressed and
  • descended. It was too irksome to lie there, harassing my brain with a
  • hundred idle misgivings.
  • I distinguished Mr. Heathcliff's step, restlessly measuring the floor,
  • and he frequently broke the silence by a deep inspiration, resembling a
  • groan. He muttered detached words also; the only one I could catch was
  • the name of Catherine, coupled with some wild term of endearment or
  • suffering; and spoken as one would speak to a person present; low and
  • earnest, and wrung from the depth of his soul. I had not courage to walk
  • straight into the apartment; but I desired to divert him from his
  • reverie, and therefore fell foul of the kitchen fire, stirred it, and
  • began to scrape the cinders. It drew him forth sooner than I expected.
  • He opened the door immediately, and said--'Nelly, come here--is it
  • morning? Come in with your light.'
  • 'It is striking four,' I answered. 'You want a candle to take up-stairs:
  • you might have lit one at this fire.'
  • 'No, I don't wish to go up-stairs,' he said. 'Come in, and kindle _me_ a
  • fire, and do anything there is to do about the room.'
  • 'I must blow the coals red first, before I can carry any,' I replied,
  • getting a chair and the bellows.
  • He roamed to and fro, meantime, in a state approaching distraction; his
  • heavy sighs succeeding each other so thick as to leave no space for
  • common breathing between.
  • 'When day breaks I'll send for Green,' he said; 'I wish to make some
  • legal inquiries of him while I can bestow a thought on those matters, and
  • while I can act calmly. I have not written my will yet; and how to leave
  • my property I cannot determine. I wish I could annihilate it from the
  • face of the earth.'
  • 'I would not talk so, Mr. Heathcliff,' I interposed. 'Let your will be a
  • while: you'll be spared to repent of your many injustices yet! I never
  • expected that your nerves would be disordered: they are, at present,
  • marvellously so, however; and almost entirely through your own fault.
  • The way you've passed these three last days might knock up a Titan. Do
  • take some food, and some repose. You need only look at yourself in a
  • glass to see how you require both. Your cheeks are hollow, and your eyes
  • blood-shot, like a person starving with hunger and going blind with loss
  • of sleep.'
  • 'It is not my fault that I cannot eat or rest,' he replied. 'I assure
  • you it is through no settled designs. I'll do both, as soon as I
  • possibly can. But you might as well bid a man struggling in the water
  • rest within arms' length of the shore! I must reach it first, and then
  • I'll rest. Well, never mind Mr. Green: as to repenting of my injustices,
  • I've done no injustice, and I repent of nothing. I'm too happy; and yet
  • I'm not happy enough. My soul's bliss kills my body, but does not
  • satisfy itself.'
  • 'Happy, master?' I cried. 'Strange happiness! If you would hear me
  • without being angry, I might offer some advice that would make you
  • happier.'
  • 'What is that?' he asked. 'Give it.'
  • 'You are aware, Mr. Heathcliff,' I said, 'that from the time you were
  • thirteen years old you have lived a selfish, unchristian life; and
  • probably hardly had a Bible in your hands during all that period. You
  • must have forgotten the contents of the book, and you may not have space
  • to search it now. Could it be hurtful to send for some one--some
  • minister of any denomination, it does not matter which--to explain it,
  • and show you how very far you have erred from its precepts; and how unfit
  • you will be for its heaven, unless a change takes place before you die?'
  • 'I'm rather obliged than angry, Nelly,' he said, 'for you remind me of
  • the manner in which I desire to be buried. It is to be carried to the
  • churchyard in the evening. You and Hareton may, if you please, accompany
  • me: and mind, particularly, to notice that the sexton obeys my directions
  • concerning the two coffins! No minister need come; nor need anything be
  • said over me.--I tell you I have nearly attained _my_ heaven; and that of
  • others is altogether unvalued and uncoveted by me.'
  • 'And supposing you persevered in your obstinate fast, and died by that
  • means, and they refused to bury you in the precincts of the kirk?' I
  • said, shocked at his godless indifference. 'How would you like it?'
  • 'They won't do that,' he replied: 'if they did, you must have me removed
  • secretly; and if you neglect it you shall prove, practically, that the
  • dead are not annihilated!'
  • As soon as he heard the other members of the family stirring he retired
  • to his den, and I breathed freer. But in the afternoon, while Joseph and
  • Hareton were at their work, he came into the kitchen again, and, with a
  • wild look, bid me come and sit in the house: he wanted somebody with him.
  • I declined; telling him plainly that his strange talk and manner
  • frightened me, and I had neither the nerve nor the will to be his
  • companion alone.
  • 'I believe you think me a fiend,' he said, with his dismal laugh:
  • 'something too horrible to live under a decent roof.' Then turning to
  • Catherine, who was there, and who drew behind me at his approach, he
  • added, half sneeringly,--'Will _you_ come, chuck? I'll not hurt you. No!
  • to you I've made myself worse than the devil. Well, there is _one_ who
  • won't shrink from my company! By God! she's relentless. Oh, damn it!
  • It's unutterably too much for flesh and blood to bear--even mine.'
  • He solicited the society of no one more. At dusk he went into his
  • chamber. Through the whole night, and far into the morning, we heard him
  • groaning and murmuring to himself. Hareton was anxious to enter; but I
  • bid him fetch Mr. Kenneth, and he should go in and see him. When he
  • came, and I requested admittance and tried to open the door, I found it
  • locked; and Heathcliff bid us be damned. He was better, and would be
  • left alone; so the doctor went away.
  • The following evening was very wet: indeed, it poured down till day-dawn;
  • and, as I took my morning walk round the house, I observed the master's
  • window swinging open, and the rain driving straight in. He cannot be in
  • bed, I thought: those showers would drench him through. He must either
  • be up or out. But I'll make no more ado, I'll go boldly and look.'
  • Having succeeded in obtaining entrance with another key, I ran to unclose
  • the panels, for the chamber was vacant; quickly pushing them aside, I
  • peeped in. Mr. Heathcliff was there--laid on his back. His eyes met
  • mine so keen and fierce, I started; and then he seemed to smile. I could
  • not think him dead: but his face and throat were washed with rain; the
  • bed-clothes dripped, and he was perfectly still. The lattice, flapping
  • to and fro, had grazed one hand that rested on the sill; no blood
  • trickled from the broken skin, and when I put my fingers to it, I could
  • doubt no more: he was dead and stark!
  • I hasped the window; I combed his black long hair from his forehead; I
  • tried to close his eyes: to extinguish, if possible, that frightful,
  • life-like gaze of exultation before any one else beheld it. They would
  • not shut: they seemed to sneer at my attempts; and his parted lips and
  • sharp white teeth sneered too! Taken with another fit of cowardice, I
  • cried out for Joseph. Joseph shuffled up and made a noise, but
  • resolutely refused to meddle with him.
  • 'Th' divil's harried off his soul,' he cried, 'and he may hev' his
  • carcass into t' bargin, for aught I care! Ech! what a wicked 'un he
  • looks, girning at death!' and the old sinner grinned in mockery. I
  • thought he intended to cut a caper round the bed; but suddenly composing
  • himself, he fell on his knees, and raised his hands, and returned thanks
  • that the lawful master and the ancient stock were restored to their
  • rights.
  • I felt stunned by the awful event; and my memory unavoidably recurred to
  • former times with a sort of oppressive sadness. But poor Hareton, the
  • most wronged, was the only one who really suffered much. He sat by the
  • corpse all night, weeping in bitter earnest. He pressed its hand, and
  • kissed the sarcastic, savage face that every one else shrank from
  • contemplating; and bemoaned him with that strong grief which springs
  • naturally from a generous heart, though it be tough as tempered steel.
  • Mr. Kenneth was perplexed to pronounce of what disorder the master died.
  • I concealed the fact of his having swallowed nothing for four days,
  • fearing it might lead to trouble, and then, I am persuaded, he did not
  • abstain on purpose: it was the consequence of his strange illness, not
  • the cause.
  • We buried him, to the scandal of the whole neighbourhood, as he wished.
  • Earnshaw and I, the sexton, and six men to carry the coffin, comprehended
  • the whole attendance. The six men departed when they had let it down
  • into the grave: we stayed to see it covered. Hareton, with a streaming
  • face, dug green sods, and laid them over the brown mould himself: at
  • present it is as smooth and verdant as its companion mounds--and I hope
  • its tenant sleeps as soundly. But the country folks, if you ask them,
  • would swear on the Bible that he _walks_: there are those who speak to
  • having met him near the church, and on the moor, and even within this
  • house. Idle tales, you'll say, and so say I. Yet that old man by the
  • kitchen fire affirms he has seen two on 'em looking out of his chamber
  • window on every rainy night since his death:--and an odd thing happened
  • to me about a month ago. I was going to the Grange one evening--a dark
  • evening, threatening thunder--and, just at the turn of the Heights, I
  • encountered a little boy with a sheep and two lambs before him; he was
  • crying terribly; and I supposed the lambs were skittish, and would not be
  • guided.
  • 'What is the matter, my little man?' I asked.
  • 'There's Heathcliff and a woman yonder, under t' nab,' he blubbered, 'un'
  • I darnut pass 'em.'
  • I saw nothing; but neither the sheep nor he would go on so I bid him take
  • the road lower down. He probably raised the phantoms from thinking, as
  • he traversed the moors alone, on the nonsense he had heard his parents
  • and companions repeat. Yet, still, I don't like being out in the dark
  • now; and I don't like being left by myself in this grim house: I cannot
  • help it; I shall be glad when they leave it, and shift to the Grange.
  • 'They are going to the Grange, then?' I said.
  • 'Yes,' answered Mrs. Dean, 'as soon as they are married, and that will be
  • on New Year's Day.'
  • 'And who will live here then?'
  • 'Why, Joseph will take care of the house, and, perhaps, a lad to keep him
  • company. They will live in the kitchen, and the rest will be shut up.'
  • 'For the use of such ghosts as choose to inhabit it?' I observed.
  • 'No, Mr. Lockwood,' said Nelly, shaking her head. 'I believe the dead
  • are at peace: but it is not right to speak of them with levity.'
  • At that moment the garden gate swung to; the ramblers were returning.
  • '_They_ are afraid of nothing,' I grumbled, watching their approach
  • through the window. 'Together, they would brave Satan and all his
  • legions.'
  • As they stepped on to the door-stones, and halted to take a last look at
  • the moon--or, more correctly, at each other by her light--I felt
  • irresistibly impelled to escape them again; and, pressing a remembrance
  • into the hand of Mrs. Dean, and disregarding her expostulations at my
  • rudeness, I vanished through the kitchen as they opened the house-door;
  • and so should have confirmed Joseph in his opinion of his
  • fellow-servant's gay indiscretions, had he not fortunately recognised me
  • for a respectable character by the sweet ring of a sovereign at his feet.
  • My walk home was lengthened by a diversion in the direction of the kirk.
  • When beneath its walls, I perceived decay had made progress, even in
  • seven months: many a window showed black gaps deprived of glass; and
  • slates jutted off here and there, beyond the right line of the roof, to
  • be gradually worked off in coming autumn storms.
  • I sought, and soon discovered, the three headstones on the slope next the
  • moor: the middle one grey, and half buried in the heath; Edgar Linton's
  • only harmonized by the turf and moss creeping up its foot; Heathcliff's
  • still bare.
  • I lingered round them, under that benign sky: watched the moths
  • fluttering among the heath and harebells, listened to the soft wind
  • breathing through the grass, and wondered how any one could ever imagine
  • unquiet slumbers for the sleepers in that quiet earth.
  • ***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WUTHERING HEIGHTS***
  • ******* This file should be named 768.txt or 768.zip *******
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/7/6/768
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://www.gutenberg.org/about/contact
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  • To donate, please visit:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.